Title: Chronicles of England, Scotland and Ireland (2 of 6): England (12 of 12)
Author: Raphael Holinshed
Release date: May 23, 2016 [eBook #52147]
Language: English
Credits: Produced by Jonathan Ingram, RichardW and the Online
Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
Fabian.
Thom. Wals.
The Londoners sent to K. Richard, commending themselues to his fauour before ye death of K. Edward.
RICHARD, the second of that name, and sonne
to prince Edward, called the blacke prince, the sonne of king Edward
the third, a child of the age of eleuen yeares, began to reign ouer
the realme of England the two and twentith daie of Iune, in the yeare
of the world 5344, of our Lord 1377, after the conquest 310, about
the two and thirtith yeare of the emperour Charles the fourth, and in
the fouretéenth yeare of Charles the fift king of France, and about
the seuenth yeare of the reigne of Robert the |712| second king of
Scotland: he was named Richard of Burdeaux, bicause he was borne at
Burdeaux in Gascoigne, whilest his father ruled there. The day before
it was vnderstood, that his grandfather king Edward was departed this
life, being the one and twentith of Iune (on which daie neuerthelesse
he deceassed) the citizens of London hauing certeine knowledge that he
could not escape his sicknesse, sent certeine aldermen vnto Kingston,
where the prince with his mother the princesse then laie, to declare
vnto the said prince their readie good wils, to accept him for their
lawfull king and gouernour, immediatlie after it should please God to
call to his mercie his grandfather, being now past hope of recouerie of
health. Wherefore they besought him, to haue their citie recommended
vnto his good grace, and that it would please him to visit the same
with his presence, sith they were readie in all sorts to honour and
obeie him, and to spend both liues and goods in his cause, if need
required.
Iohn Philpot.
The duke of Lancaster & the Lōdoners submit their quarels to the kings order.
Moreouer, they besought him, that it might please his grace to make an end of the
discord betwixt the citizens, and the duke of Lancaster, which through the malice of
some had béene raised, to the commoditie of none, but to the discommoditie of diuerse.
When Iohn Philpot, one of the foresaid aldermen, that had the words in all their names,
had ended his oration, he was answered by the prince and his councell, that he would
indeuour himselfe in all things to satisfie their requests, and so were they sent home to
bring a ioifull answer of their messege to the citie. The morrow after, there were sent
to London from the king, the lord Latimer, sir Nicholas Bond, sir Simon Burlie, & sir
Richard Adderburie, knights; to bring them sorowfull newes of the assured death of
king Edward, who (as we haue said) deceassed the day before; but comfortable newes
againe, of the great towardlinesse and good meaning of the yoong king, who promised to
loue them and their citie, and to come to the same citie, as they had desired him to doo.
And further, that he had spoken to the duke of Lancaster in their behalfe, and that the
duke had submitted himselfe to him in all things touching the cause; wherevpon the kings
pleasure was, that they should likewise submit themselues, and he would doo his indeuor,
that an agreement might be had to the honor of the citizens, and profit of the
citie.
The citizens liked not of this forme of procéeding in the dukes matter, bicause the king was yoong, and could not giue order therein, but by substitutes: yet at length with much adoo, they were contented to submit themselues, as the duke had doone before, though not, till that the knights had vndertaken vpon their oth of fidelitie and knighthood, that their submission should not redound to the temporall or bodilie harme of any of them, consenting to the kings will in this point. And so with this caution they tooke their iournie towards Sheene, where they found the new K. with his mother, the duke of Lancaster & his brethren, vncles to the king, and diuerse bishops, about the bodie of the deceassed king. When it was knowen that the Londoners were come, they were called before the king, by whom the matter was so handled, that the duke and they were made fréends. After this, when the king should ride through the citie towards the coronation, the said duke and the lord Percie riding on great horses before him, as by vertue of their offices appointed to make way before, vsed themselues so courteouslie, modestlie, and pleasantlie, that where before they two were greatlie suspected of the common people, by reason of their great puissance in the realme, and huge rout of reteiners, they ordered the matter so, that neither this day, nor the morrow after, being the day of the kings coronation, they offended any maner of person, but rather by gentle and swéet demeanour they reclaimed the harts of manie, of whome before they were greatlie had in suspicion, and thought euill of. ¶ But now, sith we are entred into the matter of this kings coronation, we haue thought good breefelie to touch some particular point thereof (as in Thomas Walsingham we find it) though nothing so largelie here, as the author himselfe setteth it foorth, bicause the purpose of this worke will not so permit. |713|
The maner & order of the kings coronation.
The king, in riding thorough the citie towards Westminster, on the 15
daie of Iulie being wednesdaie, was accompanied with such a traine of
the nobilitie and others, as in such case was requisite. Sir Simon
Burlie bare the sword before him, and sir Nicholas Bond lead the
kings horsse by the bridle on foot. The noise of trumpets and other
instruments was maruellous, so that this seemed a day of ioy and mirth,
a day that had béene long looked for, bicause it was hoped, that
now the quiet orders and good lawes of the land, which thorough the
slouthfulnesse of the aged king deceassed, and couetousnesse of those
that ruled about him, had béene long banished, should now be renewed
and brought againe in vse. The citie was adorned in all sorts most
richlie. The water conduits ran with wine for the space of thrée houres
togither. In the vpper end of Cheape, was a certeine castell made with
foure towers, out of the which castell, on two sides of it, there ran
foorth wine abundantlie. In the towers were placed foure beautifull
virgins, of stature and age like to the king, apparelled in white
vestures, in euerie tower one, the which blew in the kings face, at his
approching néere to them, leaues of gold; and as he approched also,
they threw on him and his horsse florens of gold counterfeit.
When he was come before the castell, they tooke cups of gold, and filling them with wine at the spouts of the castell, presented the same to the king and to his nobles. On the top of the castell, betwixt the foure towers, stood a golden angell, holding a crowne in his hands, which was so contriued, that when the king came, he bowed downe & offered to him the crowne. But to speake of all the pageants and shewes which the citizens had caused to be made, and set foorth in honour of their new king, it were superfluous; euerie one in their quarters striuing to surmount other, and so with great triumphing of citizens, and ioy of the lords and noble men, he was conueied vnto his palace at Westminster, where he rested for that night. The morrow after being thursdaie, and the 16 day of Iulie, he was fetcht to the church with procession of the bishops and monks, and comming before the high altar, where the pauement was couered with rich clothes of tapistrie, he there kneeled downe and made his praiers, whilest two bishops soong the Letanie, which being finished, the king was brought to his seat, the quéere singing an antheme, beginning, Fermetur manus tua.
That doone, there was a sermon preached by a bishop touching the dutie of a king, how he ought to behaue himselfe towards the people, and how the people ought to be obedient vnto him. The sermon being ended, the king receiued his oth before the archbishop and nobles: which doone, the archbishop hauing the lord Henrie Percie lord marshall going before him, turned him to euerie quarter of the church, declaring to the people the kings oth, and demanding of them, if they would submit themselues vnto such a prince & gouernor, and obeie his commandements: and when the people with a lowd voice had answered that they would obeie him, the archbishop vsing certeine praiers, blessed the king; which ended, the archbishop came vnto him, and tearing his garments from the highest part to the lowest, stripped him to his shirt. Then was brought by earles, a certeine couerture of cloth of gold, vnder the which he remained, whilest he was annointed.
The archbishop (as we haue said), hauing stripped him, first annointed his hands, then his head, brest, shoulders, and the ioints of his armes with the sacred oile, saieng certeine praiers, and in the meane time did the quéere sing the antheme, beginning, Vnxerunt regem Salomonem, &c. And the archbishop added another praier, Deus Dei filius, &c. Which ended, he and the other bishops soong the hymne, Veni creator spiritus, the king knéeling in a long vesture, & the archbishop with his suffraganes about him. When the hymne was ended, he was lift vp by the archbishop, and clad first with the coate of saint Edward, and after with his mantell, a stoale being cast about his necke, the archbishop in the meane time saieng certeine praiers appointed for the purpose. After this, the archbishop and bishops deliuered to him the sword, saieng, Accipe gladium, &c. |714|
When that praier was ended, two earles girded him with the sword, which doone, the archbishop gaue to him bracelets, saieng, Accipe armillas, &c. After this, the archbishop did put vpon him an vppermost vesture, called a pall, saieng, Accipe pallium, &c. In the meane time, whilest the archbishop blessed the kings crowne, he to whose office it apperteined, did put spurs on his héeles. After the crowne was blessed, the archbishop set it on his head, saieng, Coronet te Deus, &c. Then did the archbishop deliuer to him a ring, with these words, Accipe annulum, &c. Immediatlie herewith came the lord Furniuall by vertue of his office, offering to him a red gloue, which the archbishop blessed, and putting it on his hand, gaue to him the scepter, with these words, Accipe sceptrum, &c. Then did the archbishop deliuer to him in his other hand a rod, in the top whereof stood a doue, with these words, Accipe virgam virtutis, &c. After this the archbishop blessed the king, saieng, Benedicat de Deus, &c.
These things doone, the king kissed the bishops and abbats, by whome he was lead afterwards vnto his seat, the bishops beginning to sing (Te Deum) which ended, the archbishop said to him, Sta & retine amodo locum, &c. When these things were finished, they began masse, the bishop of Worcester read the epistle, and the bishop of Elie the gospell. At the offertorie, the king rose from his seat, and was brought to offer. He therfore offered first his sword, and after so much gold as he would, but no lesse than a marke, by reason of the custome; for more he might offer to God and S. Peter, but lesse he could not. After this, he offered bread and wine, with which he and the archbishop did after communicate. This doone, the earle, to whome it apperteined to beare the sword before the king, redéemed the sword which the king had offered with monie, and receiuing the same, bare it afore the king. When masse should be soong, the king was brought againe to the altar, & there knéeling downe, and saieng Confiteor to the archbishop, did communicate, and so was brought backe to his seat. The wardens of the cinque ports by their office, as well in time of the procession, as when he was annointed also at masse time, and as he returned from the church to the palace to dinner, held ouer him a large canopie of blew veluet, fastened vnto foure staues at the foure corners.
In the meane time, sir Iohn Dimmocke that claimed to be the kings champion, had béen at the kings armorie and stable, where he had chosen according to his tenure, the best armour saue one, and the best stéed saue one: albeit, sir Baldwine Freuill claimed the same office, but could not obteine it; so that the said sir Iohn Dimmocke hauing armed himselfe, and being mounted on horssebacke, came to the abbeie gates, with two riding before him, the one carrieng his speare, and the other his shield, staieng there till masse should be ended. But the lord Henrie Percie lord marshall, appointed to make waie before the king with the duke of Lancaster lord Steward, the lord Thomas of Woodstoke lord constable, and the lord marshals brother sir Thomas Percie, being all mounted on great horsses, came to the knight, and told him, that he ought not to come at that time, but when the king was at dinner, and therefore it should be good for him to vnarme himselfe for a while, and take his ease and rest, till the appointed time were come.
The knight did as the lord marshall willed him, and so after his departure, the king hauing those lords riding afore him, was borne on knights shoulders vnto his palace, and so had to his chamber, where he rested a while, being somewhat faint with trauell, and tooke a small refection. After this, comming into the hall, he created foure new earles, before he sat downe to meat; to wit, his vncle the lord Thomas de Wodstoke earle of Buckingham, to whome he gaue a thousand marks a yeare out of his treasurie, till he prouided him of lands to the like value. The lord Guishard de Engolesme, that had béene his tutor, was created earle of Huntington, to whome he gaue likewise a thousand marks annuitie, till he were prouided of lands of like value. The lord Mowbraie was created earle of Nottingham, and the lord Henrie Percie earle of Northumberland. He made also nine knights the same daie.
To shew what roiall seruice was at this feast, it passeth our vnderstanding to describe: |715| but to conclude, the fare was excéeding sumptuous, and the furniture princelie in all things, that if the same should be rehearsed, the reader would perhaps doubt of the truth therof. ¶ In the midst of the kings palace was a marble pillar raised hollow vpon steps, on the top whereof was a great gilt eagle placed, vnder whose feet in the chapiter of the pillar, diuers kinds of wine came gushing foorth at foure seuerall places all the daie long, neither was anie forbidden to receiue the same, were he neuer so poor or abiect. On the morrow after the coronation, there was a generall procession of the archbishop, bishop, and abbats then present, with the lords, and a great multitude of people, to praie for the king and the peace of the kingdome.
At the going foorth of this procession, the bishop of Rochester preached, exhorting them, that the dissentions and discords which had long continued betwixt the people and their superiours, might be appeased and forgotten, proouing by manie arguments, that the same highlie displeased God. He admonished the lords, not to be so extreme and hard towards the people. On the other part, he exhorted the people in necessarie causes, for the aid of the king and realme, chéerefullie, and without grudging, to put to their helping hands, according to their bounden duties. He further exhorted those in generall that were appointed to be about the king, that they should forsake vice, and studie to liue in cleanesse of life and vertue. For if by their example the king were trained to goodnesse, all should be well; but if he declined through their sufferance from the right waie, the people and kingdome were like to fall in danger to perish. After the sermon and procession were ended, the lords and prelats went to their lodgings.
Froissard.
Rie burnt by ye Frenchmen.
Tho. Wals.
The Frenchmen spoile the Ile of Wight. Sir Hugh Tirrell.
Froissard.
Tho. Walsi.
Portsmouth, Dartmouth, & Plimmouth, burnt by the French.
But now, bicause the Englishmen should haue their ioies mingled with some sorrowes,
it chanced that the Frenchmen (which about the same time that the kings grandfather
departed this life, were wafting on the seas) within six or seauen daies after his deceasse,
burnt the towne of Rie. Wherevpon, immediatlie after the coronation, the earles of Cambridge
and Buckingham were sent with a power vnto Douer, and the earle of Salisburie
vnto Southampton: but in the meane time, to wit, the one and twentith of August, the
Frenchmen entring the Ile of Wight, burnt diuerse townes in the same.
And though they
were repelled from the castell, by the valiant manhood of sir Hugh Tirrell capteine
thereof, who laid no small number of them on the ground; yet they constreined the men
of the Ile to giue them a thousand marks of siluer to saue the residue of their houses and
goods, and so they departed from thence, sailing still along the costs, and where they saw
aduantage, set on land, burning sundrie towns néere to the shore, as Portesmouth, Dartmouth,
and Plimmouth.
Hastings burnt.
An ouerthrow giuen by the Frēch to the Englishmen.
They made countenance also to haue set on Southampton, if sir Iohn Arundell, brother
to the earle of Arundell had not beene readie there with a number of men of armes and
archers, by whome the towne was defended, and the enimies chased to their ships. From
thence the Frenchmen departed, and sailing towards Douer, burnt Hastings; but Winchelsie
they could not win, being valiantlie defended by the abbat of Battell, and others.
After this, they landed one day not far from the abbeie of Lewes, at a place called Rottington,
where the prior of Lewes, and two knights, the one named sir Thomas Cheinie, and
the other sir Iohn Falleslie, hauing assembled a number of the countrie people, incountred
the Frenchmen, but were ouerthrowen; so that there were slaine about an hundred
Englishmen; and the prior, with the two knights, and an esquier called Iohn Brokas,
were taken prisoners, but yet the Frenchmen lost a great number of their owne men at this
conflict, and so with their prisoners retired to their ships and gallies, and after returned
into France.
Polydor.
The duke of Lancaster & the earle of Cambridge appointed protectors.
In Angl. præl.
But now touching the dooings about the new K. You shall vnderstand, that by reason
of his yoong yeares, as yet he was not able to gouerne himselfe, and therefore Iohn duke
of Lancaster, and Edmund earle of Cambridge, with other péeres of the realme, were
appointed to haue the administration. He was of good disposition and towardnesse, but
his age being readie to incline which way soeuer a man should bend it, those that were |716|
appointed to haue the gouernement of his person, did what laie in them now at the first,
to keepe him from all maner of light demeanor. But afterwards, when euerie one began to
studie more for his owne priuate commoditie, than for the aduancement of the commonwealth,
they set open the gates to other, which being readie to corrupt his good nature, by
little and little grew familiar with him, and dimming the brightnesse of true honour, with
the counterfeit shine of the contrarie, so maskered his vnderstanding, that in the end they
brought him to tract the steps of lewd demeanour, and so were causers both of his and
their owne destruction. This séemeth to be touched by C. Okland, who speaking of the
death of the old king and the erection of the new, saith of him according to our annales,
as followeth:
Vndecimum puer hic nondum transegerat annum,
Cùm iuuenile caput gessit diademate cinctum.
Qui postquam princeps iustis adoleuerat annis,
Dicere non facile est quantum distaret auitis
Moribus atque animo, fuit hic quàm disparemente,
Dissimili ingenio claræ matríque patríque.
Froissard.
Berwicke castell woone by the Scots.
Berwike castell recouered by the Englishmen.
The Frenchmen not ignorant of such mischéefes as were like to grow in England,
suffered no time to passe, but tooke occasions of aduantage when they were offered.
¶ Among other enterprises I find, that shortlie after the deceasse of king Edward, the
duke of Burgognie wan Arde, and two or three other fortresses in those marches. The
Scots this yeare also wan the castell of Berwike by stealth one morning, but shortlie vpon
knowledge had, the earles of Northumberland and Notingham, the lords Neuill, Lucie,
Graistoke, & Stafford, with other lords, knights, and esquiers, came with their powers in all
hast thither, and entring the towne, besieged the castell, and finallie, assaulting them that
kept it, wan it of them by force, and slue all those Scotishmen which they found within it,
except Alexander Ramsie their capteine. When the Englishmen had thus recouered the
castell, they entred into Scotland, in hope to find the Scots, and to fight with them whom
they knew to be assembled.
An ouerthrow giuen by the Scots to the Englishmen.
The siege of Mortaigne raised.
The English host was thrée thousand men of armes, & seuen thousand archers, but they
sent foorth sir Thomas Musgraue with thrée hundred speares, and thrée hundred archers,
to Meuros, to trie if he might vnderstand any thing of the Scots in those parts, with whom
the earle Dowglas, hauing with him seuen hundred speares, and two thousand of other
called yomen with glaiues and other weapons, incountered by chance and distressed him
& his companie. Sir Thomas Musgraue himselfe, and six score other, were taken prisoners,
besides those that were slaine, the residue escaped by flight, making the best shift
they could for themselues. The lord Neuill, sir Thomas Triuet, sir William Scrope, and
diuerse other valiant capteins of England, were sent into Gascoigne this yeare, which first
landed at Burdeaux, on the euen of the Natiuitie of our ladie, where after they had rested
them a while, they went and raised the siege, which the Frenchmen had held before Mortaigne
in Poictou a long time before.
Gouernour of this siege at the first, was Yuan or Owen of Wales, but he was murthered one morning as he sat alone viewing the castell, and combing his head, by one of his owne countriemen, which vnder colour to serue him, was become with him verie familiar. This Owen or Yuan whether ye will (for all is one) was sonne to a noble man of Wales, whom K. Edward had put to death for some offense by him committed, where this Yuan got him into France, being as then verie yoong, and was brought vp in the French court, and prooued an expert man of warre, so that great lamentation was made for his death by the Frenchmen. But the Englishmen, although they misliked the maner of his death, yet they were not greatlie sorrowfull for the chance, sith they were rid thereby of an extreame enimie.
A parlement. Thom. Wals.
After that the Englishmen had raised the Frenchmen from the siege of Mortaigne, they
returned to Burdeaux, and after recouered sundrie castels and fortresses in the marches of |717|
Burdelois, and about Baionne. Also they aided the king of Nauarre, against the king
of Castile, and made a road into the confines of Castile. But shortlie after, a peace was
concluded betwixt those two kings, so that the lord Charles of Nauarre should marrie
the daughter of the king of Castile vpon certeine conditions: and so the Englishmen had
their wages trulie paid them to their full contentation, and therevpon returned. About
Michaelmasse began a parlement that was summoned at Westminster, which continued
till the feast of saint Andrew. In this parlement the foresaid sir Peter de la Mere and
other the knights that had beene so earnest against dame Alice Peres in the last parlement
holden by king Edward the third, so prosecuted the same cause now in this parlement,
that the said dame Alice Peres was banished the realme, and all hir goods mooueable and
vnmooueable forfeited to the king, bicause contrarie to that she had promised by oth in
the said last parlement, she had presumed to come within the court, and to obteine of
the king what soeuer was to hir liking.
Two citizens of London appointed to kéepe the subsidie granted by parlement.
Sir Hugh Caluerlie a valiant capteine.
There were two tenths granted by the clergie to the king in this parlement, and two
fiftéenes of the temporaltie, to be paid the same yeare; and two citizens of London, William
Walworth, and Iohn Philpot were appointed to haue the kéeping of that monie, to
the end it might be imploied to the kings necessarie vses, for the defense of the realme.
Sir Hugh Caluerlie being deputie of Calis, comming one morning to Bullongne, burnt
certeine ships which laie there in the hauen, to the number of six and twentie, besides
two proper barkes, being vessels of no small accompt: and hauing spoiled and burnt
the most part of the base towne, he returned to Calis with a great rich bootie of goods
and cattell.
Marke castell recouered by sir Hugh Caluerlie, the same daie it was lost.
Also, where the castell of Marke, in the absence of the capteine sir Robert de Salle,
that was gone ouer into England, was lost through negligence of them that were left in
charge within it; the same sir Hugh Caluerlie made such spéed in the matter, that he
recouered it againe the same daie it was lost, by force of assault, taking the Frenchmen
prisoners that were gotten into it, and hanging certeine Picards stipendarie soldiers in
the said castell, vnder the said sir Robert de Salle, for that whilest the Englishmen were
gone foorth, to see the shooting of a match which they had made amongst themselues,
a little off from the castell, those Picards being left within, shut the gates against them,
and receiued in the Frenchmen, with whome they had practised in treason, kéeping the
Englishmen foorth, to whom the safe kéeping of that castell was committed.
Iohn Wickliffe.
Hen. de Knighton canon abbat. Leicest. in annalib. de Rich. secundo.
This yeare was a bull sent from the pope vnto the vniuersitie of Oxenford, to apprehend
Iohn Wickliffe, parson of Lutterworth in Leicestershire, within the diocesse of
Lincolne. Also, there were other bulles to the same effect, sent vnto the archbishop
of Canturburie, and to the bishop of London. Likewise to the king were letters directed
from the pope, to require his fauour against the said Wickliffe, so greeuouslie was the
pope incensed against him, and not without cause, for if his conclusions in doctrine tooke
effect, he well perceiued his papisticall authoritie would shortlie decaie. As for the popish
cleargie, to them not onelie the sect but also the name of Wickliffe was so odious, that in
recording his opinions and sectaries, they excéed the bounds of all modestie, aggrauating
such reports as they infer concerning him or his with more than hyperbolicall lies: as appeereth
by that long and tedious discourse which he wrote, that compiling certeine annales
intituled De euentibus Angliæ, prefixeth this verse in the front of his volume, in
letters of red vermilon, as desiring to haue his name notoriouslie knowne to the world;
Autoris nomen capitales litteræ pandunt:
He (I say) in that copious treatise hauing spoken as maliciouslie & viperouslie as he might both of Wickliffes life, which he concludeth to be lewd; of his opinions, which he auoucheth to be hereticall; and of his fauourers and followers, to whom (at his pleasure) he giueth vnreuerent epithets (all which to prosecute at length, as by him they are in ample sort laid downe, would but detect the mans malignitie, and procure an ouerthrow of credit to be attributed vnto his declarations) he maketh vp his mouth with a tristichon |718| of poeticall imitation, to bring Wickliffe and his adherents into perpetuall obloquie and defamation, saieng as followeth in verse and prose;
Si totum membrana solum, calamus nemus omne,
Et Thetis encaustum, scriptor & omnis homo,
Istorum facinus scribere non poterunt.
Maledictus conuentus eorum, quoniam pertinax, propterea Deus destruat eos, in finem euellat, & emigrare faciat de tabernaculis fidelium suorum, & radicem eorum de terra regni; & hoc videant iusti, & lætentur; vt dicere possint; Ecce populus qui se exaltauit super electos doctores Domini, & sperauit in multitudine vanitatis suæ: confundantur & pereant cum doctrina eorum in æternum, &c.
The nauie setteth foorth, and is beaten backe by tempest.
Exploits doone by sir Hugh Caluerlie.
But of Wickliffes life and doctrine to read at large, I remit the reader to the acts and
monuments of the church, published by maister Iohn Fox: and now will we returne to
matters of state and policie. There went foorth this yeare a verie great nauie of ships to
the sea, vnder the guiding of the earle of Buckingham, the duke of Britaine, the lord Latimer,
the lord Fitz Walter, sir Robert Knolles, and other valiant capteins, meaning to
haue intercepted the Spanish fléet that was gone to Sluse in Flanders, but thorough rage
of tempest, and contrarie winds, they were driuen home, although twise they attempted
their fortune: but sir Hugh Caluerlie, deputie of Calis, slept not his businesse, dooing
still what displeasures he could to the Frenchmen. Shortlie after Christmasse, he spoiled
the towne of Estaples the same daie the faire was kept there, to which a great number of
merchants of Bullongne were come to make their markets, but the sellers had quicke vtterance,
for that that might easilie be caried awaie, the Englishmen laid hands on, and caused
the owners to redéeme the residue with great sums of monie, which they vndertooke to
paie; or else sir Hugh threatned to haue burnt all that was left, togither with the houses.
The duke of Lancaster misliking the manners of the court, getteth himselfe home to ye castell of Killingworth.
Yée haue heard, how at the first the duke of Lancaster was one of the chéefe about
the yoong king in gouernement of his person and realme, who prudentlie considering,
that sith there must néeds be an alteration in the state, & doubting least if any thing
chanced otherwise than well, the fault and blame might be chéefelie imputed to him, and
thanks (howsoeuer things went) he looked for none, he gaue therefore the slip, obteining
licence of the king to depart, and so got him home to his castell of Killingworth, permitting
other to haue the whole swaie: for before his departure from the court, there
were with his consent ordeined such as should be attending on the kings person, and
haue the rule and ordering of matters perteining to the state, as William Courtnie, then
bishop of London (though shortlie after remooued to the archbishops see of Canturburie)
Edmund Mortimer earle of March, & diuerse other, of whome the people had conceiued
a good opinion: but yet bicause the bishop of Salisburie, and the lord Latimer
were admitted amongst the residue, the commons murmured greatlie against them.
The earle of Northumberland resigned his office of lord marshall, in whose place succeeded sir Iohn Arundell, brother vnto the earle of Arundell. ¶ The duke of Lancaster, although retired from the court, yet desirous to haue the monie in his hands that was granted the last parlement, at length obteined it, vpon promise to defend the realme from inuasion of all enimies for one yeares space: he therefore prouided a great nauie to go to the sea, hiring nine ships of Baionne, to assist his enterprise herein, the which in making saile hitherwards, incountred with the Spanish fléet, and tooke fouretéene vessels laden with wines and other merchandize. But in the meane time, one Mercer a Scotishman, with certeine saile of Scots, Frenchmen, and Spaniards, came to Scarburgh, and there tooke certeine ships, and led them awaie to the sea, as it were in reuenge of his fathers imprisonment, named Iohn Mercer, who before being caught by certeine ships of the north parts, and deliuered to the earle of Northumberland, was committed to prison within the castell of Scarburgh.
Iohn Philpot Alderman of London setteth foorth a fléet at his own charges, to recouer certeine English ships taken by the Scots.
Iohn Philpot that worshipfull citizen of London, lamenting the negligence of them that
should haue prouided against such inconueniences, made foorth a fléet at his owne charges, |719|
stronglie furnished with men of warre and munition necessarie: the men of warre méeting
with the same Mercer, accompanied with his owne ships, and fiftéene other Spaniards
that were newlie ioined with him, set vpon them, and so valiantlie behaued themselues, that
they tooke the said Mercer with all them that were then in his companie, so recouering
againe the ships that were taken from Scarburgh, besides great riches which were found
aboord, as well in the fiftéene Spanish ships, as the other that were of the old retinue,
belonging to the same Mercer. Iohn Philpot was afterwards blamed of the lords, for
presuming thus far, as to set foorth a nauie of men of warre, without the aduise of the
kings councell: but he made his answer in such wise vnto the earle of Stafford, and others
that laid the fault to his charge, that he was permitted to depart, without further trouble
for that matter.
Chierburg deliuered to the Englishmen.
Additions to Adam Merimuth.
Before all such prouision as the duke of Lancaster prepared for his iournie to the sea
could be readie, the earles of Salisburie and Arundell sailed ouer into Normandie, where,
by such composition as was taken betwixt the king of England and the king of Nauarre,
who of new was become enimie to the French king, the towne of Chierburg was deliuered
vnto the said earles, who sending knowledge thereof backe into England, there were sent
ouer such as should haue in charge the kéeping of that towne; and so the two earles returned.
¶ We find, that the king of Nauarre, hauing beene heere in England with the
king and his councell, had agréed with the king for a certeine yearelie rent, to demise
vnto him the said fortresse of Chierburg, whereby the Englishmen might haue frée entrie
into Normandie, when they would, as well to aid the king of Nauarre in his necessitie,
as to worke anie enterprise that should be thought expedient to the aduantage of the king
of England as occasion serued. But the obteining of possession of Chierburg brought
not so much ioy to the English nation, as the mishap that happened at the going foorth
of the said earles did cause lamentation and heauinesse.
The English nauie is ouermatched and ouercome by the Spanish fléet.
For vpon the first entring into the sea, it fortuned that sir Philip, and sir Peter Courtenie,
discouered a certeine number of ships that were enimies, and vndiscréetlie entered amongst
them, there suddenlie came vpon them the Spanish fléet, so that the English ships that were
in companie with the said Philip and sir Peter, were not able to make their partie good,
in somuch that finallie after that sir Philip had lost diuerse of his men that were there
slaine, he got awaie by flight himselfe, though gréeuouslie wounded, but sir Peter was taken
prisoner with a few other knights that were with him; and the most part of all the valiant
esquiers of Summersetshire & Deuonshire, being there abroad with him, were slaine and
drowned, which was estéemed no small losse to the whole common-wealth.
Rokesburgh burnt by the Scots.
Thus were the Englishmen occupied in this first yeare of king Richard with troubles
of warre, and not onelie against the Frenchmen, but also against the Scots. For euen
in the beginning of the same yeare, the Scots burnt Rokesburgh, in reuenge whereof the
new earle of Northumberland entered Scotland with ten thousand men, and sore spoiled
the lands of the earle of March for the space of thrée daies togither; bicause the said
earle of March was the chéefe author and procurer of the burning of Rokesburgh, & so
for that time th’ Englishmen were well reuenged of those enimies. But at an other time,
when the Northerne men would néeds make a rode into Scotland, entring by the west
borders, they were incountered by the Scots and put to flight, so that manie of them being
slaine, the Scots tooke the more courage to inuade the borders, till at length, Edmund
Mortimer earle of March came at the daie of truce, and tooke an abstinence of warre
betwixt both nations for the time, though the same continued not long.
The duke of Lācaster saileth into Britaine with a great power.
Additions to Adam Merimuth.
Hall & Shakerlie hath Grafton.
Polydor.
Anon after Midsummer, the duke of Lancaster with a strong power tooke the sea, and
landing in Britaine, besieged the towne of saint Mallo de Lisle, a fortresse of great importance.
There went ouer with him the earles of Buckingham, Warwike, Stafford, and
diuerse other of the English nobilitie, the which made their approches, and fiercelie
assailed the towne, but it was so valiantlie defended, that in the end, the duke with his |720|
armie raised from thence, and returned without atchiuing his purpose. ¶ About the
same time, there was a notable and hainous murther committed within saint Peters church
at Westminster, by occasion of variance betwéene the lord Latimer and sir Rafe Ferrers
on the one partie, and two esquiers, the one called Robert Hall and the other Iohn
Shakell on the other partie, about a prisoner which was taken at the battell of Nazers in
Spaine, called the earle of Deane, who (as some write) was taken by one sir Franke de
Hall at the said battell; and bicause he remained in his hands at the death of the said sir
Franke, he bequeathed him vnto his sonne the said Robert Hall
esquier.
Thom. Wals.
But as other write, the said earle was taken by the said Robert Hall himselfe & Iohn
Shakell iointlie, and iudged to be their lawfull prisoner, by the sentence of the prince of
Wales, and sir Iohn Chandois that was master to the said esquiers. Wherevpon afterwards
the said earle obteined so much fauor, that by leauing his sonne and heire in gage
for his ransome, he returned into Spaine, to prouide monie to discharge it; but he was
so slow in that matter, after he was at libertie, that he departed this life before he made
any paiment, and so his lands fell to his sonne that remained in gage for the monie with
the two esquiers. Wherevpon it happened afterwards, that the duke of Lancaster, desirous
to haue the yoong earle in his hands (in hope through his meanes the better to accomplish
his enterprise which he meant to take in hand against the king of Castile, for the
right of that kingdome) procured his nephue king Richard to require the said earle of
Deane, at the hands of the said esquiers.
But they refused to deliuer him, keeping their prisoner foorth of the waie, so that none wist were he was become: the esquiers therefore were committed to the tower, out of the which they escaped vnto Westminster, and there registred themselues for sanctuarie men. The duke of Lancaster was herewith sore offended, and their enimies the said lord Latimer and sir Rafe Ferrers tooke counsell togither, with sir Alane Boxhull and others, how they might be reuenged of this despite. This sir Alane Boxhull was constable of the tower, and therefore it greeued him not a little, that the esquiers had broken from him and kept themselues thus at Westminster, vnder protection of that priuileged place. Herevpon it was concluded, that sir Rafe Ferrers, and the said Alane Boxhull, taking with them certeine men in armour, to the number of fiftie persons, should go and fetch them by force from Westminster, vnto the tower againe.
The morrow therefore after saint Laurence daie, being the eleuenth of August, these two knights accompanied with certeine of the kings seruants and other, to the number afore mentioned, came into the church at Westminster, whilest the said esquiers were there hearing of high masse, which was then in celebrating; and first laieng hands vpon Iohn Shakell, vsed the matter so with him, that they drew him foorth of the church, and led him streight to the tower. But when they came to Robert Hall, and fell in reasoning with him, he would not suffer them to come within his reach, and perceiuing they meant to take him by force, he drew out a falcheon or short sword which he had girt to him, and therewith laid so fréelie about him, trauersing twise round about the moonks quier, that till they had beset him on ech side, they could doo him no hurt.
A cruell murther in Westminster church.
Howbeit, at length when they had got him at that aduantage, one of them cloue his
head to the verie braines, and an other thrust him through the bodie behind with a sword,
and so they murthered him among them. They slue also one of the moonkes that would
haue had them to haue saued the esquiers life. Much adoo was about this matter, for
the breaking thus of the sanctuarie, in somuch that the archbishop of Canturburie, and
fiue other bishops his suffragans, openlie pronounced all them that were present at this
murder accurssed, and likewise all such as aided or counselled them to it, cheeflie and
namelie sir Alane Boxhull, and sir Rafe Ferrers, capteins and leaders of them. The
king, the queene, and the duke of Lancaster were yet excepted by speciall names. The
bishop of London a long time after, euerie sundaie, wednesdaie, and fridaie, pronounced
this excommunication in the church of S. Paule at London. |721|
The duke of Lancaster (though excepted in the same) yet in behalfe of his fréends was not a little offended with the bishops dooings, in so much that in a councell holden at Windsore (to the which the bishop of London was called, but would not come, nor yet ceasse the pronouncing of the cursse, albeit the king had requested him by his letters) the duke said openlie, that the bishops froward dealings were not to be borne with, but (saith he) if the king would command me, I would gladlie go to London, and fetch that disobedient prelat, in dispite of those ribaulds (for so he termed them) the Londoners. These words procured the duke much euill will, as well of the Londoners, as of other: for it was commonlie said, that whatsoeuer had béene doone at Westminster, concerning the murther there committed in the church, was doone by his commandement.
A parlement at Glocester.
About the feast of S. Luke, a parlement was holden at Glocester, for the displeasure
(as was thought) which some of the councell had conceiued against the Londoners, or
rather (as some tooke it) for feare of them, least if any thing were doone contrarie to
their minds, they should be about to hinder it, if the parlement had beene kept neere
them: for manie things (as some iudged) were meant to haue beene put foorth and concluded
in this parlement, albeit few in effect came to passe of those matters that were
surmised, sauing that it was inacted, that the king should haue a marke of the merchants
for euerie sacke of their woolles, for this present yeare; and for euerie pounds worth of
wares that was brought in from beyond the seas, and here sold, six pence of the buiers.
¶ Also, certeine priuileges were granted in this parlement to merchant-strangers, that they
might buie and sell in grosse, or by retaile within this realme, as in the printed booke of
statutes it appeareth.
The pope sendeth to the king for aid.
Berwike castell woone by the Scots.
This yeare came messengers from the new elected pope Vrbane, with letters to require
kings assistance and aid against such cardinals as he named schismatikes, that had
elected an other pope whome they named Clement, which cardinals sent likewise their
messengers with letters, to beséech the king to aid them with his fauourable assistance:
but through persuasion of the archbishop of Canturburie, Vrbans request was granted,
and Clements reiected. About the same time, to wit, on thursdaie before the feast of S.
Andrew th’ apostle, the Scots by stelth entred by night into the castell of Berwike, and
slue sir Robert Bointon, a right valiant knight, that was constable thereof, permitting
his wife, children, and seruants to depart, with condition, that within three weeks next
insuing, they should either paie them thrée thousand marks, or else yeeld their bodies
againe to prison.
Alexander Ramsie was onlie saued as Froissard saith.
Berwike castell recouered by the earle of Northumberland.
The morrow after, the same Scots fetched a great bootie of cattell out of the countries
next adioining, but immediatlie after the earle of Northumberland being aduertised hereof,
hasted thither with foure hundred armed men, and assaulting the castell on ech side,
after two houres defense, wan it, slaieng of the defendants about eight and fortie, reseruing
onelie one of the whole number aliue, that he might informe the Englishmen thoroughlie
of the Scotishmens purposes. At this enterprise was the earle of Northumberlands
eldest sonne, spreading there first his banner, and dooing so valiantlie, that he deserued
singular commendation; as likewise did sir Alane de Heton, and sir Thomas de Ilderton,
with those of the surname of the Herons, euerie of these hauing their quarters assigned to
assault. Thus was the castell recouered the ninth daie after the Scots had entered the
same, so that they enioied not long that victorious exploit.
Sir Robert Rous a valiāt capteine.
And bicause this enterprise was taken in hand against the couenant of the truce, the
earle of Northumberland, before he attempted to recouer the castell, sent to the earle of
March in Scotland, to vnderstand if he would auow that which his countrimen had doone,
touching the winning of that castell, who sent him knowledge againe, that he neither
vnderstood of their enterprise, nor would be partaker with them therein: but if it so
pleased the earle of Northumberland, he would come himselfe, and helpe to recouer it to
the K. of Englands vse, out or those Scotishmens hands, which without publike authoritie
had made that exploit. This yeare, sir Robert Rous, capteine of Chierburg, was called |722|
home, after he had taken sir Oliuer de Clisson, and atchiued manie other worthie aduentures
against the kings enimies. In his place was sent sir Iohn Herleston, to remaine
vpon the gard of that castell. Also sir Hugh Caluerlie, deputie of Calis, that had so
valiantlie borne himselfe against the Frenchmen, was likewise discharged; and comming
home was made admerall, being ioined in commission in that office with sir Thomas
Percie.
Sir William Montacute earle of Salisburie was sent ouer to Calis, to be the kings lieutenant there, who shortlie after his comming thither fetcht a great bootie of cattell out of the enimies countrie adjoining, so that Calis was furnished with no small number of the same. ¶ Sir Hugh Caluerlie, and sir Thomas Percie, going to sea, tooke seauen ships laden with merchandize, and one ship of warre. ¶ The archbishop of Cassils in Ireland, returning from Rome, brought with him large authoritie of binding and loosing, granted to him by pope Vrbane, in fauour of whome at his comming to London, in a sermon which he preached, he declared to the people, how the French king, holding with the antipape Clement, was denounced accursed; and therefore now was the time for Englishmen to make warre in France, hauing such occasion, as greater could not be offered; speciallie, sith it was like that the excommunicated king should haue no courage to make resistance. This is I will not sale the diuinitie (for what heauenlinesse can there be in such damnable doctrine, to set people togither by the eares?) of the Romanists; so farre off are they from the studie of peace and concord betwixt man and man, that they set whole monarchies and empires vp to the mid leg in streams of bloud, imitating their great grandfather sathan, who hath béene a makebate and a murtherer from the beginning: renouncing the footsteps of Christ with open mouth, and forswering to follow him either in demeanour or doctrine, and therefore;
Quis nisimentis inops, vt sanctum tale probabit?
Hæccine mens Christi? Talia nulla docet.
The sanctuarie at Westminster confirmed by parlement.
A subsidie to be paid by the great men, & the commons go frée.
A notable exploit doone by sir Iohn Harleston.
In a parlement holden at Westminster this yeare after Easter, it was ordeined, that the
priuileges and immunities of the abbeie of Westminster should remaine whole and inuiolate;
but yet there was a prouiso against those that tooke sanctuarie, with purpose to
defraud their creditors, that their lands & goods shuld be answerable to the discharging
of their debts. In the same parlement was granted to the king a subsidie, to be leuied
of the great men of the land. To the end the commons might be spared, the dukes of
Lancaster and Britaine paied twentie marks, euerie earle six marks, bishops and abbats
with miters as much, and euerie moonke thrée shillings foure pence: also, euerie iustice,
shiriffe, knight, esquier, parson, vicar, and chapleine, were charged after a certeine rate,
but not any of the commons that were of the
laitie.
Ye haue heard how sir Iohn Harleston was sent to Chierburg as capteine of that fortresse, who issuing abroad on a day, with such power as he might take foorth, leauing the fortresse furnished, came to a place, where within a church and in a mill, the Frenchmen had laid vp, as in storehouses, a great quantitie of vittels, for prouision; which church and mill the Englishmen assaulted so valiantlie, that notwithstanding there were within a good number of the enimies, that did their best to defend themselues, yet at length they were taken, and sir Iohn Harleston with his companie, returned with the vittels towards Chierburg, but by the way they were incountred by one sir William de Bourds, whome the French king had appointed to lie in Mountburg with a strong power of men of war, to countergarison Chierburg.
Herevpon insued a sore conflict, and manie an hardie man was beaten to the ground. And although it séemed that the Englishmen were ouermatched in number, yet they stucke to it manfullie. Their capteine sir Iohn Harleston, fighting in the foremost presse, was felled, and laie on the ground at his enimies féet in great hazard of death. The Englishmen neuerthelesse continued their fight, till at length sir Geffrie Worslie, with a wing of armed footmen with axes, came to the rescue (for to that end he was left |723| behind, of purpose to come to their aid if néed required) with whose comming the Frenchmen were so hardlie handled, that to conclude, they were broken insunder, beaten downe and wholie vanquished: there were of them slaine aboue six score, and as manie taken prisoners, among which number was their chéefe capteine sir William de Bourdes taken, and brought to Chierburg with the residue, and there put in safe keeping. This exploit was atchiued by the Englishmen, on saint Martins day in winter, in this third yeare of king Richard his reigne.
Sir Iohn Clearke a valiant capteine.
A policie.
But least any ioy should come to the English people in that season, without some mixture
of gréefe, one sir I. Clearke a right valiant knight, & fellow in armes with sir Hugh
Caluerlie, chanced this yeare to lie in garrison in a castell in Britaine, where was an
hauen, & diuerse English ships lieng in the same, whereof the French gallies being
aduertised, came thither, to set those ships on fire, appointing one of their gallies first to
attempt the feat, and if fortune so would, to traine the Englishmen foorth, till they should
fall into the laps of foure other gallies which they laid as it had béene in ambush. Now
as the enimies wished so it came to passe, for the Englishmen perceiuing their vessels in
danger to be burnt of the enimies, ran euerie man aboord to sane the ships and goods
within them; and amongst the rest, sir Iohn Clearke their capteine, meaning to take such
part as his men did, got aboord also, and streight falling in pursute of the gallie that withdrew
for the purpose aforesaid, the Englishmen were shortlie inclosed with the other
gallies before they were aware, not knowing what shift to make to auoid the present
danger.
Sir Iohn Clearke, perceiuing how the case stood, laid about him like a giant, causing his companie still to draw backe againe, whilest he resisting the enimies, did shew such proofe of his valiancie, that they were much astonished therewith. To be short, he so manfullie behaued himselfe, that the most part of his companie had time to recouer land; but when he that had thus preserued others shuld leape foorth of the ship to saue himselfe, he was striken on the thigh with an ax, that downe he fell, and so came into the enimies hands, being not able to recouer that hurt, for his thigh was almost quite cut off from the bodie, so that he died of that and other hurts presentlie, leauing a remembrance behind him of manie worthie acts through his valiancie atchiued, to his high praise and great commendation. The barke of Yorke was also lost the same time, being a proper vessell; and now taken suddenlie, sanke with all that were aboord in hir, both Englishmen, and the enimies also that were entered into hir, thinking to carrie hir awaie.
The duke of Britaine restored to his dukedome.
About the same time the duke of Britaine returning into his countrie, vnder the conduct
of sir Thomas Percie and sir Hugh Caluerlie, landed at a hauen not far from saint
Malo, the fourth day of August, being receiued with vnspeakable ioy of the Britaines, as
well lords as commons, so that the louing harts which they bare towards him, might
well appeare, although the loue which he bare to the king of England had caused his
subiects, in fauor of France, to kéepe him manie yeares foorth of his dukedome as a
banished prince, but at length, they being ouercome with irkesomnesse of his long absence,
with generall consents sent for him home, so that there were but few of the British nobilitie
that withdrew their dutifull obedience from him, and those were onelie such as
firmelie linked in seruice with the French king, were loth to forgo such roomes and
dignities as vnder him they inioied; namelie, the constable of France, sir Berthram
de Cleaquin, the lord Clisson, the lord de Rohen, and the lord Rochfort, and certeine
others.
Sir Hugh Caluerlie.
The lord de la Vall amongst other, came to him (as we find in Thomas Walsingham)
offering him his seruice as well as the residue. At his landing, he was likelie to haue
lost all such furniture, as well of vittels, apparell, hangings, bedding, armour, and
other things, which either he or his traine had brought with them. For the French gallies
espieng their time, immediatlie as he and his companie were set on land, before the ships
in which the said furniture was fraught, could enter the hauen, which was somewhat |724|
streight and narrow, came vpon them, and had them at such aduantage, that if sir Hugh
Caluerlie with his archers had not caused the master of his ship, euen against his will to
returne againe to the rescue, the gallies had taken and gone awaie with the other ships;
but through the manfull prowes of sir Hugh, the gallies were repelled, & the ships saued:
for according to his woonted valiancie he would not returne, till he saw all other in safetie,
& then defending himselfe so well as he might, withdrew into the hauen, and landed safelie
with the residue.
An hainous murther of a merchant stranger.
Great death in the north countrie.
Great spoile by the Scots in the death time.
About the same time was an hainous murther committed in London, of a merchant
Genowes, whome certeine English merchants vpon spite and enuie, which they bare towards
him, caused to be slaine one euening in the stréet before his own gates. The
cause that mooued the merchants so to procure his death was, for that he vndertooke to
furnish this land, hauing the staple allowed him at Southhampton, of all such wares as
came foorth of Leuant, so plentifullie as was to be had in any place in all the west parts
of christendome. In the summer of this yeare, a greeuous mortalitie afflicted the north
parts of this land, so that the countrie became almost desolate. And to the increase of
that miserie, the Scots thinking the time to serue their turne, inuaded the borders, and
most cruellie harried, robbed, and spoiled the same, not letting passe any part, of most
cruell murthering of the people that were left aliue, and not made awaie by that sore contagious
sicknesse. The number of cattell was infinite which they droue out of the land
with them, not sparing heards of swine which they tooke at this time, where they neuer
medled with that kind of cattell before that present.
Before the Scots made this iournie into England, whilest the mortalitie was most in force, they calling to certeine of the English borderers, asked of them how it came to passe, that so great a death reigned amongst them. The Englishmen, as good, plaine, and simple meaning men, told them, that trulie they knew not the cause, for Gods iudgements were hid from them in such behalfe. But one thing they knew, that all calamitie, death, and aduersitie that chanced vnto them, came by the speciall grace of God, to the end that being punished for their sinnes, they might learne to repent and amend their wicked liues. The Scots hearing this, when they should enter this land, vnderstanding lewdlie what the Englishmen had told them concerning the disease, and the grace of God, deuised a blessing forsooth to be said euerie morning, of the most ancient person in euerie familie, as; Benedicite, said he: Dominus, said the residue. Then began he againe, saieng; God and saint Mango, saint Romane and saint Andro, shield vs this daie fra Gods grace, and the fewle death that Englishmen dien vpon. Thus the senselesse men misconstruing this word the grace of God, praied for their owne destruction, which if not in this world, yet for their brutish crueltie vsed at that present, against the miserable creatures, whom the hand of God had spared in time of that gréeuous mortalitie, it is to be feared, least in another world it came to them, as the verie words of their praiers imported.
A notable example of a faithful prisoner.
About the same time, Iohn Schakell esquier was set at libertie, the king compounded
with him for his prisoner, giuing fiue hundred marks in redie monie, and lands to the
value of a hundred marks by yeare. When he should bring foorth his prisoner, and deliuer
him to the king, this is to be noted, as a thing verie strange and woonderfull. For
when he should appeare, it was knowne to be the verie groome that had serued him in all
the time of his trouble, and would neuer vtter himselfe what he was before that time,
hauing serued him as an hired seruant all that while in prison, and out of prison, in
danger of life, when his other maister was murthered, where, if he would haue vttered
himselfe, he might haue beene enterteined in such honorable state, as for a prisoner of
his degrée had beene requisit, so that the faithfull loue and assured constancie in this
noble gentleman was highlie commended and praised, and no lesse maruelled at of all
men.
The English nauie scattered by a terrible tempest.
About the feast of S. Nicholas, in this third yeare of king Richards reigne, there went |725|
to sea an armie of men, that should haue passed ouer into Britaine, to the aid of the duke
there, vnder the conduct of sir Iohn Arundell, sir Hugh Caluerlie, sir Thomas Percie,
sir William Elmham, sir Thomas Morews, sir Thomas Banester, & manie other knights
and esquires, too long to rehearse, a sufficient power vndoubtedlie to haue doone a great
enterprise: but they were no sooner on the sea, but suddenlie there arose such an hideous
tempest of wind and stormes, that they looked presentlie to be all cast awaie, they were
scattered here and there, and driuen they wist not whither. The ship wherein sir Iohn
Arundell was aboord, chanced to be cast on the coast of Ireland, and there driuen to forsake
his ship, that was readie to be broken in péeces by rage of waues, beating it there
against the rocks: he was drowned before he could win to land, in an Ile, neere to the
which they had thrust in the ship.
To the like end came sir Thomas Banester, sir Nicholas Trumpington, and sir Thomas Dale, impeaching each others, as they leapt foorth of the ship: also one Musard an esquire, a most séemelie personage and a bold; and an other esquier named Denioke, being almost out of danger, were fetched awaie by the surges of the sea, and so perished, with manie other. Robert Rust a cunning seaman, belonging to Blacknie in Northfolke, & maister of the ship wherein sir Iohn Arundell was imbarked, was the first that got to land, giuing example to others how to shift for themselues. But when he saw his cheefe capteine, the said sir Iohn Arundell got foorth to the sands, and as one thinking himselfe past all danger, to shake his wet garments about him; the said Rust waieng the dangerous state wherein the said sir Iohn Arundell yet stood, came downe, and raught to him his hand, inforsing himselfe to plucke him to the shore: but whilest he tooke care for an other mans safetie, and neglected his owne, he lost his life, and so they both perished togither; for through a mightie billow of the raging seas, they were both ouerthrowne, and with returning of the waues backe, drawne into the deepe, so that they could neuer recouer foot-hold againe, but were drowned.
The said Rust was much lamented, bicause he was not onelie knowne to be a skilfull maister, but also counselled the said sir Iohn Arundell in no wise to go to sea, at what time he would needs set forward, forsing the said Rust and the marriners to hoist vp sailes and make awaie. They that scaped to land in that Ile, found nothing there to releeue their miseries, but bare ground, so that diuerse starved through cold, wanting fier and other succour: the residue that were lustie and wise withall, ran vp and downe, and sometime wrestling, and otherwise chafing themselues, remained there in great miserie, from the thursdaie till sundaie at noone next insuing. At what time, when the sea was appeased and waxen calme, the Irishmen that dwelled ouer against this Ile on the maine, came and fetched them thence, and reléeued them the best they could, being almost dead, through trauell, hunger, and cold.
The excesse and sumptuous apparell of sir Iohn Arundell.
There were drowned aboue a thousand men in one place and other, as the additions to Ad. Merimuth doo testifie.
Outragious wickednesse iustlie punished.
The said sir Iohn Arundell lost not onelie his life, but all his furniture and apparell
for his bodie, which was verie sumptuous, so that it was thought to surmount the apparell
of any king. For he had two and fiftie new sutes of apparell of cloth of gold or
tissue, as was reported, all the which, togither with his horsses & geldings, amounting
to the value of ten thousand marks, was lost at the sea. And besides this, there were
lost at the same time fiue and twentie ships, with men, horsses, and other riches, which
attended him in that voiage. Yet sir Thomas Percie, and sir Hugh Caluerlie, with sir
William Elmham, and certeine others escaped, but cruellie tormented with vnmercifull
tempest: and before sir Thomas Percie could get to land, after the sea was quieted, he
was assaulted by a Spaniard, against whome he so defended himselfe, that in the end he
tooke the Spanish vessell, and brought hir, with all that he found aboord in hir, vnto
the next shore, and sold the same for an hundred pounds, and without long delaie, tooke
the sea, & passed ouer to Brest, of which fortresse he was capteine, iointlie with sir
Hugh Caluerlie, and therefore doubting least some inconuenience might chance thereto
now in both their absence, he made the more hast, not taking rest till he came thither, |726|
notwithstanding his passed painefull trauels. Sir Hugh Caluerlie was neuer in his life
in more danger of death, than at that time: for all that were in his ship (as Froissard
writeth) were drowned, except himselfe & seauen mariners. We find, that there were
drowned in one place & other, aboue a thousand Englishmen in that most vnluckie
voiage. ¶ Some writers impute this calamitie to light on the said sir Iohn Arundell &
his companie, for the lasciuious and filthie rule which they kept before their setting
foorth, in places where they laie, till their prouision was readie; who not content with
that which they did before they tooke ship, in rauishing men wiues, maids and daughters,
they carried them aboord, that they might haue the vse of them whilest they were vpon
the sea,
(Sæua libido furens, quid non mortalia cogis
Pectora? Quídue tuo non est violabile telo?)
and yet when the tempest rose, like cruell and vnmercifull persons they threw them into the sea, either for that they would not be troubled with their lamentable noise and crieng, or for that they thought so long as they had such women aboord with them (whome they had abused so long) God would not cease the rage of the tempest. But it should appeare that this tempest was generall, for where the Spanish and French fléets were abroad at the same time, being assembled togither to annoie the coasts of this land, their ships were likewise tossed and turmoiled, so as no small number of them were lost, in so much that the damage which they susteined, was thought far to passe that which hapned to the English nauie.
Sir Iohn Deuereux made deputie of Calis.
The earle of Warwike elected protector.
In this yeare about Christmasse, sir William de Montacute earle of Salisburie, after
he had remained twelue moneths space at Calis, the kings lieutenant there was called
home, & sir Iohn Deuereux a right valiant knight, and an old man of warre, was sent
thither in his place. ¶ Also, sir Iohn Harleston was called home from Chierburg, and
sir William Windeshore a noble knight was sent thither to be capteine of that fortresse.
¶ After the Epiphanie, was a parlement called at London, which continued till the beginning
of the kalendes of March. ¶ Also wheras the yeare before there had beene certeine
bishops, earles, barons, and iustices appointed, to haue the gouernement and rule
about the king; now at the request of the lords and commons in this parlement assembled;
the lord Thomas Beauchampe earle of Warwike was chosen to remaine continuallie
with the king, as chéefe gouernour, both of his person, and to giue answer to all
strangers that should come hither about any businesse whatsoeuer, and further to haue
the rule and order of all things, in lieu of those that were chosen thereto before: it was
perceiued that they had sought to inrich themselues, & had doone little to the aduancement
of the kings honor, or state of the common-wealth, but rather emptied the kings
cofers.
The archbishop of Canterburie made lord chancellour.
The kings halfe sister married the earle of saint Paule.
In this parlement also, the lord Richard Scrope gaue ouer the office of chancellor, and
Simon Sudburie archbishop of Canturburie tooke it vpon him. ¶ In this parlement was
granted a tenth by the cleargie, and a fifteenth by the laitie, with condition that from
henceforth, to wit, from the kalends of March, to the feast of S. Michaell which then
should be in the yeare 1381, there should be no more parlements, but this condition was
not performed, as after appeared. In the octaues of Easter, the lord Valeran earle of
saint Paule married the kings halfe sister, the ladie Ione de Courtnie: the solemnization
of this marriage was holden at Windsore, with great triumphing. ¶ The princesse that
was mother to the bride, was greatlie against the marriage, but the bride hir selfe had
such a liking to the earle, that the king was contented that they should match togither,
and set him free of his ransome which he should haue paid, for that he had béene
taken prisoner in the marches of Calis, and further, gaue with his sister by waie of endowment,
the towneship and manour of Biefléet.
A combat betwixt sir Iohn Anneslie and Thomas Katrington.
On the seuenth of Iune, a combat was fought afore the kings palace at Westminster,
on the pauement there, betwixt one sir Iohn Anneslie knight, and one Thomas Katrington |727|
esquier: the occasion of which strange and notable triall rose hereof. The knight accused
the esquier of treason, for that where the fortresse of saint Sauiour within the Ile
of Constantine in Normandie, belonging some time to sir Iohn Chandois, had béene
committed to the said Katrington, as capteine thereof, to keepe it against the enemies,
he had for monie sold and deliuered it ouer to the Frenchmen, where he was sufficientlie
prouided of men, munition and vittels, to haue defended it against them: and sith the
inheritance of that fortresse and landes belonging thereto, had apperteined to the said
Anneslie in right of his wife, as neerest cousine by affinitie vnto sir Iohn Chandois, if by
the false conueiance of the said Katrington, it had not béene made awaie, and alienated
into the enemies hands: he offered therefore to trie the quarrell by combat, against the
said Katrington, whervpon was the same Katrington apprehended, and put in prison, but
shortlie after set at libertie againe.
Triall by cōbat in what case lawfull.
Whilest the duke of Lancaster, during the time that his father king Edward laie in his
last sickenesse, did in all things what liked him, & so at the contemplation of the lord
Latimer (as was thought) he released Katrington for the time, so that sir Iohn Anneslie
could not come to the effect of his sute in all the meane time, till now. Such as feared
to be charged with the like offenses staied the matter, till at length, by the opinion of
true and ancient knights it was defined, that for such a forren controuersie that had not
risen within the limits of the realme, but touched possession of things on the further side
the sea, it was lawfull to haue it tried by battell, if the cause were first notified to the
constable and marshall of the realme, and that the combat was accepted by the
parties. Herevpon was the day and place appointed, and all things prouided readie,
with lists railed and made so substantiallie, as if the same should haue indured for euer.
The concourse of people that came to London to sée this tried, was thought to excéed
that of the kings coronation, so desirous men were to behold a sight so strange and vnaccustomed.
The order of the combat.
The earle of Buckingham claimeth the horsse.
The king, his nobles, and all the people being come togither in the morning of the
daie appointed, to the place where the lists were set vp, the knight being armed and
mounted on a faire courser seemelie trapped, entered first as appellant, staieng till his
aduersarie the defendant should come. And shortlie after was the esquier called to defend
his cause in this forme: Thomas Katrington defendant, come and appeare to saue
the action, for which sir Iohn Anneslie knight and appellant hath publikelie and by
writing appealed thée. He being thus called thrise by an herald at armes, at the third
call did come armed likewise; and riding on a courser trapped with traps imbrodered
with his armes, at his approching to the lists he alighted from his horsse, lest according
to the law of armes the constable should haue challenged the horsse if he had entered
within the lists. But his shifting nothing auailed him, for the horsse after his maister
was alighted beside him, ran vp & downe by the railes, now thrusting his head ouer, and
now both head & breast, so that the earle of Buckingham, bicause he was high constable
of England, claimed the horsse afterwards, swearing that he would haue so much
of him as had appeared ouer the railes, and so the horsse was adiudged vnto him.
But now to the matter of the combat (for this challenge of the horsse was made after, as soone as the esquier was come within the lists) the indenture was brought foorth by the marshall and constable, which had béene made and sealed before them, with consent of the parties, in which were conteined the articles exhibited by the knight against the esquier, and there the same was read before all the assemblie. The esquier (whose conscience was thought not to be cleare, but rather guiltie, and therefore seemed full of troublesome and grudging passions, as an offendor alreadie conuinced, thought (as full well he might)
Multa miser timeo, quia feci multa proteruè)
went about to make exceptions, that his cause by some means might haue séemed the
sounder. But the duke of Lancaster hearing him so staie at the matter, sware, that |728|
except according to the conditions of the combat, and the law of armes, he would admit
all things in the indentures comprised, that were not made without his owne consent, he
should as guiltie of the treason foorthwith be had foorth to execution. The duke with
those words woone great commendation, and auoided no small suspicion that had béene
conceiued of him as parciall in the esquiers cause. The esquier hearing this, said, that he
durst fight with the knight, not onelie in those points, but in all other in the world whatsoeuer
the same might be: for he trusted more to his strength of bodie, and fauour of his
freends, than to the cause which he had taken vpon him to defend. He was in déed a
mightie man of stature, where the knight among those that were of a meane stature was one
of the least. Freends to the esquier, in whom he had great affiance to be borne out
through their assistance, were the lords Latimer and Basset, with others.
The esquire is ouerthrowne.
Before they entered battell, they tooke an oth, as well the knight as the esquier, that
the cause in which they were to fight, was true, and that they delt with no witchcraft, nor
art magike, whereby they might obteine the victorie of their aduersarie, nor had about them
any herbe or stone, or other kind of experiment with which magicians vse to triumph ouer
their enimies. This oth receiued of either of them, and therewith hauing made their
praiers deuoutlie, they began the battell, first with speares, after with swords, and lastlie
with daggers. They fought long, till finallie the knight had bereft the esquier of all his
weapons, and at length the esquier was manfullie ouerthrowne by the knight. But as the
knight would haue fallen vpon the esquier, through sweat that ran downe by his helmet
his sight was hindered, so that thinking to fall vpon the esquier, he fell downe sideling
himselfe, not comming néere to the esquier, who perceiuing what had happened, although
he was almost ouercome with long fighting, made to the knight, and threw himselfe vpon
him, so that manie thought the knight should haue beene ouercome: other doubted
not but that the knight would recouer his feet againe, and get the victorie of his aduersarie.
The king in the meane time caused it to be proclamed that they should staie, and that the knight should be raised vp from the ground, and so meant to take vp the matter betwixt them. To be short, such were sent as should take vp the esquier; but comming to the knight, he besought them, that it might please the king to permit them to lie still, for he thanked God he was well, and mistrusted not to obteine the victorie, if the esquier might be laid vpon him, in manner as he was earst. Finallie, when it would not be so granted, he was contented to be raised vp, and was no sooner set on his féet, but he cheerfullie went to the king, without anie mans helpe, where the esquier could neither stand nor go without the helpe of two men to hold him vp, and therefore was set in his chaire to take his ease, to see if he might recouer his strength.
The esquier fainteth.
The knight is iudged the vanquisher.
The knight at his comming before the king, besought him & his nobles, to grant him so
much, that he might be eftsoones laid on the ground as before, and the esquier to be laid
aloft vpon him: for the knight perceiued that the esquire through excessiue heat, and the
weight of his armor, did maruellouslie faint, so as his spirits were in manner taken from
him. The king and the nobles perceiuing the knight so couragiouslie to demand to trie
the battell foorth to the vttermost, offring great summes of monie, that so it might be doone,
decreed that they should be restored againe to the same plight in which they laie when
they were raised vp: but in the meane time the esquire fainting, and falling downe in a
swoone, fell out of his chaire, as one that was like to yéeld vp his last breath presentlie
among them. Those that stood about him cast wine and water vpon him, séeking
so to bring him againe, but all would not serue, till they had plucked off his armor, &
his whole apparell, which thing prooued the knight to be vanquisher, and the esquier to be
vanquished.
After a little time the esquier began to come to himselfe, and lifting vp his eies, began to hold vp his head, and to cast a ghostlie looke on euerie one about him: which when it was reported to the knight, he commeth to him armed as he was (for he had put off no |729| péece since the beginning of the fight) and speaking to him, called him traitor, and false periured man, asking of him if he durst trie the battell with him againe: but the esquier hauing neither sense nor spirit whereby to make answer, proclamation was made that the battell was ended, and euerie one might go to his lodging. The esquier immediatlie after he was brought to his lodging, and laid in bed, began to wax raging wood, and so continuing still out of his wits, about nine of the clocke the next day he yéelded vp the ghost. ¶ This combat was fought (as before yée haue heard) the seuenth of Iune to the great reioising of the common people, and discouragement of traitours.
The Frenchmen spoile & burne diuerse townes in the west countrie.
Froissard. The earle of Buckingham sent into Britaine to aid the duke against the French king.
About the same time or rather somewhat before, the lord Oliuer de Clisson, with a
number of ships and gallies of France and Spaine, tooke the sea, and comming on the
coast of England, landed in diuerse places of the west countrie, and also in the south parts,
and burning sundrie townes, taking such ships and vessels as they might laie hold
vpon, and so continued to indamage the English people that inhabited néere to the sea
side, all that summer following. ¶ In the beginning of the fourth yeare of this king,
Thomas of Woodstoke earle of Buckingham, vncle to the king, with an armie of seauen or
eight thousand men of armes and archers, was sent ouer to Calis, that he might inuade
France, and passe through the same to come into Britaine vnto the aid of the duke there.
¶ You haue heard how the French king had seized into his hands the more part of the
duchie of Britaine, bicause that the duke had ioined himselfe in league with the king of
England: but yet there were diuerse of the good townes, and also manie of the barons and
nobles of the countrie which kept themselues as neuters a long season; but at length,
longing to see the returne of their naturall lord and duke, sent for him into England,
requiring him to repaire home, and to see to the quieting of the troubled state of his
countrie.
The duke being thus earnestlie desired to returne home, by the aduise of the king of
England and his councell, granted to their request that had so instantlie required him,
both by letters and sufficient messengers: wherevpon he tooke the sea, and sailing foorth,
arriued in Britaine, hauing with him sir Robert Knolles, and a certeine number of Englishmen
both armed men and archers (as before yee haue heard.) The king also promised
to send him a new supplie verie shortlie, which was not forgotten. But fortune was so
contrarie, that sir Iohn Arundell generall of those that were sent, and manie of his companie,
were drowned by force of tempest, and the other driuen backe againe into England
(as before ye haue heard.) In the meane time, though the duke of Britaine with aid of
his subiects, did manfullie defend his townes and countrie against the Frenchmen, yet he
was in doubt to be oppressed by the great puissance of the Frenchmen, if aid came not the
sooner. Which being signified ouer into England, mooued the king and his councell to
appoint the earle of Buckingham to take vpon him this voiage. He landed at Calis three
daies before the feast of Marie Magdalene.
Knights made by the earle of Buckingham at his entrie into France.
There went ouer with him in that armie, the earls of Stafford and Deuonshire, the lord
Spenser constable of the host, the lord Fitz Walter marshall, the lord Basset, the lord
Bourchier, the lord Ferrers, the lord Morlie, the lord Darcie, sir William Windsore, sir
Hugh Caluerlie, sir Hugh Hastings, sir Hugh de la Sente, sir Thomas Percie, sir Thomas
Triuet, sir Hugh Tirell, sir William Farrington, sir Iohn and sir Nicholas Daubriticourt,
Thomas Camois, Rafe Neuill sonne to the lord Neuill, sir Henrie bastard Ferrers, sir
Hugh Broe, sir Geffrie Wourslie, sir William Clinton, sir Iuon Fitz Warren, and diuerse
other. After they had rested them at Calis two daies, they remooued the third day out of
the towne, and came to Marqueignes, where they remained thrée daies, till all their companie,
cariages, and prouisions were come to them out of Calis: from thence they remooued
and came before Arde, where the earle of Buckingham made knights these that
follow: the earle of Deuonshire, the lord Morlie, the son of the lord Fitz Walter, sir Roger
Strange, sir Iohn Ipre, sir Iohn Colle, sir Iames Tirell, sir Thomas Ramston, sir Iohn
Neuill, and sir Thomas Ros or Roslie, as some copies haue. These persons were made |730|
knights, bicause they went in the vaward, which was sent to win a strong house called
Follant, which the owner had fortified against them. But though he defended himselfe
manfullie for a time, yet in the end both he and all his companie were taken prisoners.
Knights againe made.
The iournie of the English armie through France.
After this the duke passed by saint Omers, shewing himselfe (about a mile off) with his
host in order of battell aloft vpon a mounteine. Some of the Englishmen rode to the
barriers, requiring that some of them within would come foorth and breake staues with
them, but they could not be answered. The same day that the Englishmen thus came
before S. Omers, the earle of Buckingham made againe new knights, as sir Rafe Neuill, sir
Bartholomew Bourchier, sir Thomas Camois, sir Foulke Corbet, sir Thomas Danglure, sir
Rafe Petipas, sir Lewes saint Albine, and sir Iohn Paulie or rather Paulet. These
Englishmen rode through the countrie, demanding iusts and déeds of armes, but they could
not be answered. In déed the townes of the frontiers were well replenished and
stuffed with men of war, and still were the Englishmen coasted, but they kept themselues
so close togither, without breaking their order, that their enimies could find them at none
aduantage.
They passed by Tirwine and by Betwine, where they lodged one day. They made but easie iournies, and seemed to require nothing but battell. They passed by Arras, by Miramont, and so to Clerie on the water of Some, and taried there thrée daies, and in other places about in that countrie. The fourth day they dislodged, and drew towards Cambraie, and so to S. Quintines, & after vp towards Reimes. They found little riches, and small store of vittels abroad in the countrie, for the French king had abandoned all to his men of warre, who either wasted or conueied all things of any value into the fortresses and walled townes. The Englishmen therefore sent to them of Reimes, requiring to haue some vittels sent to the host, for the which they would spare the countrie from wasting: but they of Reimes would not consent herevnto. Whervpon the Englishmen began to light them such candels, as their eies within the citie aked to behold the same a far off.
The citizens of Reimes saue their corne fields from destroieng by sending vittels to the English host.
Sir Thomas Triuet created a baronet.
Knights created.
Verne or Vernon.
Moreouer, the Englishmen approched so néere to the walles and diches of the citie,
that they brought awaie twentie thousand head of cattell, which the citizens had gotten
within the compasse of their diches; and further sent to them within, that if they would
not sent bread and wine foorth to vittell the host, in that behalfe they would burne all
their corne: for doubt whereof, the citizens sent foorth to the host six charets laden with
as much bread and wine as they might carie. Thus was their corne saued from destruction,
and the Englishmen by soft and easie iournies drew towards the citie of Trois, in the
which was the duke of Burgognie, with the dukes of Burbon and Bar, the earle of Ewe,
the lord Coucie, sir Iohn de Vien high admerall of France, and a great number of others
of the French nobilitie. They had made a bastide without the towne able to receiue a
thousand men of armes, but vpon the Englishmens approch to assault it, they did forsake
that strength, and withdrew to the towne. Sir Thomas Triuet was here made a baronet.
Also there were certeine new knights made, as sir Peter Berton, sir Iohn and sir Thomas
Paulie or Paulet, sir Iohn Stiugulie, sir Thomas Dortingues, sir Iohn Vassecoque, sir
Thomas Brasie, sir Iohn Brauin, sir Henrie Vernier, sir Iohn Coleuile, sir William Euerat,
sir Nicholas Stiugulie, and sir Hugh Lunit.
The policie of the French king.
The English host perceiuing the Frenchmen to withdrawe into the towne, drew togither,
and stood in order of battell for the space of two houres, and then returned to their lodgings.
The next day they remooued to Maillerois le vicount neere vnto Sens, and there
they remained two daies, and after drew into Gastinois, and so into Beause. They were
coasted all the waie by a great power of men of war, as many or more in number as they
were themselues. But the French king being a politike prince, wiselie considered what
losses the realme of France had susteined afore time, by giuing battell to the Englishmen,
and therefore was fullie resolued, that in no wise he would giue licence to his people to
fight with the earle of Buckingham; but thought better (as he had learned by good |731|
experience) to keepe his townes close against his enimies, and so in the end to wearie
them, than by giuing battell to put things in hazard, whereas he knew they could not
take from him his countries by this kind of warre, though they sore indamaged the same
for a time.
In Angl. prælijs sub Edwardo 3.
There chanced manie small skirmishes amongst those that rode foorth to discouer the
countrie, but no notable incounter at all. For the Englishmen in those daies were cats
not to be catched without mittens (as Iacob Meir in one place saith) & againe the French
men were as warie how they aduentured to come néere them, peraduenture for feare,
as in the reigne of king Edward the 3, as C. O. noteth, saieng,
Contra aciem magnam tremebundo corde Valesus
In campum adiunctum & vicina coëgerat arua,
Non tamen Angligenas aduersum est ausus aperto
Tendere Marte feris confligere fortiter armis.
The death of Charles the 5 French king.
Onelie they sought how to inclose them vp in the countrie, and to famish them, that
they might then fight with them at some great aduantage; but still the English host passed
forward, holding on their voiage towards Britaine by Vandosme, Pont Volaine, and so
ouer the riuer of Sartre. In this meane while the French king Charles the fift was taken
with a sore sicknesse, whereof he departed this life the same daie that the English armie
passed ouer the riuer of Sartre, which was on the six and twentith of September, his
brethren the dukes of Aniou, Berrie, Burbon, and Burgognie were at Paris with him at
the houre of his death, where as a little before they had béene abroad in the countrie
with their powers, to defend the cities and townes of importance against the Englishmen,
and meant indeed (if they could haue espied their aduantage, and gotten licence thereto
of the king) to haue giuen their enimies battell. But now they were otherwise occupied:
howbeit they had left their men abroad in the countrie to coast the Englishmen as
they had doone before. All the French power was assembled in the citie of Mans, vnder
the leading of the duke of Bar, the lord Coucie, and
others.
Tho. Walsi.
The French and Spanish gallies chased from the coast of England to Kingsale in Ireland and there vanquished.
In this meane while that the earle of Buckingham was passing through the realme of
France, the French and Spanish gallies did much mischéefe on the coast of England: but
about the latter end of Iune, by a fléet of Englishmen of the west countries part of them
were forced to retire, and take harbour in an hauen in Ireland called Kingsale, where
being assailed of the Englishmen and Irishmen, they were vanquished; so that to the
number of foure hundred of them were slaine, and their chéefe capteins taken, as Gonsalue
de Verse, and his brother Iohn Martin de Motrigo, Turgo lord of Morants; also
lord of Reith, Péers Martin of Vermew, Iohn Modit of Vermew, the seneshall of
Wargarie, the seneshall of S. Andrew, Cornelis of S. Sebastiano, Paschale de Biskey, Iohn
Martinis, Sopogorge of S. Sebastiano, and diuerse other.
Diuerse townes on the English costs destroied and burnt.
The abbat of Battell in rescuing Winchelsie is put to flight.
Grauesend burnt.
There were taken foure of their barges with a ballenger, and one and twentie English
vessels recouered, which they had robbed and taken awaie from their owners. There
scaped yet foure of their notable capteins frō the hands of our men, Martin Grantz, Iohn
Peris Mantago, Iohn Husce Gitario, and one Garcias of S. Sebastiano, so that the malice
of those robbers ceased not. For they with the French gallies, still lieng on the seas,
when they espied anie aduantage, would land their people, and doo what mischeefe they
could, in taking preies, and burning townes and villages, although now and then they
came short to their vessels againe, losing sometimes an hundred, sometimes fourescore
that were ouertaken by the Englishmen that came foorth against them. But among other
inuasions which they made this summer on the coasts, we find that they burnt the towne
of Winchelsie, & put the abbat of Battell to flight with his people, comming to succor
that towne and tooke one of his moonks that was there in armor with the abbat. ¶ Some
write also, that they burnt Rie, Hastings, and Portsmouth. Finallie, their boldnesse so
farre increased, that in August they entring with their gallies into the riuer of Thames,
came vp to Grauesend, where they burnt the most part of the towne, and on the other |732|
side of the riuer, as well in Essex as Kent, they burnt and spoiled diuerse places, and
with their prisoners and booties returned without receiuing anie hurt, bringing with them
to France, both rich spoiles and good prisoners.
The English host entreth into Britaine.
Naunts besieged by the Englishmen.
But to returne to the earle of Buckingham where we left. The English armie drew
still towards Britaine, but with so small doubt of their aduersaries, that they laie three
or foure daies sometimes still in one place. At their approching to the marches of Britaine,
they came to Vitrie, a towne situate at the first entring into that countrie, and from
thence went to Chateau Briant, and there rested, whither came to them certeine knights
sent from the duke of Britaine, which signified to the erle of Buckingham what the dukes
meaning was. Indéed by the death of the French king, the dukes malice was greatlie
abated towards the Frenchmen, so that he had not much passed if the Englishmen had
béene at home againe. Moreouer, his townes were not determined to receiue the Englishmen,
as enimies to the crown of France: so that he was in a perplexitie how to order
his businesse. At length, to shew himselfe a stedfast fréend to the Englishmen, and one
that was no changeling, he determined by their support, to force all those to allow the
league which he had established with the Englishmen, who had denied to beare armour
against the crowne of France. And first, bicause they of Naunts were the ringleaders of
that rebellious demeanour, he appointed first to besiege their citie. They hauing knowledge
thereof, sent into France for aid.
The siege at Naunts broken vp.
The dukes of Aniou, Berrie, Burgognie, and Burbon, brethren to the late king, and
vncle to his sonne the yoong king, hauing the gouernance of the realme vnder him, sent
six hundred speares with all spéed to strengthen them of Naunts, which defended the citie
in such wise from the puissance of the Englishmen, who enuironed the same with a strong
siege, that in the end, bicause the duke came not to them (according to his promise)
the siege was raised the morrow after New yeares daie, two moneths and foure daies after
the same was first laid. The duke of Britaine would gladlie haue come to the siege of
Naunts, in strengthening of the English host, but he could not persuade his lords to aid
him in anie such enterprise. And therefore now that the earle of Buckingham had
broken vp his siege, he caused him to be lodged in the citie of Vannes, & his men abroad
in the countrie, some here, and some there, acquiting himselfe as well towards them as
he might.
A peace betwixt the French king and the duke of Britaine.
The articles of the peace.
But suerlie the hearts of the Britains were wonderfullie changed, and in no wise would
consent to haue anie warre with the Frenchmen, if anie reasonable peace might be concluded.
For manie that hated the father, bare good will and heartie loue towards the
sonne, whose yoong yeares and great towardnesse allured the hearts of manie to wish him
well. Hervpon was meanes made for a peace, which by the duke of Aniou his consent
(who bare the greatest rule in France in that season) a finall accord was made, betwixt
the yoong king and the duke of Britaine, so that the duke should come and doo his
homage vnto the French king, and sweare to be true and faithfull vnto him: also that he
should rid the Englishmen out of his countrie, and helpe them with ships and vessels to
transport them home into England.
The earle of Buckingham returned into England.
The earle of Buckingham, when he vnderstood of this peace, was not a little displeased
in his mind, considering that the duke of Britaine had delt so vniustlie with him and his
nephue the king of England. But the duke still excused him by his subiects, as though
if he had not thus agreed, he should haue beene in danger to haue lost his heritage of that
countrie. Finallie, the earle after he had ships prouided for his passage, the eleuenth
of Aprill departed out of Vannes, and came to the hauen where his ships laie, and so
went aboord in like maner as other of his men did from other hauens, and shortlie after
(when the wind serued) tooke the sea, and returned into England, sore displeased with
the duke of Britaine for his great vntruth and dissimulation (as he tooke it) notwithstanding
all excuses to cloake the matter by him alledged.
The Scots inuade the English borders and spoile whole countries carrieng awaie great booties.
Whilest the Englishmen were thus occupied in warres against the Frenchmen (as before |733|
ye haue heard) the Scots could not rest in quiet, but in reuenge for a ship, which the
townesmen of Newcastell and Hull had taken on the sea, knowing them to be pirates,
determined to doo what mischéefe they could vnto the English borders: for the losse of
that ship grieued them, bicause it was esteemed to be verie rich, the goods that were in
it being valued at seuen thousand marks. Herevpon the Scots entring by the west borders,
inuaded & spoiled the countries of Westmerland and Cumberland, and comming
into the forrest of Inglewood, they tooke awaie with them such a number of beasts and
cattell, that they were reckoned at fourtie thousand heads of one and other. Besides
this, they cruellie slue all such as they could laie hands vpon, and burnt vp all the townes,
and houses as they passed: and not content herewith, they stale vpon the towne
of Penreth, when the faire was kept there, slaieng, taking, and chasing awaie the people,
and after gathering togither all the goods and riches there found, tooke it awaie with them,
whereof there was such plentie as might haue satisfied the couetous desire of a most greedie
armie. They returned by Carleil, but hearing that there were gotten into it a great number
of men out of the countries adioining, they durst not staie to make any attempt against
that towne, but compassed their waie to escape with their booties home into their countrie,
which they did, although they lost some of their companie as they passed by an ambushment
of certeine archers of Westmerland and Cumberland, that were laid for them
of purpose. When the earle of Northumberland would haue gone foorth to reuenge those
iniuries doone to the countrie by the Scots, he was written to from the king and his councell,
to forbeare till the daie of truce, at what time it might be knowen what was further
to be doone in the matter.
An armie lingering in the north parts greatlie impouerisheth the countrie.
Additions to Adam Merimuth.
About Michaelmasse the duke of Lancaster, the earles of Warwike, and Stafford, with
other lords and men of honor, hauing with them a great power of souldiers and men of
warre, went into the north parts, and comming to the borders, they laie there till they
had consumed no small summes of monie, and indamaged the countrie as much as if the
Scotish armie had inuaded the same. The good they did, was, that after long treatie with
the Scotish commissioners, a truce was agreed vpon till Easter following, which being
concluded, they returned home without any more adoo. For the space of halfe a score
yeares togither now last past, the Englishmen euerie yeare had one or two such treaties
with the Scots about the incursions and rodes which they yearelie made into the English
borders, sore indamaging the inhabitants of those north parts of the realme, notwithstanding
any truce or abstinence of warre that might be concluded.
Treason in letters writtē by sir Rafe Ferrers to certeine French lords.
Whilest the armie (as ye haue heard) laie idle in the north parts, there were certeine
letters found by a poore man about London, who deliuered them vnto the worthie citizen
Iohn Philpot, who calling vnto him certeine other worshipfull citizens, opened one of
them, in which was conteined matter of high treason: and perceiuing by the seale that
it belonged vnto sir Rafe Ferrers knight, one of the kings priuie councell, deliuered that
letter with foure other letters closed with the same seale, first to the lord chancellor,
and after to the king, the which being read and the seale knowne to be the said sir Rafe
Ferrers his seale, manie greatlie maruelled that so ancient a knight, and one in whom so
great trust was put, should go about any such treasons.
One of the letters was directed to sir Bertram de Cleaquin, an other to the lord de la
Riuer the chamberlaine of France, an other to the lord Clisson, and an other to the patrone
of the gallies, and to the capteine of the armie of Frenchmen and Spaniards, which
at the same time wafting alongst the coasts, did much hurt in diuerse places of the land.
Foorthwith the said Philpot and others were sent in post from the king to the duke of
Lancaster, that for somuch as the said sir Rafe Ferrers was then in the north parts with
him, intreating with the Scots, he should arrest him and put him in safe kéeping, which
commandement the duke did accomplish, and committed him to be safelie kept in the
castell of Duresme, but shortlie after in the next parlement he was set at libertie, foure |734|
barons being bound for his foorth comming, till true that he might more euidentlie declare
his innocencie.
A parlement at Northampton.
Iohn Kirkbie executed for murthering a merchant stranger.
About the feast of S. Martine, was a parlement holden at Northampton to the more
trouble of them that came to it, bicause in that season of the yeare they were constreined
to come where there was no store of fewell to make them fiers: and beside that, lodgings
were verie streict for so great a multitude. But the cause that mooued the councell to
appoint this parlement there, was to the end that they might the more fréelie procéed to
the triall of Iohn Kirkbie a citizen of London, that had murthered the Genowais (as
before ye haue hard) which Kirkbie was condemned at this parlement, and drawne and
hanged in the sight of the Londoners that were come thither, which execution if it
should haue beene doone at London, the lords doubted least some tumult might haue
béene raised by the citizens, who were reckoned in those daies verie rash and presumptuous
in their dooings.
A gréeuous subsidie.
Twelue pēce as some haue.
Thom. Wals.
But now to the effect of this parlement. There was a new and strange subsidie or
taske granted to be leuied for the kings vse, and towards the charges of this armie that
went ouer into France with the earle of Buckingham; to wit, of euerie préest secular
or regular six shillings eight pence, and as much of euerie nunne, and of euerie man
& woman married or not married being 16 yeares of age (beggers certenlie knowne
onlie excepted) foure pence for euerie one. Great grudging & manie a bitter cursse
followed about the leuieng of this monie, & much mischéefe rose thereof, as after it appeared.
¶ In this fourth yeare of king Richards reigne, immediatlie after Christmasse,
Thomas Brantingham bishop of Exeter and lord treasuror, was discharged of his office of
treasurorship, and sir Robert Hales lord of S. Iohns was aduanced in his place, a right
noble and manlie knight, but not beloued of the commons.
Wicliffes opinion.
The cardinall of Praxed.
Triennals.
All for monie.
About this time did Iohn Wicliffe chieflie set foorth his opinion touching the sacrament
of the altar, denieng the doctrine of transubstantiation, and that it ought not in
any wise to be worshipped in such sort as the church of Rome then did teach. ¶ There
were ambassadors sent into Germanie, to treat with the emperour for a marriage to be
had, betwixt the king of England, and the emperours sister. About the beginning of
March they returned, bringing with them the cardinall, intituled of saint Praxed, and
the duke of Tarsilia, and other nobles that came from the emperor, to treat with the
king & his councell about the same marriage. This cardinall, whether he passed the
bounds of his commission and authoritie to him granted by the pope (as some write) or
whether he was furnished with such faculties, he was very liberall in bestowing of them
abrode on all such as would come with monie. Indulgences, which the pope had vsed
onelie to reserue for himselfe to bestow, this man granted the same liberallie, both biennals
and triennals. He gaue also letters confessionall, to all those that would
paie for them, admitting aswell beneficed men as other, to be the popes chapleins.
He made notaries for monie, and denied not altars portatiue to anie that would pay
for them.
He receiued fortie pounds, besides other gifts, of the moonks of the Cisteaux order, to
grant to them a generall licence to eat flesh indifferentlie, as well abroad, as they had
béene accustomed to doo at home within their monasteries. To those that were excommunicate
he gaue absolution: those that had vowed to go in pilgrimage to Rome, to the
holie land, or to saint Iames, he would not first release them, till he had receiued so much
monie, according to the true valuation, as they should haue spent in their iornies: and to
be bréefe, nothing could be asked, but for monie he was readie to grant it. And when he
was requested to shew by what power he did all these things, with great indignation he
answered, that he would let them vnderstand at Rome, if they would needs know the
authoritie which he had. At length his males were so filled with siluer, that his seruants
disdained to make them anie answer, except they brought gold, saieng; “Bring vs gold, |735|
for we are full of your siluer.” But at his departure he tooke all awaie with him, both gold
and siluer in such abundance as was maruellous. This hath beene the practise of the
Romanists from time to time, wherevpon grew this common byword (taxing the polling
and shauing shifts of that execrable see, gaping gulfe, and insatiable sea)
Curia Romana non quærit ouem sine lana.
An armie sent into Portingale to aid the king there against the K. of Castile.
But now to returne to other matters concerning the state of the realme. After the returne
of the earle of Buckingham, it was ordeined by aduise of the councell, that the duke
of Lancaster should eftsoones go as ambassador from king Richard into Scotland, to see if
he might renew the truce (which shortlie would haue beene expired) for three yéeres longer.
Also whereas there was variance and open war mainteined, betwixt Iohn king of Castile,
and king Iohn of Portingale, the earle of Cambridge, the lord William de Beauchampe,
the lord Botreux, and sir Matthew Gournie, were sent into Portingale with fiue hundred
armed men, and fiue hundred archers to aid the king of Portingale against the king of
Castile, who was sonne to the bastard Henrie: for the duke of Lancaster reioised greatlie,
that he might haue such a fréend as the king of Portingale, to ioine with him in aid against
the king of Castile; meaning (as soone as opportunity would serue) to go ouer with an
armie to chalenge his right, and pursue his claime to the crowne of Castile and Leon,
against the vsurper, in right of his wife quéene Constance, eldest daughter to the late lawfull
king Peter, whom Henrie the bastard as before (yée haue heard) did still persecute,
till he had bereft from him both his life and kingdome.
The cōmons by reason of the great subsidie and other oppressions rise in diuerse parts of the realme.
Villaines.
It was meant therefore that if the duke of Lancaster could compasse his purpose, for the
which he went at that time into Scotland, to the honour of the king and realme, then
should he shortlie after follow his brother of Cambridge with a great power, to trie what
chance God would send to him, against his aduersarie the king of Castile. ¶ In the
meane time other incidents fell within the realme in the fourth yeare of king Richard, sore
to the disquieting of the same, and vtter disappointing for that time of the duke of Lancasters
intent. The commons of the realme sore repining, not onelie for the pole grotes
that were demanded of them, by reason of the grant made in parlement (as yée haue
heard) but also (as some write) for that they were sore oppressed (as they tooke the matter)
by their land-lords, that demanded of them their ancient customes and seruices, set
on by some diuelish instinct & persuasion of their owne beastlie intentions, as men not
content with the state wherevnto they were called, rose in diuerse parts of this realme, and
assembled togither in companies, purposing to inforce the prince to make them frée and
to release them of all seruitude, whereby they stood as bondmen to their lords and superiours.
The beginning of the rebellion at Derford in Kent.
Where this rebellion of the commons first began, diuerse haue written diuerslie. One
author writeth, that (as he learned by one that was not farre from the place at that time)
the first beginning should be at Dertford in Kent: for when those pole shillings, or rather
(as other haue) pole grotes, were to be collected, no small murmuring, curssing, and repining
among the common people rose about the same, and the more indeed, through
the lewd demenour of some vndiscréet officers, that were assigned to the gathering thereof,
insomuch that one of those officers being appointed to gather vp that monie in Dertford
aforesaid, came to the house of one Iohn Tiler, that had both seruants in his house, and a
faire yong maid to his daughter. The officer there fore demanding monie for the said Tiler
and for his wife, his seruants, and daughter, the wife being at home, and hir husband
abroad at worke in the towne, made answer that hir daughter was not of age, and therefore
she denied to paie for hir.
Now here is to be noted, that this monie was in common speech said to be due for all those that were vndergrowne, bicause that yoong persons as well of the man as of the womankind, comming to the age of fouretéene or fifteene yeares, haue commonlie haire growing foorth about those priuie parts, which for honesties sake nature hath taught vs to couer and keepe secret. The officer therefore not satisfied with the mothers excuse, said |736| he would feele whether hir daughter were of lawfull age or not, and therewith began to misuse the maid, and search further than honestie would haue permitted. The mother streightwaies made an outcrie, so that hir husband being in the towne at worke, and hearing of this adoo at his house, came running home with his lathing staffe in his hand, and began to question with the officer, asking who made him so bold to keepe such a rule in his house: the officer being somewhat presumptuous, and highminded, would foorthwith haue flowne vpon this Tiler; but I. Tiler auoiding the officers blow, raught him such a rap on the pate, that his braines flue out, and so presentlie he died.
Great noise rose about this matter in the stréets, and the poore folks being glad, euerie man arraied himselfe to support Iohn Tiler, & thus the commons drew togither, and went to Maidestone, and from thence to Blackheath, where their number so increased, that they were reckoned to be thirtie thousand. And the said Iohn Tiler tooke vpon him to be their cheefe capteine, naming himselfe Iacke Straw. ¶ Others write, that one Thomas Baker of Fobbings was the first that procured the people thus to assemble togither: and that one of the kings seruants named Iohn Leg, with three of his fellowes, practised to féele yoong maids whether they were vndergrowne (as yée haue hard the officer did at Dertford) which dishonest and vnséemelie kind of dealing did set the people streight in such a rage and vprore, that they cared not what they did to be reuenged of such iniuries.
The commōs of Essex begin the commotiō as Wal. saith.
The armor of ye Essex rebels.
But Thomas Walsingham affirmeth, that the first sparkes of this rebellion kindled in
Essex, where the inhabitants of two townes onelie at the first, that were the authors and
first stirrers of all this mischéefe, did send vnto euerie little towne about, that all manner
of men, as well those that were aged, as others that were in their lustiest time and youthfull
yeares, should come to them with speed, setting all excuses apart, in their best arraie
and furniture for warre, threatning to such as came not, that their goods should be spoiled,
their houses burnt or cast downe, and they to lose their heads when they were taken.
The terror of this threatning caused the ignorant people to flocke to them by heaps, leauing
all their businesse, letting plough and cart stand, forsaking wife, children, and houses,
so that in a short time there were fiue thousand gotten togither of those commons and
husbandmen, of which number manie were weaponed onelie with staues, some with rustie
swords and billes, and other with smokie bowes, more ruddie than old yuorie, not hauing
past two or thrée arrowes, and the same happilie with one feather a peece.
Among a thousand of those kind of persons, yée should not haue séene one well armed: and yet by reason of their multitude, when they were once got togither, they thought the whole relme had not beene able to resist them; and supposed that they could with facilitie (in respect of the aduerse part) make the states of the land stoope to them, and by their permission to reteine or compulsion to resigne their roomes of dignitie. But the fond conceited rowt considered not the euent of this insurrection, that the woorst would be their owne; for the old saieng is true, namelie,
Læditur a stimulo quicunq; fricatur abillo.
The oth ministred by the rebels to all passengers.
Moreouer,
to make their part the stronger, these Essexmen sent ouer into Kent, aduertising
the people there of their enterprise, and therefore willed them to make them readie
to ioine with them for their obteining of libertie, and reforming of the euill customs of the
realme. Whether the Kentishmen through persuasions of their neighbors of Essex, by
occasion of that which had chanced at Dertford (as before yée haue heard) or (as it may
be) the same chancing at that selfe time, they being mooued as well by the one as the
other, vp they got (as yée haue heard) and gathering their power out of the next quarters
adioining by the like policie which had béene practised by the Essexmen, they stirred vp
the most part of the countrie to ioine with them, and foorthwith stopping the waie that
led to Canturburie, and arresting all such as passed by the same, they caused them to
swere that they should be true to king Richard, and to the commons, & neuer to receiue
anie king that should be called Iohn. And this was for the enuie which they bare to Iohn |737|
of Gant the duke of Lancaster, who in right of his wife Constance, that was daughter to
king Peter of Castile, did name himselfe king
of Castile.
The commons of other shires hearing of the stur in Kent & Essex, rise in like maner.
Lawiers, iustices & iurors brought to blockam feast by the rebels.
Also they caused them to sweare that they should be readie to come to them whensoeuer
they sent for them, and induce all their neighbours to take part with them. And further,
that they should neuer yéeld to anie tax to be leuied on the realme, except a fiftéenth
onelie. Thus it came to passe, that after it was spred abroad what stur these Essex and
Kentishmen kept; the commons also in the counties of Sussex, Hertford, Cambridge,
Suffolke, and Norffolke, and other shires about, bustled vp and ran togither on heapes, so
that the number of those vnrulie people maruellouslie increased, in such wise as now they
feared no resistance, and therefore began to shew proofe of those things which they had
before conceiued in their minds, beheading all such men of law, iustices, and iurors, as
they might catch, and laie hands vpon, without respect of pitie, or remorse of conscience,
alledging that the land could neuer enioy hir natiue and true libertie, till all those sorts of
people were dispatched out of the waie.
The next way to extinguish right.
An huge number of ye rebels. Fabian. Capteins of the Essex and Kentish rebels.
The rebels send to the K. to come speak with them.
This talke liked well the eares of the common vplandish people, and by the lesse conueieng
the more, they purposed to burne and destroie all records, euidences, court-rolles,
and other minuments, that the remembrance of ancient matters being remooued out of
mind, their landlords might not haue whereby to chalenge anie right at their hands.
Their number still increased: for all such as were in debt or danger of law for their misdemeanors
and offenses, came out of all coasts vnto them, so that when the Essexmen,
and other of the hither side the Thames, were passed ouer and ioined with the Kentishmen,
& those that were assembled on that side the riuer vpon Blackeheath; they were
estéemed to be an hundred thousand, hauing diuerse capteins besides the said Iacke
Straw, as William Wraw, Wat Tiler, Iacke Shéepheard, Tom Milner, and Hob Carter.
Whilest they were lodged on Blackheath, the king sent to them certeine knights, to vnderstand
of them the cause of their gathering thus togither, to whom answer was made, that
they were come togither to speake with the king about certeine causes and businesse, &
therefore they bad the messengers returne, and declare to the king that there was no remedie
but he must needs come and speake with them.
Ill counsell.
When this tale was told to the king, there were some that thought it best that he should
go to them, and know what their meaning was: but Simon de Sudburie the archbishop of
Canturburie, that was lord chancellor, and also sir Robert Hales lord of S. Iohns, and
as then lord treasuror, spake earnestlie against that aduise, and would not by anie meanes
that the king should go to such a sort of barelegged ribalds; but rather they wished that
he should take some order to abate the pride of such vile rascals. After the commons
vnderstood that the king would not come to them, by reason of the contrarie aduise giuen
to him by those two persons, the lord chancellor and the lord treasuror, they were maruellouslie
mooued against them, and sware that they would not rest till they had got them, &
chopped off their heads, calling them traitors to the king and realme.
Froissard.
The rebels spoile Southwarke, and set all prisoners at large.
Neuerthelesse there be that write, that the king (to cut off the branches of such mischeefe
now in the first budding thereof) to satisfie in part the desire of those rude people,
went downe the riuer in his barge to Rethereth, and there néere the shore keeping himselfe
still on the water, talked with a great number of them that came downe to the riuer side.
But forsomuch as he would not come foorth of his barge to them on land, which they
seemed most to desire, they were in a great rage, and so for that they could not haue him
amongst them (as they wished) in furious wise they ran to the citie, and at the first approach
they spoiled the burrough of Southwarke, brake vp the prisons of the Marshalsea,
& the Kings bench, set the prisoners at libertie, & admitted them into their companie.
The commons of London aiders of the rebels.
All rebels pretend reformation but indéed purpose destruction both of king and countrie.
This was on Corpus Christi daie, as the same authors write, that the king should thus
talke with them: but their first entring into Southwarke, was on Corpus Christi euen, as
Thomas Walsingham saith, passing at their pleasure to and fro the bridge all that night:
for although the lord maior, and other of the best citizens would gladlie haue closed the |738|
gates against them, yet they durst not doo it, for feare of the commons of the citie, who
seemed to fauour the cause of the rebels so apparantlie, that they threatned to kill both
the lord maior, & all other that would take vpon them to shut the gates against the commons.
The Londoners liked better of the commons, for that they protested the cause of
their assembling togither, was not but to seeke out the traitors of the realme, and when
they had found them foorth, and punished them according to that they had deserued, they
ment to be quiet. And to giue the more credit to their saiengs, they suffered none of their
companie to rob or spoile, but caused them to paie for that they tooke.
The Sauoie the duke of Lancasters house burnt by the rebels.
On the morrow being Corpus Christi day, on the which day it is reported that the king
should talke with them at Rethereth (as before ye haue heard) after that they saw that
they could not haue him to come and talke with them on land, as they wished, and that
now they had filled their heads full with the fume of such wines as they dranke in euerie
mans cellar that was set open for them, enter who would: they fell in talke with the
Londoners of manie lewd deuises, as of the apprehending of traitors, and speciallie concerning
such misliking as they had of the duke of Lancaster, whom they hated aboue all
other persons. And herevpon agréeing in one mind, after diuerse other of their outragious
dooings, they ran the same day to the said dukes house of the Sauoie, to the which in
beautie and statelinesse of building, with all maner of princelie furniture, there was not
any other in the realme comparable, which in despite of the duke, whom they called
traitor, they set on fire, and by all waies and means indeuoured vtterlie to destroie it.
Strange dealing of the rebels.
The iustice of the rebels.
The shamefull spoile which they there made was wonderfull, and yet the zeale of iustice,
truth, and vpright dealing which they would seeme to shew, was as nice and strange
on the other part, speciallie in such kind of misgouerned people: for in that spoiling of
the dukes house, all the iewels, plate, and other rich and sumptuous furniture which they
there found in great plentie, they would not that any man should fare the better by it of a
mite, but threw all into the fire, so to be consumed; and such things as the fire could not
altogither destroie, as plate and iewels, they brake and crashed in péeces, throwing the same
into the Thames. One of them hauing thurst a faire siluer peece into his bosome, meaning
to conueie it awaie, was espied of his fellowes, who tooke him, and cast both him and
the péece into the fire; saieng they might not suffer any such thing, sith they professed
themselues to be zealous of truth and iustice, and not théeues nor robbers.
The lawiers lodgings in the temple burnt by the rebels.
There were 32 of them, that being gotten into the celler of the Sauoie, where the dukes
wines laie, dranke so much of such swéete wine as they found there, that they were not
able to come foorth, but with stones & wood that fell downe as the house burned, they were
closed in, so that out they could not get. They laie there showting & crieng seuen daies
togither, and were heard of manie, but none came to helpe them, and so finallie they
perished. Now after that these wicked people had thus destroied the duke of Lancasters
house, and done what they could deuise to his reproch; they went to the temple, and
burnt the men of lawes lodgings, with their bookes, writings, and all that they might lay
hand vpon. Also the house of saint Iohns by Smithfield they set on fire, so that it burned
for the space of seuen daies togither. On Friday a great number of them, estéemed to 20
thousand, went to the manor of Heiburie that belonged vnto the lord of saint Iohns, and
setting fire on it, sought vtterlie to destroie the whole buildings about it.
The lord chancellor and the lord treasuror drawne out of the tower and put to death by the rebels.
Thom. Wals.
They were now diuided into thrée parts, one vnder the leading of Iacke Straw, tooke in
hand to ruinate that house, and an other number of them lay on mile end greene, and the
third companie kept vpon the tower hill, and would not suffer anie vittels to be conueied
into the tower, where the king at that time was lodged, and was put in such feare by those
rude people, that he suffered them to enter into the tower, where they sought so narowlie
for the lord chancelor, that finding him in the chappell, they drew him foorth togither with
the lord treasuror, and on the tower hill without reuerence of their estates and degrees,
with great noise and fell cries, they stroke off their heads. There were also beheaded at
the same time by those rude people, one of the kings seruants that was a sergeant at armes |739|
called Iohn Leg, who had vsed himselfe somewhat extremelie in gathering vp of the pole
monie, as by one writer it appeareth.
Also to make vp the messe, they beheaded a Franciscane
Frier, whom they had taken there at the same time, for malice of the duke of Lancaster,
bicause he was verie familiar with him. ¶ Some write that this frier was confessor,
and other say that he was physician to the king; but whatsoeuer he was, the commons
chopped off his head, to beare the other companie, not sparing for anie respect that might
be alledged in any of their behalfes.
The raging rebels make a pastime to kill men.
No respect of place with the rebels.
On the same day also they beheaded manie others, as well Englishmen as Flemings, for
no cause in the world, but onelie to satisfie the crueltie of the commons, that then were in
their kingdome, for it was a sport to them, when they gat any one amongst them, that was
not sworne to them, and séemed to mislike of their dooings, or if they bare but neuer so
little hatred to him, streightwaies to plucke of his hood, with such a yelling noise as they
tooke vp amongst them, and immediatlie to come thronging into the stréets, and strike off
his head.
Neither had they any regard to sacred places;
for breaking into the church of
the Augustine friers, they drew foorth thirteene Flemings, and beheaded them in the open
streets; and out of the parish churches in the citie, they tooke foorth seuentéene, and
likewise stroke off their heads, without reuerence either of the church or feare of God.
The outragious dealing of the rebels.
But they continuing in their mischéefous purpose, shewed their malice speciallie against
strangers, so that entring into euerie stréet, lane, and place, where they might find them,
they brake vp their houses, murthered them which they found within, and spoiled their
goods in most outragious manner. Likewise they entered into churches (as before ye
haue heard) into abbeies, monasteries, and other houses, namelie of men of law, which in
semblable sort they ransacked. They also brake vp the prisons of newgate, and of both
the counters, destroied the books, and set prisoners at libertie, and also the sanctuarie-men
of saint Martins le grand. And so likewise did they at Westminster, where they brake
open the eschequer, and destroied the ancient bookes and other records there, dooing
what they could to suppresse law, and by might to beate downe equitie and right, as it
is said,
Tunc ius calcatur violentia cum dominatur.
They that entered the tower, vsed themselues most presumptuouslie, and no lesse vnreuerentlie
against the princesse of Wales, mother to the king: for thrusting into hir
chamber, they offered to kisse her, and swasht downe vpon hir bed, putting hir into such
feare, that she fell into a swoone, and being taken vp and recouered, was had to the water
side, and put into a barge, & conueied to the place called the quéenes wardrobe, or the
tower riall, where she remained all that day and the night following, as a woman halfe dead,
till the king came to recomfort hir. It was strange to consider, in what feare the lords,
knights & gentlemen stood of the cruell proceedings of those rude & base people. For
where there were six hundred armed men, and as manie archers in the tower at that present,
there was not one that durst gainesaie their dooings.
The king offereth the rebels pardon.
Froissard.
Finallie, when they had eased their stomachs, with the spoiling, burning, and defacing of
sundrie places, they became more quiet, and the king by the aduise of such as were then
about him, vpon good deliberation of counsell, offered to them pardon, and his peace,
with condition that they should cease from burning and ruinating of houses, from killing
and murthering of men, and depart euerie man to his home without more adoo, and there
to tarrie for the kings charters confirmatorie of the same pardon. The Essexmen were
content with this offer, as they that were desirous to see their wiues and children, being
waxen wearie of continuall trauell and paines which they were constreined to take. The
king went foorth vnto Mile end, and there declared vnto the commons that they should
haue charters made to them of his grant, to make them all free. And further that euerie
shire, towne, lordship and libertie should haue banners of his armes deliuered vnto them,
for a confirmation of his grant. Herevpon they séemed well appeased, and the king rode |740|
to the queenes wardrobe, otherwise called the tower roiall, to visit his mother, and so did
comfort hir so well as he could, and taried with hir there all night.
The Essexmen satisfied with the kings promises, immediatlie departed homeward; howbeit
they appointed certeine of their companie to remaine still and tarie for the kings charters.
The Kentishmen also remained, and were as busie in maner the next day being
saturdaie, in all kind of mischiefous dealings, as they had béene before, to wit, in murthering
of men, ouerthrowing and burning of houses. The king therefore sent vnto them such
as declared in what sort their fellowes were gone home well satisfied, & from thencefoorth
to liue in quiet, and the same forme of peace he was contented to grant to them, if it liked
them to accept the same. Herevpon their chéefe capteine Wat Tiler, a verie craftie fellow,
and indued with much wit (if he had well applied it) said, that peace indeed he wished,
but yet so, as the conditions might be indited to his purpose.
The wicked purpose of the rebels.
The rebels would haue all law abolished.
He was determined to driue off the king and his councell (bicause he was of greater
force than they) with cauils and shifts till the next daie, that in the night following he
might the more easilie haue compassed his resolution, which was, hauing all the poorer sort
of the citie on his side, to haue spoiled the citie, and to set fire in foure corners of it, killing
first the king and the lords that were about him: but he that resisteth the proud, and
giueth his grace to the humble, would not permit the vngratious deuises of the naughtie and
lewd lozzell to take place, but suddenlie disappointed his mischeefous drift. For whereas
diuerse formes of charters had béene drawne according to the effect of the agréement with
the Essexmen, and none of them might please this lordlie rebell,
at length the king sent
to him one of his knights called sir Iohn Newton, to request him to come to him, that they
might talke of the articles which he stood vpon to haue inserted in the charter, of the
which one was to haue had a commission to put to death all lawiers, escheaters, and other
which by any office had any thing to doo with the law; for his meaning was that hauing
made all those awaie that vnderstood the lawes, all things should then be ordered according
to the will and disposition of the common people. It was reported in deed, that he
should saie with great pride the day before these things chanced, putting his hands to his
lips, that within foure daies all the lawes of England should come foorth of his mouth.
The wretches had vtterlie forgotten all law, both diuine and humane; otherwise they
would haue béene content to liue vnder law, and to doo vnto others as they would be
doone vnto, as the verie law of nature (than which there cannot be a better guide)
teacheth,
Quod tibi vis fieri mihi fac, quod non tibi, noli,
Sic potes in terris viuere iure poli.
Arrogant and proud words of a villen.
When therefore the said sir Iohn Newton called vpon him to come awaie to the king,
answered as it were with indignation: “If thou (saith he) hast so much hast to returne
to the king, thou maist depart, I will come at my pleasure.” When the knight therefore
was come from him, he followed indéed, but somwhat slowlie. And when he was come
néere to the place in Smithfield where the king then was, with certeine lords and knights,
& other companie about him, the said sir Iohn Newton was sent to him againe, to vnderstand
what he meant. And bicause the knight came to him on horssebacke, & did not
alight from his horsse, Wat Tiler was offended, & said in his furie, “that it became
him rather on foot than horssebacke to approach into his presence.” The knight not
able to abide such presumptuous demeanour in that proud and arrogant person, shaped
him this answer: “It is not amisse that I being on horssebacke, should come to thée
sitting on horssebacke.”
William Walworth maior of London a stout couragious man.
The death of Wat Tiler capteine of the rebels.
With which words Wat Tiler taking indignation, drew out his dagger, menacing to strike
the knight, calling him therewith traitor: the knight disdaining to be misvsed at the hands
of such a ribald, told him that he lied falselie, and with that plucked foorth his dagger.
Wat Tiler being among his men, shewed that he would not beare that iniurie, and foorthwith
made towards the knight to run vpon him. The king perceiuing the knight in danger, |741|
bad him alight from his horsse, and deliuer his dagger to Wat Tiler:
but when that would
not pacifie his proud and high mind, but that he would néeds flée vpon him, the maior of
London William Walworth, and other knights and esquiers that were about the king, told
him that it should be a shame for them all, if they permitted the knight in their presence
before the eies of their prince so to be murthered: wherfore they gaue counsell to succor
him foorthwith, and to apprehend the vile naughtie ribald. The king though he was but
a child in yeares, yet taking courage to him, commanded the maior to arrest him. The
maior being a man of incomparable boldnesse, foorthwith rode to him and arrested him,
in reaching him such a blow on the head, that he sore astonied him therewith: and
streightwaies other that were about the king, as Iohn Standish an esquier, and diuers
more of the kings seruants drew their swords, and thrust him through in diuerse parts of
his bodie, so that he fell presentlie from his horsse downe to the earth, and died there in
the place.
The king persuadeth the rebels.
When the commons beheld this, they cried out, “Our capteine is traitorouslie slaine;
let vs stand togither and die with him: let vs shoot and reuenge his death manfullie:”
and so bending their bowes, made them readie to shoot. The king shewing both hardinesse
and wisdome at that instant, more than his age required, set his spurs to his horsse,
and rode to them, saieng: “What is the matter my men, what meane you? Will you shoot
at your king? Be not troubled nor offended at the death of a traitor and ribald; I will be
your king, capteine and leader, follow me into the fields, and you shall haue all things
that you can desire.” This did the king, to the end he might appease them, least they
should haue set fire on the houses there in Smithfield, and haue attempted some further
mischéefe, in reuenge of the displeasure which they tooke for the death of their chéefe
leader. They mooued with these the kings words, followed him and the knights that were
with him, into the open fields, not yet resolued whether they should set vpon the king and
slea him, or else be quiet, and returne home with the kings charter.
Vehement words of the maior of London to the citizens crieng for aid against the rebels.
An armie without a capteine.
In the meane time, the lord maior of London was returned into the citie, with one man
onelie attending vpon him, and cried to the citizens; “Oh yée good and vertuous citizens,
come foorth out of hand, and helpe your king readie to be slaine, & helpe me your maior
standing in the same perill; or if yée will not helpe me for some faults committed by me
against you, yet forsake not your king, but helpe and succour him in this present danger.”
When the worshipfull citizens and other, that in their loiall hearts loued the king, had
heard these words, incontinentlie they put themselues in strong and sure armor, to the
number of a thousand men, and gathering themselues togither into the streets, tarried but
for some lord or knight that might conduct them to the king: and by chance there came
vnto them sir Robert Knolles, whom all of them requested that he would be their leader,
least comming out of arraie and order, they might the sooner be broken, who willinglie
led one part of them, and certeine other knights led other of them, clad in faire bright
armour vnto the kings presence. The king with the lords, knights and esquires, not a
little reioised at the comming of those armed men, and streightwaies compassed the commons
about, as they had beene a flocke of sheepe that should haue béene closed within
some fold, till it pleased the sheepheard to appoint foorth, which should be thrust into
pasture, and which taken to go to the shambels.
The rebels quite discouraged threw downe their weapons at the comming of the Londoners in aid of the king.
There was to be seene a maruellous change of the right hand of the lord, to behold
how they throwing downe staues, bils, axes, swords, bowes and arowes, humblie began
to sue for pardon, which a little before gloried to haue the life of the king and his seruants
wholie and altogither in their hands, power, and disposition. The poore wretches
sought to hide themselues in the corne that grew in the fields, in ditches, hedges and
dennes, and wheresoeuer they might get out of the way, so to safe gard their liues. The
knights that were with the king would gladlie haue beene dooing with them, and requested
licence of him to strike off the heads of some one or two hundred of them, that
it might be a witnesse in time to come, that the force of the order of knighthood was able |742|
to doo somewhat against the carters and ploughmen: but the king would not suffer them,
alledging that manie of them were come thither by compulsion, and not of their owne
accord, and therefore it might come to passe that those should die for it, that had nothing
offended: but he commanded that there should be proclamation made in London, that
the citizens should haue no dealings with them, nor suffer anie of them to come within
the citie that night, but to cause them to lie without doores.
Abraham Fleming out of Henrie Knighton canon of Leicester abbeie.
¶ In the report of this commotion chronographers doo somewhat varie, as by this present
extract out of Henrie Knighton canon of Leceister abbeie, liuing at the time of this
tumult may appeare: which Abraham Fleming hath faithfullie and trulie translated out
of the annales of the said canon written in parchment in old Latine letters, as followeth.
Vpon a saturdaie, these malcontents [to wit, Thomas Baker the first moouer but afterwards
the principall leaders, Iacke Straw, Iacke Miler, Iacke Carter, Iacke Trewman,
and their trecherous traine] met togither in Smithfield, whither also the king repaired
in the morning, who although in yeares he was but yoong, yet in wisedome and discretion
he was well growne. The ringleader of this tumultuous rowt, whose right name was
Wat Tiler, which he had now changed into Iacke Strawe, approched neere the king, in
so much that he might in a maner touch him, being the mouth of all the residue, and
hauing in his hand a drawne dagger, which he tossed from hand to hand, boy-like plaieng
with it, & watching due time therewith, if not to stab, yet suddenlie to smite the king,
if he denied their requests. Wherevpon they that were next and about the king were
greatlie affeard, least his pretended mischéefe should come to passe.
Now he craued of the king that all warrens, waters, parks and woods should be common, so that as well poore as rich might fréelie in any place wheresoeuer practise fishing in ponds, pooles, riuers, or any waters, and might hunt déere in forrests and parkes, and the hare in the fields, with diuerse other requests, which he would haue granted without contradiction or gainesaieng, and exercise without controlment. Now when the king in the grant hereof by deliberation vsed some delaie, Iacke Straw drew neerer vnto him, and speaking vnto him certeine thretening words, tooke hold of the horsses bridle whereon the king rode, vpon what presumptuous enterprise I wot not. Which Iohn Walworth a burgesse of London beholding, and fearing present death to hang ouer the kings head, caught a weapon in his hand, and therwith thrust Iacke Straw through the throte, which when another that was by being an esquier, name Rafe Standish did see, with his weapon also ran him through the sides; in so much that he fell flat on his backe to the ground, and beating with his hands to and fro a while, at last he gaue vp his vnhappie ghost.
Then a great clamor and lamentable outcrie was made, and heard a great while togither, saieng; Our guide is dead, our capteine is dead. And indéed so he was, being dragged by the hands and féet in a vile and contemptible sort into saint Bartholomewes church hard by. Then did manie of the vnrulie multitude withdraw themselues, and vanishing awaie betooke them to their héeles, being about the number (as it was thought) of ten thousand. Then the king minding to make amends and to requite receiued courtesie, knighted the said Iohn Walworth, & Rafe Standish, with foure burgesses more of the citie, namelie Iohn Philpot, Nicholas Brembre, Iohn Laund, and Nicholas Twifield, girding them about the wast with the girdle of knighthood, which was the maner of their graduating. Then the king hauing ordeined and made the foresaid six knights, commanded that the residue of the curssed crue should depart and get them into the field, that méeting togither in a companie, he might fall vnto a treatie of agreement with them.
The rowt being there assembled, behold a multitude of armed men ran rusling out of the citie, sir Robert Knols being their capteine, who with these his soldiers compassed & hedged in the poore catiues distressed in the field like shéepe that haue lost their shéepheard. Then the king of his accustomed clemencie, being pricked with pitie, would not that the wretches should die, but spared them being a rash and foolish multitude, and commanded them euerie man to get him home to his owne house; howbeit manie of |743| them, at the kings going awaie suffered the danger of death. In this miserable taking were reckoned to the number of twentie thousand. Thus saith Knighton, not as an eie-witnesse, but as taught by heare-saie, whereby he compiled the greatest part of his annales, as he himselfe confesseth, seeming sorrie that he was so constreined, as by part of the octastichon at the foot of the first page, intituled Lamentum compilatoris, appeareth in maner and forme following:
Sum cæcus factus subita caligine tactus,
Nec opus inceptum iam corrigo forsan ineptum,
Me metuo dubium pro veris sæpe locutum,
Plus audita loquor quàm mihi visa sequor, &c.
All the foresaid villanies notwithstanding against the king and the state, tending wholie to the subuersion of law and ciuill gouernement, albeit the wretches deserued no sparke of fauour, but extreame seueritie of iudgement to be executed vpon them; yet (as yee haue heard) besides the great clemencie of the king, exhibited vnto them in remitting their offense, and acquiting them from the rigor of the law, he granted and gaue to them the charter, which they had requested, faire written and sealed, to auoid a greater mischiefe, & commanded it for a time to be deliuered them, knowing that Essex and Kent were not so pacified, but that if they were not the sooner contented, and that partlie after their minds, they would vp againe. The tenor of the charter which was gotten thus by force of the king was as followeth.
The like there was granted to them of other countries as well as to these of Hertfordshire in ye same forme, the names of the counties changed.
RICHARDUS Dei gratia rex Angliæ & Franciæ, & dominus Hiberniæ: omnibus balliuis & fidelibus suis, ad quos præsentes litteræ peruenerint, salutem. Sciatis quòd de gratia nostra speciali manumisimus vniuersos ligeos & singulos subditos nostros & alios comitatus Hertfordiæ, & ipsos & eorum quemlibet ab omni bondagio exuimus, & quietos facimus per præsentes, ac etiam perdonamus eisdem ligeis ac subditis nostris omnimodas felonias, proditiones, transgressiones, & extortiones, per ipsos vel aliquem eorum qualitercúnque factas siue perpetratas, ac etiam vtlagariam & vtlagarias, si qua vel quæ in ipsos, vel aliquem ipsorum fuerit vel fuerint hijs occasionibus promulgata vel promulgatæ, & summam pacem nostram eis & eorum cuilibet inde concedimus. In cuius rei testimonium, has litteras nostras fieri fecimus patentes. Teste meipso apud London 15 die Iunij. Anno regni nostri quarto.
The townesmen of saint Albons not yet quieted.
The commons hauing obteined this charter departed home, but ceassed not from their
riotous demeanour in sundrie parts of the realme, and especiallie at saint Albons, where
after the townesmen were returned home, they kept such a coile against the abbat and
moonks, to haue certeine ancient charters deliuered them that concerned their liberties,
and to haue such new made and deliuered to them as might serue their purpose; that
bicause such old charters as they requested were not to be had, the abbat and moonks
looked euerie houre when their house should be set on fire and burnt ouer their heads.
The prior and certeine other as well moonks as laie men that were seruants to the abbat,
fled for feare of the rage of those misgouerned people, knowing that they hated them
deadlie, and therefore looked for no courtesie at their hands. They had obteined the
kings letters vnto the abbat, commanding him to deliuer vnto them such charters as they
had giuen information to be remaining in his hands, so that vnder colour therof, they
called for those writings in most importunate wise, threatning sore, if they were not brought
to light, vtterlie to destroie the house by setting it
on fire.
But to speake of all the vnrulie parts of those vnrulie people, it were too long a processe: yet at length after they vnderstood how their grand capteine and chéefe ringleader |744| Wat Tiler was slaine, they began somewhat to asswage their presumptuous attempts, the rather for that there came a knight with the kings letter of protection in behalfe of the abbat and his house, and yet they were not so calmed, but that they continued in requiring to haue charters made to them by the abbat, of the like forme and effect to that which the king had made, concerning the infranchising them from bondage, whereby they that obteined such charters tooke themselues to be discharged of all seruices and accustomed labors, so that they meant not to doo any further works, nor yeeld such customes as before time they vsuallie had béene accustomed to doo and yéeld vnto their landlords.
The hurling time.
The outragious dealings of the Suffolke rebels.
Sir Iohn Cauendish lord chiefe iustice beheaded.
Neither did the townesmen of S. Albons, and the tenants of other townes and villages
thereabout, that belonged to the abbeie of S. Albons, thus outragiouslie misdemeane
themselues, but euerie where else the commons kept such like stur, so that it was rightlie
called the hurling time, there were such hurlie burlies kept in euerie place, to the great
danger of ouerthrowing the whole state of all good gouernment in this land. For euen
the selfe same saturdaie after Corpus Christi day, in Suffolke there were got togither to
the number of fiftie thousand men, by the setting on of Iohn Wraw, a naughtie lewd
priest, that had beene first among the Essexmen at London, and was sent downe in all
post hast from Wat Tiler, to stir the commons in those parts to commit the like mischéefe
as he had séene begun about London.
These fellowes therfore, after they were assembled
togither, fell to the destroieng of the manors and houses of men of law, & such lawiers as
they caught, they slue, and beheded sir Iohn Cauendish lord chiefe iustice of England,
and set his head vpon the pillorie in the market place in S. Edmundsburie.
The prior of S. Edmundsburie slaine.
This Edmund Brumfield was committed to prison by the K. for his presumptuous intrusion into the abbacie of Burie.
Also sir Iohn of Cambridge the prior of saint Edmundsburie, as he would haue fled
from them, was taken not far from Mildenhale, and likewise beheaded, his bodie being
left naked in the open field, and no man presuming to burie it, during the space of fiue
daies, for feare of the cruell commons. His head was set vpon a pole, and caried before
Iohn Wraw and other of those wicked people; the which comming to Burie, and entring
the towne in maner of a procession, when they came into the market place where the
pillorie stood, as it were in token of the old friendship betwixt the lord chiefe iustice,
and the said prior, they made sport with their heads, making them sometime as it were
to kisse, other whiles to sound in either others eare. After they had taken their pastime
inough herewith, they set both the heads againe aloft vpon the pillorie. After this, they
beheaded an other moonke called Dan Iohn de Lakinghuith, whose hed was likewise set
by the other two vpon the pillorie. Moreouer, they caused the moonks to come foorth
and bring vnto them all such obligations, in which the townesmen stood bound vnto the
monasterie for their good abearing; likewise such charters of liberties of the towne of
Burie, which king Cnute the founder of the said monasterie, and his successors had
granted to the same: which writings, when they had brought foorth, and protested that
they knew of no more, the commons would scarselie beleeue them, and therefore called
the townesmen foorth, and bad them sée if that there were all such writings as they thought
stood with their aduantage to haue brought to light. The townesmen feigned as though
they had beene sorie to see such rule kept against the moonks, where in déed they had
set the commons in hand with all these things.
To conclude, the commons tooke this
order with the moonks, that if the townesmen might not obteine their ancient liberties,
by the hauing of those writings, they should declare what the same liberties were, which
they were woont to inioy, and the abbat of Burie, Edmund Brumfield, being then in
prison at Notingham whom they purposed to deliuer (so that he should celebrat diuine
seruice in his monasterie on Midsummer daie next) within fourtie daies after his comming
home, should confirme with his seale such charter as was to be deuised and made
concerning the same liberties of the said townesmen, and the couent should likewise put
therevnto their common seale.
Moreouer, they constreined the moonks to deliuer vnto the townesmen, a crosse and |745|
a chalice of fine gold, and other iewels that belonged to the abbeie, being in value aboue
the worth of a thousand pounds in monie, the which was to remaine in the hands of the
townsmen, vpon this condition, that if Edmund Brumfield being deliuered out of prison
inioied the dignitie of abbat there, and with all put his seale togither with the couent
seale within the time limited, vnto a writing that should conteine the liberties of the towne,
that then the same crosse, chalice, and other iewels should be restored vnto the monasterie,
or else the same to remaine for euer to the townesmen as forfeited. Such were
the dooings of those rebels in and about the towne of Burie: and the like disorders &
breach of peace followed by the commotions of the commons in Cambridgeshire, and in
the Ile of Elie, resembling the others in slaughters of men, destroieng of houses, and all
other sorts of mischéefe.
Iohn Littester capteine of ye Norfolke rebels.
The earl of Suffolke escapeth from the rebels.
In like maner in Norffolke there was assembled an huge number of those vnrulie countrie
people, which vnder the guiding of a dier of cloth, commonlie called Iohn Littester,
that had dwelt in Norwich, attempted and did all such vngratious feats, as they had heard
that other did in other parts of the realme, yea and greater also, putting foorth their hands
vnto rapine and robberie.
And whereas they were wholie conspired togither, and bent
to commit all kind of mischéefe, yet estéeming their owne authoritie to be small, they
purposed to haue brought William Vfford earle of Suffolke into their fellowship, that if
afterwards they might happilie be impeached hereafter, for such their naughtie and most
wicked dooings, they might haue had some shadow or colour, as it were through him,
whie they had delt in such vnrulie sort. But the earle aduertised of their intention, suddenlie
rose from supper, and got him awaie by vnknowne waies, still fleeing from the
commons, till at length he got to S. Albons, and so from thence to the king.
The Norfolk rebels compell the noblemen & gentlemen to be sworne to them.
Sir Robert Salle slaine by one of his own villains.
The capteine of the Norfolke rebels forceth the noblemen and gentlemen to serue him at the table.
The commons missing of their purpose for the hauing of him, laid hold vpon all such
knights and other gentlemen as came in their waie, and were found at home in their
houses, compelling them to be sworne to them, and to ride with them through the countrie,
as the lord Scales, William lord Morlie, sir Iohn Brewes, sir Stephan Hales, and sir
Robert Salle: which sir Robert continued not long aliue among them, for he could not
dissemble as the residue, but began to reprooue openlie their naughtie dooings, for the
which he had his braines dasht out by a countrie clown, one that was his bondman, and
so he ended his life, who if he might haue come to haue tried his manhood and strength
with them in plaine battell, had beene able to haue put a thousand of those villaines in
feare, his valiancie and prowesse was such. The residue taught by his example that they
must either dissemble or die for it, were glad to currie fauour, praising or dispraising all
things as they saw the commons affected, and so comming into credit with their
chéefteine
Iohn Littester, that named himselfe king of the commons, they were preferred to
serue him at the table, in taking the assaie of his meats and drinks, and dooing other
seruices, with knéeling humblie before him as he sat at meat, as sir Stephan Hales who
was appointed his caruer, and others had other offices assigned them.
A warlike bishop.
At length, when those commons began to wax wearie of taking paines in euill dooings,
they tooke counsell togither, and agreed to send two knights, to wit, the lord Morlie, and
sir Iohn Brewes, and three of the commons, in whom they put great confidence, vnto the
king; to obteine their charter of manumission and infranchising, and to haue the same
charter more large than those that were granted to other countries. They deliuered great
summes of monie vnto those whome they sent, to bestow the same for the obteining of
pardon, and such grants as they sued for, which monie they had got by force of the citizens
of Norwich, to saue the citie from fire and sacking.
These knights as they were on
their iournie, at Ichingham not farre distant from Newmarket, not looking for anie such
thing, met with sir Henrie Spenser bishop of Norwich, a man more fit for the field than
the church, & better skilled (as may appéere) in arms than in diuinitie. This bishop had
aduertisements at his manor of Burlie néere to Okam in the parties about Stamford, of the
sturre which the commons in Norffolke kept, and therevpon resolued streightwaies to |746|
see what rule there was holden. He had in his companie at that time, not passing eight
lances, and a small number of archers.
Spenser bish. of Norwich goeth as capteine against the rebels.
The bishop méeting thus with the knights, examined them streightwaies if there were
anie of the traitours there with them. The knights at the first were doubtfull to bewraie
their associats: but at last imboldened by the bishops words, declared that two of the
chéefe dooers in the rebellion were there present, and the third was gone to prouide for
their dinner. The bishop streightwaies commanded those two to be made shorter by the
head, and the third he himselfe went to seeke, as one of his shéepe that was lost; not to
bring him home to the fold, but to the slaughter-house, as he had well deserued (in the
bishops opinion) sith he had so mischéefouslie gone astraie, and alienated himselfe from
his dutifull allegiance. These persons being executed, and their heads pight on the end
of poles, and so set vp at Newmarket, the bishop with the knights tooke their waie with
all spéed towards Northwalsham in Norffolke, where the commons were purposed to staie
for answer from the king:
and as he passed through the countrie, his number increased,
for the knights and gentlemen of the countrie, hearing how their bishop had taken his
speare in hand, and was come into the field armed, ioined themselues with him.
The fortifieng of the rebels campe.
The bishop is the first man that chargeth the rebels in their campe.
The Norfolke rebels vanquished.
When therefore the bishop was come into the place where the commons were incamped,
he perceiued that they had fortified their campe verie stronglie with ditches, and such
other stuffe as they could make shift with, as doores, windowes, boords, & tables, and
behind them were all their cariages placed, so that it séemed they meant not to flie.
Herewith the bishop being chafed with the presumptuous boldnesse of such a sort of
disordered persons, commanded his trumpets to sound to the battell, and with his speare
in the rest,
he charged them with such violence, that he went ouer the ditch, and laied
so about him, that through his manfull dooings, all his companie found meanes to passe
the ditch likewise, and so therewith followed a verie sore and terrible fight, both parts
dooing their best to vanquish the other. But finallie the commons were ouercome,
and
driuen to seeke their safegard by flight, which was sore hindered by their cariages that
stood behind them, ouer the which they were forced to clime and leape so well as they
might. Iohn Littester and other cheefe capteins were taken aliue. The bishop therefore
caused the said Littester to be arreigned of high treason, and condemned, and so he was
drawne, hanged, and headed according to the iudgement.
The bishop heard his confession, and by vertue of his office absolued him: and to shew
some parcell of sorrowing for the mans mischance, he went with him to the galowes. But
it séemed that pitie wrought not with the bishop, to quench the zeale of iustice: for he
caused not Littester onelie to be executed, but sought for all other that were the chéefe
dooers in that rebellion, causing them to be put vnto death, and so by that meanes quieted
the countrie. ¶ To recite what was doone in euerie part of the realme in time of those
hellish troubles, it is not possible: but this is to be considered, that the rage of the commons
was vniuersallie such, as it might séeme they had generallie conspired togither, to
doo what mischeefe they could deuise.
As among sundrie other, what wickednesse was
it, to compell teachers of children in grammer schooles to sweare neuer to instruct any
in their art? Againe, could they haue a more mischeefous meaning, than to burne and
destroie all old and ancient monuments, and to murther and dispatch out of the waie all
such as were able to commit to memorie, either any new or old records? For it was
dangerous among them to be knowne for one that was lerned, and more dangerous, if any
men were found with a penner and inkhorne at his side: for such seldome or neuer
escaped from them with life.
The capteine once slaine the soldiers faint.
An armie of fortie thousand horssemen.
The Kentishmen eftsoones rebell.
But to returne to saie somewhat more concerning the end of their rebellious enterprises,
you must vnderstand, how after that Wat Tiler was slaine at London in the presence of
the king (as before ye haue heard) the hope and confidence of the rebels greatlie decaied:
and yet neuerthelesse, the king and his councell being not well assured, granted to the
commons (as ye haue heard) charters of manumission and infranchisement from all |747|
bondage, and so sent them awaie home to their countries: and foorthwith herevpon he assembled
an armie of the Londoners, and of all others in the countries abroad that bare
him good will, appointing none to come, but such as were armed and had horsses, for he
would haue no footmen with him.
Thus it came to passe, that within thrée daies he had
about him fourtie thousand horssemen, as was estéemed;
so that in England had not béene
heard of the like armie assembled togither at one time. And herewith was the king aduertised,
that the Kentishmen began eftsoones to stir, wherewith the king and the whole
armie were so grieuouslie offended, that they meant streight to haue set vpon that countrie,
and to haue wholie destroied that rebellious generation. But thorough intercession
made by the lords and gentlemen of that countrie, the king pacified his mood, and so
resolued to procéed against them by order of law and iustice, causing iudges to sit and
to make inquisition of the malefactors, and especiallie of such as were authors of the
mischéefes.
Iack Straw and his adherents executed.
And about the same time did the maior of London sit in iudgement, as well vpon the
offendors that were citizens, as of other that were of Kent, Essex, Southsex, Norffolke,
Suffolke, and other counties, being found within the liberties of the citie; and such as
were found culpable, he caused them to lose their heads, as Iacke Straw, Iohn Kirkbie,
Alane Tredera, and Iohn Sterling, that gloried of himselfe, for that he was the man that
had slaine the archbishop. This fellow (as it is written by some authors) streight waies
after he had doone that wicked deed, fell out of his wits, and comming home into Essex
where he dwelt, tied a naked sword about his necke, that hoong downe before on his brest,
and likewise a dagger naked, that hanged downe behind on his backe, and so went vp and
downe the lanes & stréets about home, crieng out, and protesting, that with those weapons
he had dispatched the archbishop; and after he had remained a while at home, he came
to London againe, for that he shuld receiue (as he said) the reward there of the act which
he had committed: and so indéed, when he came thither, and boldlie confessed that he
was the man that had beheaded the archbishop, he lost his head in steed of a recompense:
and diuerse other both of Essex and Kent, that had laid violent hands vpon the archbishop
came to the like end at London, where they did the deed, being bewraied by their owne
confessions.
The maior and fiue aldermen knighted.
The armes of London augmented by additiō of the dagger.
Here is to be remembred, that the king, after the citie of London was deliuered from
the danger of the rebels (as before ye haue heard) in respect of the great manhood, and
assured loialtie which had appeared in the maior, and other of the aldermen, for some part
of recompense of their faithfull assistance in that dangerous season, made the said maior
William Walworth knight, with fiue other aldermen his brethren, to wit, Nicholas Bramble,
Iohn Philpot, Nicholas Twiford, Robert Laundre, and Robert Gaiton, also Iohn
Standish, that (as ye haue heard) holpe to slaie Wat Tiler. Moreouer, the king granted,
that there should be a dagger added to the armes of the citie of London, in the right
quarter of the shield, for an augmentation of the same armes, and for a remembrance of
this maior his valiant act, as dooth appeare vnto this daie; for till that time, the citie bare
onelie the crosse, without the dagger.
The cōmons of Essex rebell afresh.
The rebels of Essex are scattered & slaine.
Although the kings authoritie thus began to shew it selfe, to the terror of rebels; yet
the commons of Essex eftsoones assembled themselues togither, not far from Hatfield
Peuerell, and sent to the king to know of him if his pleasure was, that they should inioy
their promised liberties: and further, that they might be as frée as their lords, and not
to come to any court, except it were to the great léet, twise in the yeare. When the king
heard such presumptuous requests, he was in a great chafe, & dispatched the messengers
awaie, with a sore threatning answer, saieng that bondmen they were, and bondmen they
should be, and that in more vile manner than before, to the terrible example of all other
that should attempt any the like disorders:
and foorthwith, the earle of Buckingham, and
the lord Thomas Percie, brother to the earle of Northumberland, were sent with an armie
to represse those rebels, whome they found fortified within woods, hedges and ditches |748|
verie stronglie, but with small adoo they were put to flight, & about fiue hundred of
them slaine; the residue saued themselues as well as they might, by succour of the woods.
There were eight hundred horsses also taken, which those rebels had there with them, to
draw and carrie their baggage.
Those of the rebels that escaped, were not yet so tamed by that ouerthrow, but that assembling themselues togither in a rowt, they made towards Colchester: and comming thither, would haue persuaded the townesmen to haue ioined with them in a new rebellion. But when they could not bring their purpose to passe they marched towards Sudburie. The lord Fitz Walter, and sir Iohn Harleston, vnderstanding which waie they tooke, followed them with a companie of armed men, and suddenlie setting vpon them as they were making their proclamations, slue of them so manie as it liked them, and the other they saued, and suffered to depart, or else committed them to prison. After this, the king came to Hauering at the bowre, and from thence to Chelmisford, where he appointed sir Robert Trisilian to sit in iudgement of the offendors and rebels of that countrie, wherevpon an inquest being chosen, a great number were indited, arreigned, & found giltie, so that vpon some one gallowes there were nine or ten hanged togither.
Fabian. The rebels executed in euerie lordship.
The king calleth in his letters of infranchising granted to the bondmen.
In euerie countrie were like inquiries made, and the chéefe offendors apprehended and
put to death in euerie lordship through the realme, where anie of them were detected, by
ten, twelue, twentie, thirtie, yea and in some places by fortie at once; so that the whole
number grew to fifteene hundred and aboue. At the first, when the kings iustices began
to sit in Essex, Kent, and at London, by reason of the multitude that were to be executed,
they onelie chopped off their heads, but afterwards when that kind of death seemed too
close and secret for so open offenses, they proceeded according to the accustomed law of
the realme, by condemning them to be drawne and hanged, and according thervnto they
were executed.
In the meane time, the king by the aduise of his councell, directed his
letters reuocatorie into euerie countie there, to be proclaimed in euerie citie, borrow,
towne, and place, as well within the liberties as without; by the which letters he reuoked,
made void and frustrate his former letters of infranchising the bondmen of his realme, and
commanded that such as had the same letters, should without delaie bring them in, and
restore them to him and his councell to be cancelled, as they would answer vpon their faith
and allegiance which they owght to him, and vpon paine of forfeiting all that they had.
The date of which letters reuocatorie was at Chelmesford, the second daie of Iulie, in the
fift yeare of his reigne.
The king remooueth to S. Albons.
When the king had quieted the countie of Essex, and punished such as were the chéefe
sturrers of that wicked commotion in those parts, he went to saint Albons, to sée iustice
doone vpon such as had demeaned themselues most presumptuouslie against the kings
peace in that towne, namelie against the abbat and his house, who sought to defend themselues
vnder a colour of fréendship, that they trusted to find in some persons about the
king. But that trust deceiued them, and procured the more displeasure against them, for
that they would not sue for fauour at the abbats hands in time, by submitting themselues
vnto his will and pleasure. To be breefe, the king came thither with a great number of
armed men and archers, and caused his iustice sir Robert Trisilian to sit in iudgement
vpon the malefactors, that were brought thither from Hertford gaile.
Iohn Ball.
Iohn Ball his prophesie.
Thither was brought also to the king from Couentrie, Iohn Ball preest, whom the citizens
of Couentrie had taken, and now here at saint Albons they presented him to the
kings presence, wherevpon he was arreigned and condemned, to be drawne, hanged, and
headed for such notable treasons as he was there conuicted of. He receiued iudgement
vpon the saturdaie the first daie that the said sir Robert Trisilian sat in iudgement, but he
was not executed till the mondaie following. This man had beene a preacher the space of
twentie yeares, and bicause his doctrine was not according to the religion then by the
bishops mainteined, he was first prohibited to preach in anie church or chappell; and when
he ceassed not for all that, but set foorth his doctrine in the streets & fields where he might |749|
haue audience,
at length he was committed to prison, out of the which he prophesied that
he should be deliuered with the force of twentie thousand men, and euen so it came to
passe in time of the rebellion of the commons.
Iohn Ball his sermon to the rebels.
When all the prisons were broken vp, and the prisoners set at libertie, he being therefore
so deliuered, followed them, & at Blackeheath when the greatest multitude was there
got togither (as some write) he made a sermon, taking this saieng or common prouerbe for
his theame, wherevpon to intreat,
When Adam delu’d, and Eue span,
Who was then a gentleman?
and so continuing his sermon, went about to prooue by the words of that prouerbe, that from the beginning, all men by nature were created alike, and that bondage or seruitude came in by iniust oppression of naughtie men. For if God would haue had anie bondmen from the beginning, he would haue appointed who should be bond & who free. And therefore he exhorted them to consider, that now the time was come appointed to them by God, in which they might (if they would) cast off the yoke of bondage, & recouer libertie. He counselled them therefore to remember themselues, and to take good hearts vnto them, that after the manner of a good husband that tilleth his ground, and riddeth out thereof such euill wéeds as choke and destroie the good corne, they might destroie first the great lords of the realme, and after the iudges and lawiers, questmoongers, and all other whom they vndertooke to be against the commons, for so might they procure peace and suertie to themselues in time to come, if dispatching out of the waie the great men, there should be an equalitie in libertie, no difference in degrées of nobilitie, but a like dignitie and equall authoritie in all things brought in among them.
When he had preached and set foorth such kind of doctrine, and other the like fond and foolish toies vnto the people, they extolled him to the starres, affirming that he ought to be archbishop and lord chancellour, where he that then enioied that roome, meaning sir Simon de Sudburie that then was aliue, was a traitor to the king and realme, and worthie to lose his head, wheresoeuer he might be apprehended. Manie other things are reported by writers of this Iohn Ball, as the letter, which vnder a kind of darke riddle he wrote to the capteine of the Essex rebels, the copie whereof was found in one of their pursses that was executed at London.
IOHN Scheepe S. Marie preest of Yorke, and now of Colchester, greeteth well Iohn namelesse, and Iohn the Miller, and Iohn Carter, & biddeth them that they beware of guile in Bourrough, & stand togither in Gods name, & biddeth Piers ploughman go to his worke, and chastise well Hob the robber, & take with you Iohn Trewman and all his fellowes, and no mo. Iohn the Miller Y ground small, small small, the kings sonne of heauen shall paie for all. Beware or yee be wo, know your freend from your fo, haue inough and saie ho, and doo well and better, flee sinne and seeke peace, and hold you therein, and so biddeth Iohn Trewman and all his fellowes.
Iohn Ball executed at S. Albons.
This letter he confessed himselfe to haue written, as Thomas Walsingham affirmeth,
with manie other things which he had doone and committed, to the disquieting of the
realme, for the which he was drawne, hanged, and beheaded at saint Albons, the fiftéenth
of Iulie, being monday, in this fifth yeare of king Richards reigne. On the same daie, the
kings iustice sir Robert Trisilian sat vpon the rebels of saint Albons, and other of the
countrie of Hertford, afore whome, by such policie as he vsed, there were a great number
indicted, and diuerse being arreigned, were found guiltie, as William Grindecob, William
Cadindon, Iohn Barbor, and certeine others, which were hanged and drawne, to the |750|
number of fifteene persons in all; diuerse chéefe men of the towne were committed to prison,
as Richard Wallingford, Iohn Garleeke, William Berewill, Thomas Putor and others of
the countrie about. There were committed to prison to the number of fourscore persons,
the which neuerthelesse, by the kings pardon, were released and
dismissed.
The king calleth in by proclamation all such letters of manumission, as the abbat of saint Albons had granted to his bondmen.
The hatred which the townesmen had conceiued against the abbat and conuent of S.
Albons, was suerlie great, and manie deuises they had to haue saued those that were
executed. And where as well the townesmen, as other of the abbats and conuents tenants,
both of Hertfordshire, and Buckinghamshire, had gotten of the abbat and conuent letters
of discharge, from dooing anie bound seruice, the king directed his letters vnto certeine
commissioners, as to Iohn Ludowicke, Iohn Westwicombe, Iohn Kenting, Richard Perers,
Walter Saunford, Richard Gifford, Thomas Eidon, and William Eccleshall, commanding
them to cause proclamation to be made in all such townes and places as were thought
necessarie, through the whole countries of Buckingham and Hertford, that all and euerie
person and persons that ought and had beene accustomed to doo or yeeld anie manner of
seruices, customes, or duties, whether they were bondmen or free, vnto the said abbat
and couent of S. Albons, should doo and yéeld the same seruices, customes, and duties,
in such like forme & manner, as they had beene vsed to doo, before the time of the late
troubles, & not to chalenge or claime any libertie or priuilege which they inioied not before
the same troubles, vpon their faith & allegiance in which they stood bound to him, and
vpon paine to forfeit all that they might forfeit: and in case anie were found to doo contrarie
thervnto, the same commissioners had authoritie, and were commanded to arrest
and imprison them, till for their further punishment, order might be taken and agreed vpon
in that behalfe accordinglie.
The commōs of Hertfordshire sworne to the king.
On saint Margarets daie, the king being readie to take his iournie to Berkhamstéed, in
the great court of the abbeie of S. Albons had all the commons of the countie of Hertford
before him, that had summons there to appeare, all that were betwixt fiftéene and thréescore
yéeres of age, where they tooke an oth togither from thencefoorth, to be faithfull
subiects vnto him, and neuer to rise or make anie commotion, to the disturbance of his
peace; and rather to die, than to consent vnto anie rebellious persons, whome they should
to the vttermost of their powers do their best, to apprehend and deliuer them to the kings
prison, that they might be foorth comming. After they had receiued this oth, they were
licenced to depart, and the king rode to Berkhamsteed, where he remained for a time,
and went to Esthamstéed to recreate himselfe with hunting, where he was informed, that
those which were hanged at S. Albons, were taken from the gallowes, and remooued a good
waie from the same: with which presumption he was so stirred, that he sent foorthwith
his letters to the bailiffes of the towne of S. Albons, commanding them vpon the sight of
the same, to cause cheines to be made, and to bring the said bodies backe vnto the gallowes,
and to hang them in those chaines vpon the same gallowes, there to remaine, so
long as one peece might sticke to another, according to the forme of the iudgement giuen.
The test of this writ thus directed to the bailiffes of saint Albons, was at Esthamstéed the
third of August, in the fift yeare of this kings reigne, and in the yeare of our lord a thousand
three hundred foure score and one.
The townesmen of S. Albons durst not disobeie the kings commandement, and so hanged vp againe in chaines the dead bodies of their neighbors, greatlie to their shame and reproch, when they could get none other for anie wages to come néere the stinking carcasses, but that they were constreined themselues to take in hand so vile an office. And such was the end of the tumults at S. Albons, where as well as in other places, the vnrulie commons had plaied their parts. To conclude and make an end of these diuelish troubles, to the end it may appeare, in what danger as well the K. as the whole state of the realme stood, by the mischéefous attempts of the vnrulie people, I haue thought good to declare the confession of Iacke Straw one of their chéefe capteins (and next in reputation |751| amongst them vnto Wat Tiler) when he came to be executed in London, according to iudiciall sentence passed against him.
The confession of Iacke Straw at the time of his death.
¶ “At
the same time (said he) that we were assembled vpon Blackeheath, and had sent
to the king to come vnto vs, our purpose was to haue slaine all such knights, esquiers, and
gentlemen, as should haue giuen their attendance thither vpon him: and as for the king,
we would haue kept him amongst vs, to the end that the people might more boldlie haue
repaired to vs, sith they should haue thought, that whatsoeuer we did, the same had béene
doone by his authoritie. Finally, when we had gotten power inough, that we needed not
to feare anie force that might be made against vs, we would haue slaine all such noble
men, as might either haue giuen counsell, or made anie resistance against vs, speciallie the
knights of the Rhodes; and lastlie we would haue killed the king and all men of possessions,
with bishops, moonks, chanons, and parsons of churches, onelie friers Mendicants
we would haue spared, that might haue sufficed for ministration of the sacraments. And
when we had made a riddance of all those, we would haue deuised lawes, according to the
which the subiects of this realme should haue liued, for we would haue created kings, as
Wat Tiler in Kent, and other in other countries. But bicause this our purpose was disappointed
by the archbishop of Canturburie, that would not permit the king to come to vs,
we sought by all meanes to dispatch him out of the waie, as at length we did. Morouer,
the same euening that Wat Tiler was killed, we were determined, hauing the greatest part
of the commons of the citie bent to ioine with vs, to haue set fire in foure corners of the
citie, and so to haue diuided amongst vs the spoile of the cheefest riches that might haue
beene found at our pleasure. And this (said he) was our purpose, as God may helpe me
now at my last end.”
Thus you may see, after what sort they were conspired to the destruction of the realme, and to haue aduanced and inriched themselues; not considering or foreséeing the euill successe of their tumultuous broile, and that it would tend but little to their profit in the end, by a common spoile to amend their state, and to become mightie and rich with goods euill gotten, which though for a time (if lucke had serued them to haue possessed) they had enioied, yet could they not long prosper nor bring good vnto the possessors: for
Non habet euentus sordida præda bonos.
The cause of the late tumults.
A truce with Scotland. Tho. Walsi. Froissard.
And lest this one mans confession might séeme insufficient, diuerse other of them confessed
the same, or much what the like in effect, when they saw no remedie but present
death before their eies. To declare the occasion whie such mischeefes happened thus in
the realme, we leaue to the iudgement of those that may coniecture a truth thereof, by
conferring the manners of that age & behauiour of all states then, sith they that wrote in
those daies, may happilie in that behalfe misse the trueth, in construing things according to
their affections.
But truelie it is to be thought, that the faults, as well in one degrée as an
other, speciallie the sinnes of the whole nation, procured such vengeance to rise, whereby
they might be warned of their euill dooings, and séeke to reforme the same in time conuenient.
But as it commeth still to passe, when the danger is once ouershot, repentance
likewise is put ouer, and is no more regarded, till an other scourge commeth eftsoones to
put men in remembrance of their duetie; so in like manner (as séemeth) it chanced in
this kings daies, as by that which followeth may more plainelie
appeare.
The capteine of Berwike will not suffer the duke of Lancaster to enter into the towne.
It this meane time that these troubles were at the hottest in England, the duke of Lancaster
being in Scotland, so behaued himselfe (in the treatie which he had in hand with
the Scots) dissembling the matter so, as if he had not vnderstood of any trouble in England
at all, that finallie before the Scots had knowledge thereof, a truce was concluded to
indure for two yeares, or (as other haue) for three yeares.
When he had made an end
there, and that all things were agréed vpon and passed, for the confirmation of that accord,
he returned to Berwike, but at his comming thither, the capteine sir Matthew Redman
would not suffer him to enter the towne, bicause of a commandement giuen to him |752|
from the earle of Northumberland, lord warden of the marches: wherefore the duke was
glad to returne into Scotland againe, obteining licence of the Scots to remaine amongst
them, till the realme of England was reduced to better quiet. Hervpon, the commons
in England that fauored him not, tooke occasion to report the worst of him that might be
deuised, calling him now in time of their rebellious commotions, a traitor to the realme,
declaring that he had ioined himselfe to the Scots, and meant to take part with them
against his owne natiue countrie.
The king indéed had sent commandement, during the time of the rebellious troubles, vnto the earle of Northumberland, that he should haue good regard to the safe keeping of all the townes & castels vnder his rule, & not to suffer any person to enter the same, hauing forgotten to except the duke of Lancaster being then in Scotland: whervpon the duke tooke no small displeasure with the earle of Northumberland, as after he well shewed at his comming home. But before he returned foorth of Scotland, he wrote to the king to vnderstand his plesure, in what sort he should returne, humbling himselfe in such wise, as he made offer to come with one knight, one esquier, and a groome, if it should please the king so to appoint him; or if it so were that by his presence it was thought the realme was like to fall in any trouble, he was readie to depart into exile, neuer to returne into his countrie againe, if so be that through his absence the king and realme might inioy peace and quietnesse.
The duke of Lancaster chargeth the earle of Northumberland with sundrie crimes.
The king hearing such offers, wrote to him, that his pleasure was to haue him to returne
home, with all his whole traine; and if the same were not thought sufficient to
gard him, he should take of euerie towne by the which he passed, a certeine number of
men to attend him vnto the next towne for his safegard, and so it was doone, the king
sending him commission to that effect, and thus comming to the court, he was of the king
right honorablie receiued. Within few daies after his comming, he exhibited a grieuous
complaint against the earle of Northumberland, for abusing him in diuerse sorts, in time
of the late troubles, so as his honour was greatlie thereby touched, for which the earle
was sent for, and commanded to come vnto Berkhamstéed, where all the lords in maner
of the land were assembled in councell.
The duke of Lancaster & the earle of Northumberland come to the parlement with great troops of armed men.
The Londoners, fréends to the earle of Northumberland.
Here, after the duke had laid diuerse things to the earles charge, for his disobedience,
vnfaithfulnesse, and ingratitude; the earle after the manner of his countrie, not able to
forbeare, breake out into reprochfull words against the duke, although he was commanded
by the king to cease, where the duke kept silence in humble maner, at the first
word, when the K. commanded him to hold his peace, so that by reason of the earles disobedience
in that behalfe, he was arrested.
But yet the earls of Warwike and Suffolke
vndertaking for his appearance at the next parlement, he was suffered to depart, and so
the councell brake vp.
About the feast of All saints the parlement began, to the which
the duke of Lancaster came bringing with him an excéeding number of armed men, and
likewise the earle of Northumberland with no lesse companie came likewise to London, &
was lodged within the citie, hauing great friendship shewed towards him of the citizens, who
promised to assist him at all times, when necessitie required, so that his part séemed
to be ouerstrong for the duke, if they should haue come to anie trial of their forces at
that time.
The lords sit in armour in the parlement house.
The K. maketh an agréemēt betwéen the duke of Lancaster & the earle of Northumberland.
The Duke laie with his people in the suburbs, and euerie daie when they went to the
parlement house at Westminster, both parts went thither in armour, to the great terror
of those that were wise and graue personages, fearing some mischiefe to fall foorth of
that vnaccustomed manner of their going armed to the parlement house, contrarie to the
ancient vsage of the realme.
At length, to quiet the parties and to auoid such inconueniences,
as might haue growen of their dissention, the king tooke the matter into his
hands, and so they were made fréends, to the end that some good might be doone in that
parlement, for reformation of things touching the state of the realme, for which cause it
was especiallie called: but now after it had continued a long time, and few things at all |753|
concluded, newes came that the ladie Anne sister to the emperour Wenslaus, & affianced
wife to the king of England, was come to Calis, whervpon the parliament was proroged
till after Christmas, that in the meane time the marriage might be solemnized, which was
appointed after the Epiphanie: and foorthwith great preparation was made to receiue the
bride, that she might be conueied with all honor vnto the kings
presence.
The emperours sister affianced to K. Richard, is receiued at Douer.
A watershake.
The kings marriage with the emperors sister.
Such as should receiue hir at Douer repaired thither, where at hir landing, a maruellous
and right strange woonder happened; for she was no sooner out of hir ship, and got
to land in safetie with all hir companie, but that foorthwith the water was so troubled and
shaken, as the like thing had not to any mans remembrance euer béene heard of: so that
the ship in which the appointed queene came ouer, was terriblie rent in péeces, and the
residue so beaten one against an other, that they were scattered here and there after a
woonderful manner.
Before hir comming to the citie of London, she was met on Blackheath
by the maior and citizens of London in most honorable wise, and so with great
triumph conueied to Westminster, where (at the time appointed) all the nobilitie of the
realme being assembled, she was ioined in marriage to the king, and crowned quéene by
the archbishop of Canturburie, with all the glorie and honor that might be deuised. There
were also holden for the more honour of the said marriage, solemne iustes for certeine
daies togither, in which, as well the Englishmen as the new quéenes countriemen shewed
proofe of their manhood and valiancie, whereby praise & commendation of knightlie
prowesse was atchiued, not without damage of both the parties.
After that the solemnitie of the marriage was finished, the parlement eftsoones began,
in the which many things were inacted, for the behoofe of the commonwealth. And
amongst other things it was ordeined, that all maner manumissions, obligations, releasses,
and other bonds made by compulsion, dures, and menace, in time of this last
tumult and riot against the lawes of the land, and good faith, should be vtterlie void
and adnihilated. And further, that if the kings faithful liege people did perceiue any
gathering of the cōmons in suspected wise, to the number of six or seuen, holding conuenticles
togither, they should not staie for the kings writ in that behalfe for their warrant,
but foorthwith it should be lawfull for them to apprehend such people, assembling
togither, and to laie them in prison, till they might answer their dooings. These and
manie other things were established in this parlement, of the which, the most part were set
foorth in the printed booke of statutes, where ye may read the same more at large.
The sudden death of the earle of Suffolke.
In time of this parlement William Vfford the earle of Suffolke, being chosen by the
knights of the shires, to pronounce in behalfe of the commonwealth, certeine matters
concerning the same: the verie daie and houre in which he should haue serued that turne,
as he went vp the staires, towards the vpper house, he suddenlie fell downe and died in
the hands of his seruants, busie about to take him vp, whereas he felt no gréefe of sickenesse
when he came into Westminster, being then and before merrie and pleasant inough,
to all mens sights. Of his sudden death, manie were greatlie abashed, for that in his
life time, he had shewed himselfe courteous and amiable to all men. ¶ The parlement
shortlie therevpon tooke end, after that the merchants had granted to the king for a subsidie
certeine customes of their wooles, which they bought and sold, called a maletot, to
endure for foure yeares. ¶ The lord Richard Scroope was made lord chancellor, & the
lord Hugh Segraue lord treasuror.
The earle of March his good seruice whilest he was deputie in Ireland.
Wicliffes doctrine.
Iohn Wraie.
About the same time, the lord Edmund Mortimer earle of March, the kings lieutenant
in Ireland, departed this life, after he had brought in manner all that land to peace and
quiet, by his noble and prudent gouernement. In this season, Wicliffe set forth diuerse
articles and conclusions of his doctrine, which the new archbishop of Canturburie, William
Courtneie, latelie remooued from the sée of London, vnto the higher dignitie, did
what he could by all shifts to suppresse, and to force such as were the setters foorth and
mainteiners thereof, to recant, and vtterlie to renounce. What he brought to passe, in
the booke of acts and monuments set foorth by maister I. Fox, ye may find at large. |754|
The tuesday next after the feast of saint Iohn Port latine, an other parlement began, in
which at the earnest sute and request of the knights of the shires, Iohn Wraie priest that
was the chiefe dooer among the commons in Suffolke, at Burie, and Mildenhall, was
adiudged to be drawen, and hanged, although manie beleeued, that his life should haue
béene redeemed for some great portion of monie.
A coleprophet serued aright.
A lewd fellow that tooke vpon him to be skilfull in physicke and astronomie, caused it
to be published thorough the citie of London, that vpon the Ascension euen, there would
rise such a pestilent planet, that all those which came abroad foorth of their chambers,
before they had said fiue times the Lords praier, then commonlie called the Pater noster,
and did not eate somewhat that morning, before their going foorth, should be taken with
sicknesse, & suddenlie die thereof. Many fooles beléeued him, and obserued his order;
but the next day, when his presumptuous lieng could be no longer faced out, he was set
on horssebacke, with his face towards the taile, which he was compelled to hold in his
hand in stéed of a bridle, and so was led about the citie, with two iorden pots about his
necke, and a whetstone, in token that he had well deserued it, for the notable lie which
he had made.
Ships of Rie win a good price.
Iohn de Northampton maior of London, a streict punisher of adulterie in his time.
About the same time, certeine English ships of Rie, and other places, went to the sea,
and meeting pirats, fought with them, and ouercame them, taking seuen ships, with thrée
hundred men in them. One of those ships had béene taken from the Englishmen afore
time, and was called the falcon, belonging to the lord William Latimer. They were all
richlie laden with wine, wax, and other good merchandize. This yeare the maior of
London Iohn de Northampton, otherwise called Iohn de Comberton, did punish such
as were taken in adulterie, verie extremelie: for first he put them in the prison, called
the tunne, that then stood in Cornehill, and after caused the women to haue their haire
cut, as théeues in those daies were serued that were appeachers of others, and so were
they led about the stréets with trumpets & pipes going before them. Neither were the
men spared more than the women, being put to manie open shames and reproches. But
bicause the punishment of such offenses was thought rather to apperteine vnto the spirituall
iurisdiction, than to the temporall, the bishop of London, and other of the
cleargie, tooke it in verie euill part: but the maior being a stout man, would not forbeare,
but vsed his authoritie héerein to the vttermost.
The Londoners fauorers of Wicliffes doctrine.
The fishmoongers sore troubled by the maior.
About the same time also, when the archbishop of Canturburie sate in iudgement vpon
a processe that was framed against one Iohn Aston, a maister of art, that was an earnest
follower of Wicliffes doctrine, the Londoners brake open the doores, where the archbishop
with his diuines sate, and caused them to giue ouer, so that they durst procéed no
further in that matter. The same yéere were the fishmoongers of London sore disquieted
by the foresaid maior, who sought to infringe their liberties, granting licence to forreners
to come and sell all manner of fish, as fréelie and more fréelie than any of the companie
of fishmongers: for they might not buie it at the forreners hands to sell it againe by any
meanes, and so that companie which before had beene accompted one of the chiefest in
the citie, was now so brought downe, as it séemed to be one of the meanest, being compelled
to confesse, that their occupation was no craft, nor worthie so to be accompted
amongst other the crafts of the citie.
A great earthquake.
Churches ouerthrowne by the earthquake.
A waterquake.
In this yeare, the one and twentith of Maie being wednesdaie, a great earthquake
chanced about one of the clocke in the after noone; it was so vehement, and namelie in
Kent, that the churches were shaken therewith in such wise, that some of them were ouerthrowen
to the ground. On the saturdaie after, being the foure and twentith day of
Maie, earelie in the morning, chanced an other earthquake, or (as some write) a watershake,
being of so vehement & violent a motion, that it made the ships in the hauens to
beat one against the other, by reason whereof they were sore brused by such knocking togither,
to the great woonder of the people, who being amazed at such strange tokens,
stood a long time after in more awe of Gods wrath and displeasure than before, for these |755|
so strange and dreadfull woonders thus shewed amongst them: howbeit when these terrors
were forgotten, they followed their former dissolutenes, from the which for a time they
were withdrawne through feare of Gods heuie hand hanging ouer their heads; but afterward
like swine they wallowed afresh in their puddels of pollusions, & as dogs licked vp
their filthie vomit of corruption and naughtinesse, for
Sordida natura semper sequitur sua iura.
The bishop of Londō made lord chancellor in the lord Scroope his roome.
About this season, the lord Richard Scroope lord chancellor was deposed from that
roome, and the king receiuing the great seale at his hands, kept it a certeine time, and
sealed therewith such grants and writings as it pleased him: at length, it was deliuered to
Robert Braibrooke bishop of London, who was made lord chancellor. The cause why
the lord Scroope was remooued from that dignitie, was this. When the king vpon certeine
respects had granted certeine gentlemen the lands and possessions that belonged to
the late earle of March, and other that were deceassed (which he, during the time of their
heires minorities, ought to inioy by the lawes of the realme) the said lord chancellor refused
to seale such grants, alledging that the king being greatlie in debt, which he was
to discharge, stood in need of such profits himselfe, and therefore (as he said) he tooke
not them for faithfull seruants, nor dutifull subiects to his grace, that respecting their
owne priuat commoditie more than his or the realmes, did sue for such grants at his
hands, aduising them to hold themselues contented with such other things, as it had
pleased or might please the king to bestow vpon them: for suerlie he would not consent,
that they should inioy such gifts as those were. They that were thus reiected, made their
complaint in such sort to the king, that he taking displeasure with the said lord Scroope,
deposed him from his office, to the great offense both of the nobles and commons, by
whose consent he was preferred vnto that dignitie.
A new rebellion intended in Norffolke is bewraied by one of the conspiracie before it burst out.
About Michaelmasse this yeare, certeine naughtie disposed persons in Norffolke, not
warned by the successe of the late rebellion, went about a new commotion, intending to
murther the bishop of Norwich, and all the nobles and gentlemen of that countrie. And
to bring their wicked purpose the better to passe, they determined to haue assembled
togither at S. Faithes faire, and to haue compelled all those that should haue béene present
at the same faire, to haue taken part with them, or else to haue lost their liues:
and this being doone, they would haue taken S. Benets abbeie at Holme, which they
would haue kept for a fortresse, to haue withdrawne into vpon anie force that had beene
against them. But yer they could bring their purpose to passe, one of the conspiracie
bewraieng the matter, they were taken, & lost their heads at Norwich, for their malicious
deuises.
The cōmissioners of Flanders reiected for want of sufficient authoritie.
An act against the fishmongers within the citie of London.
Remission of sins granted to as manie as would fight against Clement the antipape.
About the same time a parlement was called, to the which certeine commissioners from
the countrie of Flanders came, to treat of certeine agréements betwixt the king and realme,
and the states of their countrie: but bicause those that came ouer at this time, seemed
not sufficient to conclude such treatie as then was in hand, they were sent backe to fetch
other more sufficient, as from euerie towne in Flanders some such as might haue full
authoritie to go through, and confirme the agréements then in hand. In this parlement,
the maior of London, with a great part of the commoners of the citie, vpon suggestion by
them made against the fishmongers, for vsing great deceit in vttering of their fishes, obteined
to haue it inacted,
that from thencefoorth, none of that companie, nor anie of the
vinteners, butchers, grossers, or other that sold anie prouision of vittels, should be admitted
maior of the citie; and so by this shift they sought to cut off all meanes from the
fishmongers to recouer againe their old former degrée. And bicause it was knowne well
inough of what authoritie sir Iohn Philpot knight was within the citie, and that he fauoured
those whome the lord maior the said Iohn de Northampton fauoured not, he was
put off from the bench, and might not sit with them that were of the secret councell in
the cities affaires, whereas neuerthelesse he had trauelled more for the preseruation of
the cities liberties than all the residue. Sir Henrie Spenser bishop of Norwich, receiued |756|
buls a little before this present from pope Vrbane, to signe all such with the crosse, that
would take vpon them to go ouer the seas with him, to warre against those that held with
the antipape Clement,
that tooke himselfe for pope, and to such as would receiue the
crosse in that quarrell, such like beneficiall pardons were granted by pope Vrbane, as
were accustomablie granted vnto such as went to fight against the Infidels, Turkes, and
Saracens, to wit free remission of sinnes, and manie other graces. The bishop of Norwich
that had the disposing of the benefits granted by those buls, to all such as either
would go themselues in person, or else giue anie thing toward the furtherance of that
voiage, & maintenance of them that went in the same, shewed those buls in open parlement,
& caused copies to be written forth, & sent into euerie quarter, that his authoritie
& power legantine might be notified to all men, for the better bringing to passe of
that he had in charge. And truelie it should appeare, there wanted no diligence in the
man to accomplish the popes purpose: and on the other part yée must note, that the priuileges
which he had from the pope, were passing large, so that as the matter was handled,
there were diuerse lords, knights, esquires, and other men of warre in good numbers,
that offered themselues to go in that voiage, and to follow the standards of the
church with the bishop, and no small summes of monie were leuied and gathered amongst
the people, for the furnishing foorth of that armie, as after yée shall heare.
The earle of Cambridge returneth out of Portingale.
The earle of Cambridge his son affianced to the king of Portingals daughter.
In this meane time the earle of Cambridge returned home from Portingale, whither
(as yee haue heard) he was sent the last yeare, and promise made, that the duke of
Lancaster should haue followed him; but by reason of the late rebellion, and also for
other considerations, as the warres in Flanders betwixt the erle and them of Gaunt, it
was not thought conuenient that anie men of warre should go foorth of the realme: and
so the king of Portingale not able of himselfe to go through with his enterprise against the
king of Spaine, after some small exploits atchiued by the Englishmen, and other of the
earle of Cambridge his companie, as the winning of certeine fortresses belonging to the
king of Castile, and that the two kings had laine in field, the one against the other
by the space of fifteene daies without battell, the matter was taken vp, and a peace concluded
betwixt them, sore against the mind of the earle of Cambridge, who did what in
him laie, to haue brought them to a set field: but when there was no remedie, he bare
it so patientlie as he might, and returned home with his people, sore offended (though
he said little) against the king of Portingale, for that he dealt otherwise in this matter
than was looked for. He had affianced his sonne, which he had by the daughter of Peter,
sometime king of Castile, vnto the king of Portingales daughter, now in the time of his
being there: but although he was earnestlie requested of the said king, he would not
leaue his sonne behind him, but brought him backe with him againe into England (togither
with his mother) doubting the slipperie faith of those people.
Clementines.
Vrbanists.
In the Lent season of this sixt yeare of king Richards reigne, an other parlement was
called at London, in the which there was hard hold about the buls sent to the bishop of
Norwich from pope Vrbane, concerning his iournie that he should take in hand against
the Clementines (as we may call them, for that they held with pope Clement) whome
the Vrbanists (that is, such as held with pope Vrbane) tooke for schismatikes. Diuerse
there were, that thought it not good that such summes of monie shuld be leuied of the
kings subiects, and the same togither with an armie of men to be committed vnto the
guiding of a prelat vnskilfull in warlike affaires. Other there were that would needs
haue him to go, that the enimies of the church (as they tooke them) might be subdued.
And although the more part of the lords of the vpper house, and likewise the knights
and burgesses of the lower house were earnestlie bent against this iournie; yet at length
those that were of the contrarie mind, preuailed; & so it was decreed, that it should forward,
and that the said bishop of Norwich should haue the fiftéenth granted to the king
in the last parlement, to paie the wages of such men of warre as should go ouer with him;
for soldiers without monie passed not much of par dons,
nonot in those daies, except at |757|
the verie point of death, if they were not assured how to be answered of their wages, or
of some other consideration wherby they might gaine. ¶ The tenth that was granted afore
by the bishops at Oxford, was now in this same parlement appointed to remaine to the
king for the kéeping of the seas, whilest the bishop should be foorth of the realme in following
those wars.
The crossed souldiers.
These things being thus appointed, the bishop sent foorth his letters firmed with his
seale into euerie prouince and countrie of this land, giuing to all parsons, vicars, and
curats, through this realme, power and authoritie to heare the confessions of their parishioners,
and to grant vnto those that would bestow any parcell of their goods,
which
God had lent them towards the aduancing of the iournie to be made by the crossed souldiers
against pope Vrbans enimies, the absolution and remission of all their sinnes by the
popes authoritie, according to the forme of the bull before mentioned. The people vnderstanding
of so great and gratious a benefit (as they tooke it) thus offered to the English
nation, at home in their owne houses, were desirous to be partakers thereof, and
those that were warlike men, prepared themselues to go foorth in that iournie with all
spéed possible. The residue that were not fit to be warriors, according to that they were
exhorted by their confessors, bestowed liberallie of their goods to the furtherance of those
that went: and so, few there were within the whole kingdome, but that either they went,
or gaue somewhat to the aduancing foorth of the bishop of Norwich his voiage.
The capteins that wēt with the bishop of Norwich against the antipape.
Froissard.
This bishop chose diuerse to be associat with him, as capteins that were expert in warlike
enterprises. The first and principall was sir Hugh Caluerlie an old man of warre,
and one that in all places had borne himselfe both valiantlie and politikelie; next vnto
him was sir William Farington, who stoutlie spake in the bishops cause, when the matter
came in question in the parlement house, touching his going ouer with his croisie. Besides
these, there went diuerse noble men and knights of high renowme, as the lord Henrie
Beaumount,
sir William Elmham, and sir Thomas Triuet, sir Iohn Ferrers, sir Hugh
Spenser the bishops nephue by his brother, sir Matthew Redman capteine of Berwike,
sir Nicholas Tarenson or Traicton, sir William Farington, and manie other of the English
nation: & of Gascogne there went le sire de Chasteauneuf, and his brother sir Iohn
de Chasteauneuf, Raimund de Marsen, Guillonet de Paux, Gariot Vighier, Iohn de
Cachitan, and diuerse other. Sir Iohn Beauchampe was appointed marshall of the
field, but bicause he was at that present in the marches of the realme towards Scotland,
he was not readie to passe ouer when the bishop did. The duke of Lancaster liked not
well of the bishops iournie, for that he saw how his voiage that he meant to make into
Spaine was hereby for the time disappointed, and he could haue béene better contented
(as appeareth by writers) to haue had the monie imploied vpon the warres against the
king of Castile that was a Clementine, than to haue it bestowed vpon this voiage, which
the bishop was to take in hand against the French king, and other in these néerer parts.
Herevpon there were not manie of the nobilitie that offered to go with the bishop.
The statute against fishmongers repealed, they are restored to their liberties.
But to saie somewhat of other things that were concluded in this last parlement, we
find, that the fishmongers, which through meanes of the late lord maior Iohn of Northampton
and his complices were put from their ancient customes and liberties, which they
inioied aforetime within the citie, were now restored to the same againe, sauing that they
might not kéepe courts among themselues, as in times past they vsed, but that after the
maner of other crafts and companies, all transgressions, offenses, and breaches of lawes
and customes by them committed, should be heard, tried, and reformed in the maiors
court. ¶ All this winter the matter touching the gathering of monie towards the croisie,
was earnestlie applied, so that there was leuied what of the disme, and by the deuotion
of the people for obteining of the pardon, so much as drew to the summe of fiue and
twentie thousand franks.
The bishop of Norwich setteth forward with his armie.
Polydor.
Froissard.
500 speares, & 115 other.
When the bishop therefore had set things in good forwardnesse for his iournie, he drew
towards the sea side, and was so desirous to passe ouer, and to inuade his aduersaries, |758|
that although the king sent to him an expresse commandement by letters to returne to the
court, that he might conferre with him before he tooke the seas; yet excusing himselfe,
that the time would not then permit him to staie longer, he passed ouer to Calis, where
he landed the 23 of Aprill, in this sixt yeare of king Richards reigne.
The armie to attend
him in this iournie, rose to the number of two thousand horssemen, and fifteene
thousand footmen (as some write) though other speake of a far lesser number. But it
should seeme that they went not ouer all at one time, but by parts, as some before the
bishop, some with him, and some after him.
The bishop of Norwich inuadeth Flanders.
Ia. Meir. Dunkirke woon & sacked by the Englishmen.
The earle of Flāders sendeth to the bishop of Norwich to know the cause of his inuasion of Flanders.
Now when he and the capteins before named, were come ouer to Calis, they tooke
counsell togither into what place they should make their first inuasion; and bicause their
commission was to make warre onelie against those that held with pope Clement, the more
part were of this mind, that it should be most expedient for them to enter into France, and
to make warre against the Frenchmen, whom all men knew to be chiefe mainteiners of the
said Clement.
But the bishop of Norwich was of this opinion, that they could not doo better
than to inuade the countrie of Flanders, bicause that a litle before, earle Lewes hauing intelligence
that king Richard had made a confederacie with them of Gaunt, had on the
other part expelled all Englishmen out of his dominions and countries, so that the merchants
which had their goods at Bruges, and other places in Flanders, susteined great
losses. Howbeit there were that replied against the bishops purpose herein, as sir Hugh
Caluerlie and others; yet at length they yeelded thereto, and so by his commandement
they went streight to Grauelin, the 21 day of Maie, and immediatlie wan it by assault.
Wherevpon Bruckburge was yeelded vnto them, the liues and goods of them within
saued. Then went they to Dunkirke, & without any great resistance entred the towne,
and wan there excéeding much by the spoile, for it was full of riches, which the Englishmen
pilfered at their pleasure.
The earle of Flanders lieng at Lisle was aduertised how
the Englishmen were thus entered his countrie, wherevpon he sent ambassadors vnto the
English host, to vnderstand why they made him warre that was a right Vrbanist.
The bishop of Norwich for answer, declared to them that were sent, that he tooke the
countrie to apperteine to the French king, as he that had of late conquered it, whom all
the whole world knew to be a Clementine, or at the least he was assured that the countrie
thereabouts was of the inheritance of the ladie of Bar, which likewise was a Clementine:
and therefore, except the people of that countrie would come and ioine with him to go
against such as were knowne to be enimies to pope Vrbane, he would suerlie séeke to
destroie them. And whereas the earls ambassadors required safe conduct to go into
England by Calis, to vnderstand the kings pleasure in this mater, the bishop would grant
them none at all; wherefore they went backe againe to the earle their maister with that
answer.
The herald of armes sent to ye Flemings by the bishop of Norwich is slaine.
The Englishmen after the taking and spoiling of Dunkirke, returned to Grauelin and
Bruckburge, which places they fortified, and then leauing garrisons in them, they went
to Mardike, and tooke it, for it was not closed.
In the meane time, the countriemen of
west Flanders rose in armour, and came, to Dunkirke, meaning to resist the Englishmen:
whereof when the bishop was certified, with all speed he marched thither, and comming
to the place where the Flemings, to the number of more than twelue thousand were ranged
without the towne, he sent an herald vnto them to know the truth, of whether pope they
held; but the rude people, not vnderstanding what apperteined to the law of armes,
ran vpon the herald at his approching to them, and slue him before he could begin to tell
his tale.
Thom. Wals. The order of the bishop of Norwich his battell against the Flemings.
The Englishmen herewith inflamed, determined either to reuenge the death of their
herald, or to die for it, and therewith ordered their battels readie to fight, and being not
aboue five thousand fighting men in all, the bishop placed himselfe amongst the horssemen,
and set the footmen in a battell marshalled wedgewise, broad behind and sharpe
before, hauing with them a banner wherein the crosse was beaten. The archers were |759|
ranged on either side: the standard of the church went before, the field gules, and two
keies siluer, signifieng that they were souldiors of pope Vrbane. Moreouer, the bishop
had his penon there siluer and azure quarterlie, a freat gold on the azure, a bend gules
on the siluer; and bicause he was yoongest of the Spensers, he bare a border gules for a
difference. At the approching of the battels togither the trumpets blew vp, and the
archers began to shoot against the battell of the Flemings, the which valiantlie defended
themselues, & fought egerlie a long time, but at length they were so galled with arrowes
which the archers shot at them a flanke, that they were not able to indure, but were compelled
to giue backe.
The Flemings discomfited by ye Englishmen.
Iac. Meir.
Froissard.
Tho. Walsi. Préests and religious men hardy soldiers.
They were diuided into two battels, a vaward, and a rereward. When the vaward
began to shrinke, the rereward also brake order, and fled, but the Englishmen pursued
them so fast, that they could not escape, but were ouertaken and slaine in great numbers.
Some saie, there died of them in the battell and chase fiue thousand, some six thousand;
and others write, that there were nine thousand of them slaine: and Thomas Walsingham
affirmeth twelue thousand. Manie of them fled into the towne of Dunkirke for succour,
but the Englishmen pursued them so egerlie, that they entered the towne with them, and
slue them downe in the streets.
The Flemings in diuerse places gathered themselues
togither againe as they fled, and shewed countenance of defense, but still they were
driuen out of order, and brought to confusion. The préests and religious men that
were with the bishop fought most egerlie, some one of them slaieng sixtéene of the
enimies.
Iacob. Meir.
The Englishmē subdue diuerse towns in Flanders, and spoile the countrie.
There died of Englishmen at this battell about foure hundred. The Flemings had no
horssemen amongst them, nor anie number of gentlemen, for they stood in such dread of
English bowes, that they durst not come to anie battell with them, but kéeping themselues
out of danger, set the commons of the countrie in hand to trie what they against the Englishmen
were able to doo without them. This battell was fought vpon a mondaie being
the fifteenth of Maie. The countrie was put in a woonderfull feare by this ouerthrow,
so that the townes and fortresses were in great doubt, and some yeelded themselues to
the Englishmen, as Berghen and others; some were woone by force, as the castell of
Drinchan, and the towne of S. Venant.
To be short, the Englishmen became maisters of
all the countrie alongst the sea side, euen from Grauelin to Sluis, and got such riches by
pillage and spoile, as they could not wish for greater. They preuailed so much, that
they wan in maner all the close towns within the bailiffeweekes of Cassell, of Popering,
Messines, and Furneis, with the townes of Newport, Blankberke, and diuerse other.
The towne of Ypres besiged.
The maner of fortifieing townes in old time.
Also entring into the woods Nepse and Rutholt, they found a great bootie of sheepe
and beasts, and tooke a great sort of prisoners of the countrie people, which were fled
into those woods for feare of the enemies: but the Englishmen, plaieng the part of good
bloudhounds, found them out, & sent all their booties and preie vnto Grauelin and
Bruckburge.
On the eight daie of Iune they came before the towne of Ypres, and laid
siege thereto, whereat they continued the space of nine wéekes. Thither came to their
aid twentie thousand Gauntiners vnder the leading of Francis Akreman, Peter Wood,
and Peter Winter: so that they within Ypres were streictlie besieged, but there were
within it in garrison diuerse valiant knights & capteins, which defended the towne right
manfullie:
it was fensed with a mightie rampire, and a thicke hedge, trimlie plashed
and woond with thornes, as the manner of fortifieng townes was in ancient time amongst
them in that countrie (as Strabo witnesseth.)
Hope of gaine incourageth the soldier.
During the time that the siege laie before Ypres, the Englishmen swarmed abroad in
the countrie, for when it was once knowne what good successe the first companie that went
ouer had found, there came dailie foorth of England great numbers to be partakers of
the gaine. Sir Iohn Philpot that fauoured the bishops iournie, prouided them of vessels
for their passage, till the bishop vnderstanding that the more part of those that came thus
ouer were vnarmed, and brought nothing with them from home, but onelie swords, bowes |760|
and arrowes, did write vnto the said sir Iohn Philpot, that he should suffer none to passe
the seas, but such as were men able and likelie to doo seruice: where a great number of
those that were come to him, were fit for nothing but to consume vittels, much like
the popish shauelings and the Romish rascalitie, of whome the like is spoken thus:
Nos numerus sumus & fruges consumere nati.
Ia. Meir.
The multitude of Englishmen and Gauntiners at this siege was great, so that diuerse
skirmishes chanced betwixt them, and such as were appointed by the earle to lie in garrisons
against them:
but still the victorie abode on the English side. Also there was an
English préest, one sir Iohn Boring that went to Gaunt with fiue hundred English archers,
by whose aid Arnold Hans one of the capteins of Gaunt ouercame his enimies in
battell, which were laid in a castell neere to the hauen of Allost, and stopped that no
vittels might safelie come out of Holland or Zeland to be conueied to Gaunt.
The earle
of Flanders was not well contented in his mind, that the Englishmen were thus entred
into his countrie, and therefore earnestlie laboured to the duke of Burgognie (that had
married his daughter, and should be heire of all his dominions and seigniories after his
deceasse) to find some remedie in the matter.
The siege at Ypres broken vp.
Newport sacked and burnt by the Englishmen and Gauntiners.
The duke, whome the matter touched so néere, did so much with his nephew the
French king, that eftsoones he raised his whole puissance, and came downe into
Flanders, so that the Englishmen perceiuing themselues not of power to incounter with
this huge and mightie armie, were constreined after a great assault, which they gaue the
eight of August, to raise their siege from Ypres the mondaie after, being S. Laurence
daie, and to withdraw into Bruckburge, Berghen, Dixmew, Newport, Cassell, Dunkirke,
Grauelin, and other places which they had woon. But at Newport the townesmen
set vp the earles banner, and assailing those that were come into the towne, slue diuerse
of them. The Englishmen being sore offended therewith, came running thither with
certeine Gauntiners, and made great slaughter of them that had so murthered their fellowes.
The towne was sacked, and all the goods aswell church iewels as other were sent
awaie, partlie by sea into England, and partlie by waggons vnto Berge. After this, they
set fire in more than thirtie places of the towne, so that there remained nothing vnburnt.
The Englishmen & Gauntiners that were withdrawne into Berge, got togither all the waggons
in the countrie about, placing the same vpon the diches and rampiers, to fortifie the
same against their enemies.
Thom. Wals. A couragious & warlike bishop.
Some write, that after the breaking of the siege at Ypres, the bishop of Norwich
would gladlie haue persuaded the lords and knights that were there with him, to haue entred
into Picardie, and there to haue offered the French king battell, before his whole puissance
had beene assembled: but sir Thomas Triuet and sir William Elmham with other,
would in no wise consent therevnto, so that the bishop taking with him sir Hugh Caluerlie,
that did neuer forsake him, bad the other farewell; and first making a road into
Picardie, he after withdrew into Grauelin, whiles the other went to Bruckburge. But by
Froissard, and other writers it appeareth, that sir Hugh was certeinlie at Berge, with other
that were retired thither, in purpose to defend it against the French king, who still followed
them, and recouered diuerse places out of their hands by force, as Mont Cassell,
the castell of Crincham, and other. Also at his comming to Berghen, the said sir Hugh
Caluerlie, and other that were within it, perceiuing that they were not able to defend it
against such a puissance as the French king had there with him, being greater than euer
sir Hugh Caluerlie that ancient capteine wold haue thought that France had béene able
to haue set foorth, departed, and left the towne to be spoiled of the Britons, and other
French souldiers, which executed there all kinds of crueltie. The more part of the Englishmen
went to Bruckburge, but sir Hugh Caluerlie went to Grauelin, and so to Calis,
as one sore displeased in his mind, for that his counsell could not be regarded in all this
voiage, which if it had béene followed, would haue brought it to a better issue than now
it was, as was supposed. |761|
The French king with his huge armie driueth the Englishmen out of Flanders. Bruckburge yéelded to the French.
The duke of Britaine a friend to the Englishmen.
The French king following the tract of good fortune, that guided his sterne, marched
foorth to Bruckburge, so that the vaward of his armie came before that towne on Holie
rood daie in September, vnder the leading of the earle of Flanders, the duke of Britaine,
the lord Oliuer de Clisson high constable of France, and the lord Valeran earle of S.
Paule, the which demeaned themselues in such sort, that although the Englishmen within
valiantlie defended the Frenchmens assault; yet the third daie after the Frenchmens
comming thither, the Englishmen by composition that they might depart with bag and
bagage, yeelded vp the towne, which on the ninetenth of September being saturdaie,
as that yeare came about, was abandoned to the French souldiers, to rifle and spoile at
their pleasure, in the which feat the Britons bare the bell awaie, dooing more mischeefe
vnto the poore inhabitants, than with toong can be recited.
The duke of Britaine holpe
greatlie to make the composition, that the Englishmen might depart in safetie: for the
which dooing he was in great hatred and obloquie of the souldiers, who affirmed that he
was not onelie a friend to the Englishmen, but an enimie to his countrie, and a traitour
to the common-wealth.
Grauelin fortified by the Frenchmen for a countergarison to Calis. Thom. Wals.
The Englishmen comming to Grauelin, set it on fire, and departed streight to Calis,
leauing the countrie of Flanders to the Frenchmen, and so returned into England, where
they were not greatlie commended for their seruice, but were put so farre in blame, that
sir Thomas Triuet, & sir William Elmham were committed to prison within the tower of
London, as men suspected of euill dealing in the deliuerie of Bruckburge and Grauelin
to the Frenchmens hands: for immediatlie after that they had left Grauelin, the Frenchmen
came thither, and fortified it for a countergarison to Calis. ¶ There be that write
how the French king offered to giue the bishop of Norwich fiftéene thousand marks to race
the towne of Grauelin, and so to leaue it vnto him, the bishop hauing libertie with all his
people and goods to depart in safetie. The bishop required to haue libertie for certeine
daies, to make herevnto a full and deliberate answer; which was granted, and in the
meane time he sent into England to aduertise the king in what state he stood, and how the
French king laie before him with a mightie armie: and therefore if he meant euer to trie
battell with the Frenchmen, now was the time.
The king & quéene in progresse.
A great head soone cooled.
In the same summer, the king with the queene went abroad in progresse, visiting in
their waie the rich abbeis of the realme, as Burie, Thetford, Norwich, & other; going
about a great part of the realme. And when these newes came to him from the bishop
of Norwich, he was at Dauentrie in Northamptonshire, and being the same time at supper,
he put the table from him, and rising with all hast, got him to horsbacke, and rode in
post that night, changing horsse diuerse times, with such spéed that he came to S. Albons
about midnight, and making no staie there longer than he had borowed the abbats gelding,
hasted foorth till he came to Westminster: so that it appeared he would neuer haue
rested till he had passed the sea, and giuen battell to the Frenchmen.
But after his comming
to Westminster, wearied with that hastie iournie, he got him to bed, and liked so
well of ease, that he thought good to send a lieutenant in his stead to passe the seas, to deliuer
the bishop from danger of his enemies.
The bishop of Norwich returned into England out of Flanders.
Herevpon was the duke of Lancaster sent for, that he might with such power as was
readie to passe the seas, go ouer with the same, and giue battell to the French king: but
he protracted time, till the respit granted to the bishop to make answer was expired, and
so the bishop when he saw no succour come foorth of England, raced the towne as the
couenant was:
but monie he would not or did not receiue, bicause he thought in so dooing
he should offend the councell. At his comming backe into England, he found the duke
of Lancaster at the sea side with a great power of men readie to haue come ouer: although
some thought that he deferred time of purpose, for that he misliked of the bishops
whole enterprise; and now bicause it had thus quailed, he blamed the bishop for his
euill gouernement therein: but sir Hugh Caluerlie he reteined with him a time, dooing |762|
him all honour, by reason of the old approoued valiancie, that had béene euer found in
him. And this was the end of the bishop of Norwich his iournie.
Warke castell burnt by the Scots.
Diuerse French ships taken by the Englishmen.
The Scots in the meane while sate not still, but made roades into England, tooke and
burnt the castell of Warke. Moreouer, whilest the siege laie before Ypres, the Frenchmen
armed certeine vessels, and sent them to the sea, namelie fiue balengers, as well to intercept
such as should passe betwéene England and Flanders, as also to stop such as were
appointed to go ouer into Gascoine, that were soldiers also of the croisie, appointed
thither vnder the leading of the lord Britrigale de la Bret, and certeine others.
When
they of Portesmouth vnderstood that these fiue ships were abroad, they made foorth to
the sea, and meeting with their aduersaries, fought with them a sore & cruell battell, and
in the end slue all the enemies, nine excepted, and tooke all their vessels. An other fleet
of Englishmen tooke eight French ships, which had aboord 1500 tuns of good wines, that
comforted the Englishmen greatlie.
A parlement at London.
The temporalties of the bishoprike of Norwich seized into the kings hands for the bishops disobedience.
About the feast of All saints was a parlement holden at London, in which was granted
to the king one moitie of a fifteenth by the laitie, and shortlie after a moitie of a tenth by
the cleargie.
Moreouer, the king tooke into his hands the temporalties that belonged to
the bishop of Norwich, bicause he obeied not the kings commandement when he was sent
for at the time when he tooke the seas to passe into Flanders. The knights also that had
not shewed such obedience to the bishop as was requisit in that iornie, were committed to
prison; but shortlie after they were set at libertie vpon suerties that vndertooke for them.
¶ It was also decréed in this parlement, that the erle of Buckingham the kings vncle
should go to the borders against Scotland, with a thousand lances, and two thousand
archers, to represse the presumptuous attempts of the Scots, who aduertised thereof, sent
ambassadors to treat of peace; but they were dispatched home againe, without obteining
that which they came to sue for.
A treatie of peace betwéen England and France.
A truce taken betwéene England and France.
At the motion and instance of the duke of Britaine, immediatlie vpon the returne of
the English armie out of Flanders, there was a méeting of certeine commissioners in the
marches of Calis, at a place called Lelleghen, for the treatie of a peace to be concluded
betwixt the two realmes of England and France. There appeared for king Richard, the
duke of Lancaster, and his brother the erle of Buckingham, sir Iohn Holland brother to
the king, sir Thomas Percie, and a bishop. For the French king, thither came the dukes
of Berrie and Burgognie, the bishop of Laon, and the chancellor of France. There were
also the duke of Britaine, and the earle of Flanders. Also there came a bishop with other
commissioners from the king of Spaine; for the Frenchmen would doo nothing, except
the king of Spaine might be also comprised in the treatie and conclusion.
They were
thrée wéekes in commoning of an agreement: but when nothing else could be brought to
passe, they concluded a truce to indure till the feast of S. Michaell, which should be in
the yeare 1384.
Tho. Walsin.
Great contention about the election of the maior of London.
Sir Robert Knolles.
The earle of Flanders was iudged most in blame, for that no peace could be accorded,
bicause he would not that the Gauntiners should be comprised therin, but the Englishmen
would not agree either to truce or peace, except regard might be had of the Gauntiners,
as their fréends and alies. The kings of Spaine and Scotland were comprised in
this truce as confederats to the Frenchmen, which should haue signified the same into
Scotland, but did not, till great harme followed through negligence vsed in that matter,
as after yée shall perceiue.
¶ The same yeare in the night of the feast of the Purification
of our ladie, great lightenings and thunders chanced, which put manie in no small feare,
so huge and hideous was that tempest. Shortlie after, there rose no small adoo in the
citie of London about the election of their maior:
for such as fauoured the late maior
Iohn de Northampton, otherwise called Iohn de Comberton, stood against sir Nicholas
Brambre knight that was chosen to succéed the said Iohn de Northampton, insomuch that
a shoomaker who was one of the same Iohn de Northamptons partakers, presumed
through a number of voices that were readie to fauour him, to take vpon him as maior: |763|
but through the counsell of sir Robert Knolles knight, he was suddenlie apprehended,
drawne, and beheaded, as a rebell and troubler of the kings peace.
The duke of Lancaster inuadeth Scotland with an armie.
Edenburgh left desolate.
Great death of horsses and men in the English host, by reason of extreme cold.
In the lent season, the duke of Lancaster with his brother the earle of Buckingham
went towards the borders, hauing with him a mightie power of knights, esquiers, and
archers, and after he had remained a certeine time vpon the borders, about Easter he
entered Scotland, and comming within thrée miles of Edenburgh, he staied there three
daies, in which meane time the Scots conueied all their goods out of the towne ouer the
water of Firth: so that when the armie came thither, they found nothing but bare walles,
which gréeued the soldiers not a little. The Scots would not come foorth to giue anie
battell to the Englishmen, but got them into woods and mounteines, or else passed ouer
the riuer of Firth, suffering the Englishmen to fight with the vehement cold wether that
then sore annoied those parts, in so much that on Easter daie at night, through snow that
fell, and such extreame cold and boisterous stormes, as sore afflicted the armie, being incamped
within the compasse of a marish ground for their more suertie: there died aboue
fiue hundred horsses, to let passe the losse of men that perished at the same time, of
whom we make no mention. To conclude, after the duke and his brother the earle had
remained a time thus in Scotland, and burned certeine townes, they returned into England.
A parlement at Salisburie.
An Irish frier appeacheth the duke of Lācaster of treason.
About the same time, to wit, in the quindene of Easter, a parlement of the nobles was
holden at Salisburie, during the which an Irish frier of the order of the Carmelits, being a
bacheler in diuinitie, exhibited to the king a bill against the duke of Lancaster, charging
him with heinous treasons: as that he meant vpon a sudden to destroie the king, and to
vsurpe the crowne, shewing the time, the place, and circumstances of the whole contriued
matter. The king being yoong both in yeares and discretion, when he had heard the
friers information, called two of his chapleins vnto him, one sir Nicholas Slake, and
an other, and asked their aduise what they thought good to be doone in such a weightie
cause. Now as they were busie in talke about the same, the duke of Lancaster came into
the kings chamber after his woonted manner, not vnderstanding anie thing of the matter
whereof they were in talke. The king with a sterne countenance beheld the duke, not
dooing him the honor that he was accustomed. The duke suspecting that the king had
somewhat in his head that touched his person, withdrew. In the meane time those two
that were thus in counsell with the king, fearing happilie the dukes power, or else vpon
good will they bare towards him, persuaded the king that in anie wise he should call him,
to see and heare what was laid to his charge.
A miserable & cruell torture.
The duke, after he had read the bill of his accusation, made such answer, and so excused himselfe in declaring his innocencie, that the king gaue credit to his words, and receiued his excuse. Herewith the duke besought the king, that the frier might be kept in safe gard, till the time came that he might purge himselfe of that he had charged him with; and that the lord Iohn Holland the kings halfe brother might haue the custodie of him, till the day appointed that the duke should come to his full triall. The night before which day, the said lord Holland, and sir Henrie Greene knight, came to this frier, and putting a cord about his necke, tied the other end about his priuie members, & after hanging him vp from the ground, laid a stone vpon his bellie, with the weight whereof, and peise of his bodie withall, he was strangled and tormented, so as his verie backe bone burst in sunder therewith, besides the straining of his priuie members: thus with thrée kind of tormentings he ended his wretched life. On the morow after, they caused his dead corps to be drawne about the towne, to the end it might appeare he had suffered worthilie for his great falshood & treason. Which extreame punishment and exquisite kind of execution, had it not béene meritoriouslie inflicted vpon so impudent an offender, had deserued perpetuall record of vnaccustomed crueltie, with this vehement exclamation, |764|
O fera barbaries æuo non nota priori,
Sed nec apud sæuos inuenienda Scythas.
A rode into Scotland.
One mischief asketh another.
But now to the parlement. At length, when the K. had obteined of the laitie a grant
of an halfe fiftéenth the same parlement was dissolued. In the summer following the
borderers of England and Scotland made rodes ech into others countries, to the great
disquieting of both the realmes. Among other rodes that the Englishmen made, shortlie
after Easter (as Froissard saith) the earles of Northumberland and Nottingham, raising
an armie of 2000 speares, and six thousand archers, entered Scotland by Rockesburgh,
burnt the countrie euen to Edenburgh, and so returned without damage. In the meane
time came messengers from the French king, to aduertise the Scots of the conclusion of
the truce. But the Scots prouoked with this last inuasion made by the Englishmen into
their countrie, would not heare of any truce, till they had in part reuenged their displesure
vpon the Englishmen: and so with certeine men of armes of France, that latelie
before were come thither, not yet vnderstanding of any truce, they roded into Northumberland,
doing what mischiefe they might: so that for the summer season of this yeare,
either part sought to indamage other (as Walsingham saith) though Froissard writeth,
that through the earnest trauell of the messengers that came to intimate the abstinence of
war taken, the parties now that their stomachs were well eased with the interchange of indamaging
either others confins, agréed to be quiet, and so the truce was proclamed in both
realmes, and accordinglie obserued.
The duke of Lācaster sent into France to treat of a peace.
Iohn de Northampton late maior of London cōdemned to perpetuall prison and all his goods confiscated.
About the beginning of August in the eighth yéere of this kings reigne, the duke of
Lancaster went ouer againe into France, to treat of peace; but after he had remained
there a long time, & spent no small store of treasure, he returned with a truce, to indure
onelie till the first of Maie then next insuing. While the duke of Lancaster was
foorth of the relme, Iohn de Northampton, that had borne such rule in the citie of London,
whilest he was maior, and also after (as partlie ye haue heard) was accused by a
chapleine (that he had in his house) of seditious sturs, which he went about, so that being
arreigned thereof, he was in the end condemned to perpetuall prison, and the same not to
be within the space of one hundred miles at the least of the citie of London. All his
goods were confiscated, and so he was sent to the castell of Tintagill in Cornewall, and
the kings officers seized vpon his goods & cattels. ¶ About the feast of saint Martine,
a parlement was called at London, in which, monie was demanded of the cleargie and temporaltie,
towards the maintenance of the kings wars.
A combat.
The appellan being vanquished, is adiudged to be hanged.
Abraham Fleming out of Henrie Knighton canon of Leicester abbeie.
During this parlement also, a combat was fought within lists betwixt an English esquier,
named Iohn Walsh, and an esquier of Nauarre that accused the said Walsh of treason,
though not iustlie, but mooued through displeasure, conceiued of an iniurie doone to him
by the same Walsh, whilest he was vnder capteine or vicedeputie (as we may call him) of
Chierburgh, in abusing the Nauarrois wife. Wherevpon when the Nauarrois was vanquished
and confessed the truth, he was adiudged by the king to be drawne vnto the place
of execution and hanged, notwithstanding that the queene and diuerse other made sute for
him. ¶ Henrie Knighton maketh report hereof in somewhat a differing maner: but
the issue of his tale falleth out to be like to the other. On a wednesdaie (saith he) at S.
Andrews tide, Iohn Wallise of Grimsbie fought in lists with Martilet of Nauarre esquier,
at Westminster, in presence of K. Richard & of Iohn the good duke of Lancaster: in so
much that the said Iohn Wallise slue his aduersarie, whervpon at the kings cōmandement
being made knight, he was inriched with manie gifts, as well of the kings and the dukes
bestowing, as also of other great men and peeres of the realme. As for Martilet, after he
was slaine, he was presentlie drawne, hanged, and headed.
Berwike castell woone by the Scots.
Berwike castel recouered by the earle of Northumberland.
Furthermore before the said parlement was dissolued, newes came foorth of the north
parts, that the Scots had woone the castell of Berwike: for which the earle of Northumberland,
that was capteine thereof, was put in high blame, for that he had not committed
the kéeping thereof to more circumspect persons. The duke of Lancaster,
who bare no |765|
good will to the said earle, was well appaid that he had so good matter to charge his
aduersarie withall, so that through his meanes the earle of Northumberland was sore
accused, and had much adoo to escape the danger of being reputed a traitor. Wherevpon
great occasion of malice and displeasure grew betwixt those two noble personages, as
after it well appeared. But howsoeuer the matter was handled, the earle was licenced by
the king to go into his countrie, and séeke to recouer possession of the castell thus latelie
lost. Wherevpon raising an armie, & besieging the Scots that were within the castell,
he so constreined them, that for the summe of 2000 marks they surrendred the fortresse
into his hands, their liues and goods saued: and so the earle of Northumberland recouered
the castell out of the Scotishmens hands, being taught to commit it to more warie keepers
than the other before.
The duke of Lancaster getteth him to his castell of Pomfret, and fortifieth it.
The princesse of Wales maketh an atonement betwéene the king and the duke of Lancaster.
The king being incensed against the duke of Lancaster, meant that he should haue béene
arrested and arreigned of certeine points of treason before sir Robert Trissillian cheefe
iustice (as Thomas Walsingham saith) and peraduenture there might be some such report,
that such was the kings meaning: but yet how this may stand, considering he was
to be tried by his peeres, in case that any the like matter had beene pretended, I sée not.
But how soeuer it was, he being warned thereof by some of the councell, got him to his
castell of Pomfret, which he fortified, and banded himselfe so with his fréends, that it
appeared he would defend his cause with force of armes, rather than to come to his triall
by order of law afore such a iudge: and by reason hereof, it was greatlie doubted, least
some ciuill warre would haue broken foorth. But through the earnest labour of the
kings mother, that (notwithstanding hir indisposition of bodie to trauell, by reason of hir
corpulencie) riding to and fro betwixt them, made an agréement betwixt the king
hir sonne, and the duke, to hir great comfort and contentation of mind, and no lesse
suertie of quietnesse to the whole realme.
The ships of Portsmouth & Dartmouth did better seruice than the kings great nauie.
About the same time the French king had a great fléet of ships in Flanders, so that it
was doubted least he meant some inuasion into England. Wherevpon there was sent to
the sea the lord of S. Iohns, and sir Thomas Percie with a strong nauie, but they did no
good, suffering the French fléet diuerse times to passe by them, and not once offering to
set vpon them. But the ships of Portesmouth & Dertemouth, bestirred themselues better:
for entering into the riuer of Saine, they drowned foure of their enimies ships, and tooke
other foure, with a barke of the lord Clissons, one of the fairest that was to be found
either in France or England. In these vessels the Englishmen had a rich preie of wines,
and other merchandizes. ¶ The king vpon some occasion tooke great displeasure
against William Courtnie archbishop of Canturburie, so storming against him, as few
durst speake anie thing in his excuse. The lord chancellor Michaell de la Poole seeming
to fauour his cause, was likelie to haue run in high displeasure. Sir Thomas Triuet, and
sir Iohn Deuereux intreating for him, were sore rebuked at his hands. Yet at length,
after that the archbishop was withdrawne, and had kept him close for a time, he was
thorough mediation of some fréends reconciled to the kings fauour.
Iac. Meir.
Froissard.
The French king aideth Scots against Englishmen.
The Scots inuade the frontiers of England.
The K. goeth with an armie against the Scots.
Variance betwéene sir Iohn Hollands seruāts and the lord Richard Stafford.
About the same time the French king sent into Scotland the admerall of France, with a
thousand men of armes, knights, and esquiers, besides crossebowes and other to ioine with
the Scots, and to make warres in England. The Scots incouraged with this new aid, sent
to them out of France, leuied a power, & so togither with the Frenchmen, entered into the
English confines, and began to rob & spoile, and further tooke certeine castels and houses
of defense. The king of England aduertised hereof, assembled an huge power of men of
warre, and first sent before him the duke of Lancaster with part of the armie, and afterward
followed himselfe, with all conuenient spéed that might be. At his comming into the
parts about Yorke, he was informed that the Scots and Frenchmen were withdrawne vpon
the duke Lancasters approch towards them, but the king thought to kéepe on his iournie.
Whilest he was lodged in those parts, a great mischance happened, by reason of variance
that fell betwixt certeine persons of the retinue of sir Iohn Holland brother vnto the earle |766|
of Kent and halfe brother to the king, and other of the retinue of the lord Richard Stafford
sonne to the earle of Stafford.
The lord Richard Stafford slaine by sir Iohn Holland.
The cause of their falling out was about a knight of Boheme, called sir Miles, that was
come to see the queene. This knight kept companie most an end with the lord Richard
Stafford: and chancing to be at words with two of sir Iohn Hollands seruants, there came
two archers perteining to the lord Stafford, which blamed them, that were so about to
misuse the stranger in words, as they tooke it: the strife hereby grew to that point in the
end, that one of the archers shot at one of sir Iohn Hollands seruants, and slue him.
This mishap being reported to sir Iohn Holland, set him in such a furie (by reason of the
loue which he had to his seruant) that immediatlie he rushed foorth of his lodging, to
reuenge his death, and through misfortune méeting with the lord Stafford, slue him, and
doubting in what sort his déed might be taken, fled straight vnto Beuerlie, and there tooke
sanctuarie. The earle of Stafford tooke this misaduenture right heauilie, as reason was:
yet bicause he would not trouble the host, nor disappoint the iournie which they had in
hand, vpon the kings promise that he would doo vpright iustice in the matter, as should be
thought meet and conuenient, he bare his gréefe so patientlie as he might, so that he wan
himselfe much praise for his wisedome therein shewed.
Hect. Boetius.
Edenburgh burnt by king Richard.
The king aduancing forwards with his armie, came to the borders, and entring into
Scotland, passed thorough Mers and Louthian, wasting and spoiling all the townes, houses
and villages in his waie. The abbeies of Melros, Driburgh, and Newbottell were burnt,
and those moonks and other people that were found in the same were slaine. At his comming
to Edenburgh, he found all the people fled out of the towne, but the houses and
buildings he consumed with fire, togither with the church of saint Giles. At the humble
sute of his vncle the duke of Lancaster, Holie rood house was preserued from hurt, for
that the same duke in time of the rebellion of the commons here in England, was lodged
in that house, and found much gentlenesse and fréendship in the abbat and conuent; so
that he could doo no lesse than requite them with kindnesse, at whose hands he found
kindnesse; for we are bound in conscience to tender them by whome we haue béene
benefited (vnlesse we will be counted vnciuill, according to the old adage)
Arbor honoretur cuius nos vmbra tuetur.
The French admerall persuadeth the Scots to fight with the English host.
Cumberland sore spoiled by the Scots.
Thus when the king had reuenged the displeasure afore receiued at the Scots and
Frenchmens hands, (and remained in Edenburgh fiue daies) he returned without proffer
of battell, or anie notable incounter. The admerall of France was earnestlie in hand
with the Scotish lords to persuade them to haue giuen battell to the English armie, till he
and diuerse other knights of France were brought to the top of a mounteine, from whence
they might behold all the English armie, as the same passed vnderneath them by a passage
that laie by the foot of that mounteine: for after that they had viewed the puissance of
the Englishmen, and (as neere as they could) numbered them, they had no such eger minds
to fight with them as before, for they esteemed them to be six thousand men of armes, and
threescore thousand archers, and other men of warre; where the Scots and Frenchmen
were not past a thousand speares, and thirtie thousand of all other sorts, and the most part
of those but euill armed. Therefore they determined vpon an other point, which was
to inuade England in an other quarter, whilest the Englishmen burnt vp their countrie,
and so they set forward towards the west borders, and passing ouer the mounteins that
diuide Northumberland from Scotland, they entered into Cumberland, dooing much hurt
in the lands that belonged to the lord Mowbraie, to the earles of Notingham, and Stafford,
to the baron of Graistocke, and to the Musgraues.
Carleill assalted by the Scots.
Good counsell neglected.
Lastlie, they came to Carleill, and boldlie assalted the citie: but sir Lewes Clifford, and
sir Thomas Musgraue, Danie Holgraue, and diuerse other worthie capteins being within
it, so defended the walles and gates, that their enimies got small aduantage: and finallie
hearing that the English armie was returning homewards, the Scots and Frenchmen drew
backe into Scotland, doubting to be inclosed by the Englishmen, as they had béene in deed, |767|
if the duke of Lancaster and his brethren (vncles to the king) might haue béene beleeued,
who counselled the king to pursue the enimies, and stop the passages through which they
must needs passe in their comming backe. But the earle of Oxenford being most in fauour
and credit with the king in those daies, as one that ruled all things at his pleasure, did
aduise him to the contrarie, by putting him in beléefe (as was said) that his vncles went
about to bring him in danger to be lost and surprised of his enimies, wherevpon he tooke
the next way home, and so brake vp his iournie.
Polydor.
A noble reuenge.
There were 600 Englishmē who with their bowes did great seruice as by one author it appeareth.
The king of Portingale sendeth six gallies to K. Richards aid.
When the Scots and Frenchmen were returned into Scotland, the Scotish king hauing
conceiued a iust displeasure towards the French admerall, for that by his meanes the
realme of Scotland had susteined such damage in that season, caused him and his Frenchmen
to be despoiled of the most part of their goods, and sent them so awaie out of his
countrie, that the Scots might receiue some comfort by those warres. In this yeare was
the battell of Algeberota in Portingale, where king Iohn of Portingale discomfited a great
host of Spaniards and Frenchmen by the helpe and policie of certeine Englishmen which
he had there with him, vnder the leading of two esquiers Norberie and Hartell. There
were slaine diuers earls & great lords of Spaniards, but for that our writers do not rightlie
note the Spanish names, but write them corruptlie as strangers vse to doo, we here omit
them. The king of Portingale (after this victorie obteined against his enimies) sent six
gallies vnto the king of England to aid him against his aduersaries, the which were well
receiued and highlie made of by the Londoners and other, so that the Portingales had no
cause to repent of their comming hither.
A good victorie of them of Calis against the French fléet.
Abr. Fl. out of Henrie Knighton canon of Leicester abbeie.
The French king this yeare besieged and wan the towne of Dam, after he had béene at
great charges about it. Whilest his nauie returned from Scluis, where the same had laien
at anchor a long time, the ships by tempest were scattered & wether-driuen, so that in the
feast daie of the exaltation of the crosse, two of their gallies, a great ship, a barge, and
seuen balengers were cast on shore about Calis, & the Calisians tooke fiue hundred
Frenchmen and Normans that escaped to land. An other day 72 French ships as they
were comming from Scluis, to passe by Calis, were met with by them of Calis, who behaued
themselues so manfullie, that they tooke 18 of those French ships, and a great barke,
in which thrée score armed men were slaine before it could be taken. Within three daies
after this, the Calisians met 45 other French ships, and after six houres fight obteined the
victorie, taking thrée of the most principall vessels, whereof one being a hulke of Eastland
was hired by the Normans, to gard the residue. The other two that were taken were of
such mold, that they could not enter into the hauen at Calis, and therefore were sent to
Sandwich, the one of them being a new ship, which the lord Clisson had bought at Scluis,
paieng for hir 3000 franks. ¶ Henrie Knighton saith it was prised or valued at 20000
florens, it was so tall, big, and large a vessell; and therefore of great capacitie.
The Calisians & others make a rode into France & win great booties.
Fabian.
Creation of dukes and earles at the parlement.
Henrie of Bollingbrooke earle of Derbie afterwards king.
On saint Denise daie the soldiors of Calis and other English fortresses thereabouts,
made a secret iournie into France, and got a bootie of foure thousand shéepe, and three
hundred head of great cattell, which they droue towards their holds; and as the lord de
Rambures gouernour of Bullongne would haue recouered the preie, he was vnhorssed with
the rencounter of an English speare, and being relieued by his companie, and mounted
againe, withdrew himselfe, not attempting to trie any further masteries, and so the Englishmen
safelie passed foorth with their bootie of cattell, and aboue a hundred good prisoners
which they had taken at this rode. In this 9 yeare about the feast of S. Martine, the
king called his high court of parlement at Westminster, in the which amongst other things
there concluded, he created two dukes, a marques, and fiue earles. First Edmund Langlie
earle of Cambridge the kings vncle was created duke of Yorke, Thomas of Woodstoke
his other vncle earle of Buckingham was created duke of Glocester, Robert Véere earle of
Oxford was made marques of Deuelin, Henrie of Bollingbrooke sonne and heire to Iohn
of Gaunt duke of Lancaster was created earle of Derbie: Edward Plantagenet sonne and
heire to the Duke of Yorke was made earle of Rutland, Michaell lord de la Poole |768|
chancellor of England was created earle of Suffolke, & sir Thomas Moubraie earle of Notingham
was made earle marshall.
The lord Mortimer erle of March proclamed heire apparent to the crowne.
The earle of March slaine by the wild Irish.
The issue of the foresaid earle of March.
Also by authoritie of this parlement, Roger lord Mortimer earle of March, sonne and
heire of Edmund Mortimer earle of March and of the ladie Philip eldest daughter and
heire vnto Lionell duke of Clarence, third sonne to king Edward the third, was established
heire apparant to the crowne of this realme, and shortlie after so proclaimed. The which
earle of March, anon after the end of the same parlement, sailed into Ireland to his lordship
of Vlster, whereof he was owner by right of his said mother: but whilest he remained
there to pacifie the rebellions of the wild Irish, a great number of them togither assembled,
came vpon him and slue him, togither with the most part of his companie. This Roger
earle of March had issue Edmund, Roger, Anne, Ales, & Eleanor, which Eleanor was
made a nunne. The two sonnes died without issue, and Anne the eldest of the daughters
was married to Richard earle of Cambridge, sonne vnto Edmund of Langlie before remembred:
the which Richard had issue by the said Anne, a son called Richard, that was
after duke of Yorke, and father to king Edward the fourth; also a daughter named Isabell,
afterwards married to the lord Bourcher. This Richard earle of Cambridge was put to
death by Henrie the fift, as after ye shall heare.
Froissard.
Moreouer, in this yeare Henrie of Bollingbrooke earle of Derbie married the daughter
and heire of Humfrie Bohun earle of Hereford, in whose right he was after made duke of
Hereford, and by hir he had issue Henrie that after him was king of this realme, the ladie
Blanch duches of Bar, and the ladie Philip married to the king of Denmarke: also Thomas
duke of Clarence, Iohn duke of Bedford, and Humfrie duke of Glocester. ¶ The
Gauntiners still mainteined warre against the earle of Flanders during his life, and after his
deceasse against Philip duke of Burgogne, by such aid and comfort as they had from time
to time of the king of England, till finallie this yeare about the eightenth daie of December,
a peace was concluded betwixt the said duke and the towne of Gaunt: and sir Iohn
Bourchier that had laine a long season there, as capteine vnder the K. of England, and
Peter de Bois one of the chéefe capteins of the Gauntiners (before the concluding of this
peace) was safelie conducted to Calis by vertue of the duke of Burgogne his safe conduct,
and so they came ouer into England, and the king gaue vnto Peter de Bois a pension of
an hundred marks sterling, yearelie to be paid to him out of the staples of the woolles in
London.
The king of Armenia cōmeth into England for aid against the Turks.
Thom. Wals.
This yeare king Richard holding his Christmasse at Eltham, thither came to him Leo
king of Armenia, whose countrie and realme being in danger to be conquered of the Turks,
he was come into those west parts of christendome for aid and succour at the hands of
the christian princes here. The king honorablie receiued him, and after he had taken
counsell touching his request, he gaue him great summes of monie and other rich gifts,
with a stipend (as some write) of a thousand pounds yearely to be paid to him during his
life. After he had remained here two moneths space, he tooke leaue of the king and departed.
The chiefest point of his errand was, to haue procured a peace betwixt the two
kings of England and France, but destinie would not permit so good a purpose to take
effect: for the hatred which either nation bare to other, would not suffer their loftie minds
to yeeld in any one point, further than seemed good in their owne opinions.
Thom. Wals. Froissard. Ia. Meir.
The duke of Lancaster goeth into Spaine with an armie.
In this ninth yeare of king Richard (though by other writers it should séeme to be
rather in the yeare following) the duke of Lancaster with a great power of men of warre
went into Spaine, and lead with him thither his wife the ladie Constance, & a daughter
which he had by hir named Katharine, and two other daughters which he had by his former
wife. He had béene about the preparing of an armie, and all furniture necessarie
for this iournie two or thrée yéeres before, and therefore hauing now seauen gallies and
eightéene ships sent to him out of Portingale (which arriued at Bristow) he caused all such
vessels as he had prouided to resort likewise thither, where making his generall assemblie,
when all his men of warre were come togither, he bestowed them aboord, with all their |769|
horsses and purueiances, and causing sailes to be hoissed vp, set forward on his long
wished iournie. This was in the moneth of Maie, when the seas were calme, the aire
swéet, and the winds pleasant and agréeable to his purpose. He appointed for admerall
of his whole fléet sir Thomas Percie; and sir Iohn Holland that was after created earle
of Huntington and had married one of his daughters was ordeined constable of the
hoast; and sir Thomas Moreaux hauing married his bastard daughter was one of his
marshals.
In Angl. prælij.
There were that attended him in this iournie manie other lords and knights of honor,
as the lord Lucie, the lord Talbot, the lord Basset, the lord Willoughbie, the lord Fitz
Walter, the lord Poinings, the lord Bradston, the lord of Pōmiers a Gascoigne, the lord
Yonne fitz Warren, Henrie lord Beaumont, William lord Beauchampe, sir Richard
Burlie that was another of the marshals of the armie, sir Hugh Spenser, sir William
Windsore, sir Iohn Daubreticourt, sir Hugh Hastings, sir William Farrington, sir
Thomas Tresham, sir Mauburin de Liniers, sir Thomas Worcester, sir Iohn Sowtrie, sir
Robert Clinton, sir Philip Tirrell, sir Lewes Rochester, Huguelin Caluerlie, Dauid
Holgraue, Thomas Alerie, Hobequin Beaucester, and diuerse other: they were in all to
the number of fifteene hundred men of armes, whereof a thousand at the least were
knights and esquiers, besides foure thousand archers, and other men of warre, so perfectlie
appointed and arraied, as could be thought méet and conuenient. Of this chosen
companie attendant vpon the duke of Lancaster, & of this his voiage into Spaine, the
said C. Okland speaketh no lesse trulie & according to the report of our annales, than
honorablie:
Ocyus instructa pro bello classe futuro,
Milite stipatus generoso traijcit æquor
Fluctisonum, cum vxore pia natísq; duabus, &c.
Abr. Fl. out of Henrie Knighton canon of Leicester abbeie.
¶ Henrie
Knighton reporteth of this voiage as followeth, in somewhat a differing sort
from this alreadie laid downe. On Easter daie (saith he) Iohn the duke of Lancaster
with his wife came to the king, to take their leaue; to the which duke the king gaue a
crowne of gold, and the quéene likewise gaue another crowne of gold to the duchesse.
Besides this, the king commanded his people that they should call him king of Spaine, and
doo him honour in all things. He had with him a power of 20000 chosen men; of which
number noted in the marshals bill or scrool, 2000 were men of armes, and 8000 were
archers.
Thom. Wals.
The duke of Lancaster landeth at Brest and winneth two bastides from the Frenchmen.
The duke of Lancaster landeth at Groigne. Froissard. Le Groigne Corone.
Abr. Fl. out of Henrie Knighton canon of Leicester abbeie.
As they passed by Britaine, they landed at Brest, the capteine whereof, at that time
named sir Iohn Rooche, finding himselfe greatlie annoied by the Frenchmen that were
lodged in two bastides erected before the castell, declared to the duke in what state he
stood. Wherevpon he caused the said bastides to be assailed, which was doone by the
lord Fitz Walter, and others, who bare themselues so manfullie, that the bastides were
woone, broken downe, and a great preie with prisoners obteined, although not without
losse of diuerse valiant personages. Thus were they within Brest castell deliuered of
their vnfreendlie neighbours by the duke of Lancaster and his people. Who hauing doone
their feat tooke the seas, and sailed foorth till they came on the coasts of Gallis, where
on S. Laurence eeuen, they arriued in the hauen of Groigne, otherwise called Coron,
and there they vnshipped all their prouisions, determining to inuade the countrie on that
side. ¶ Héere, bicause it is not vnprofitable to know the absolute truth of things doone,
by the collection of writers, I haue translated the beseeging of Brest, as the same is set
downe by Henrie Knighton in his annales, in a larger and more ample sort, with a fuller
certificat of circumstances than hath hitherto béene declared. At the same time (saith he)
the duke of Britaine had laid siege both by sea and land, to a certeine towne in Britaine,
in old time subiect to the king of England, which was called Brest, with a great multitude
of Frenchmen and Britains. Now on the twelfth of the kalends of Iulie, he began to build
a fort before the said towne of Brest, of a woonderful bignesse, the walles thereof being |770|
ten foot thicke, and seauen towres about it. A thousand workmen did worke daie by
daie vpon it, and to defend the said workemen (that they might not be hindered in their
businesse by the citizens) ten thousand fighting men were appointed. So that this fort
was begun and ended in ninetéene daies space, and called the Doouehouse, bicause a
doouehouse stood in the same place before. Furthermore he stored this fort with all
necessaries, as vittels, armour, guns, and other engins, and he placed therein as capteine
of the warriors the lord Iohn Maletret with a hundred and fiftie armed men, and as
manie other soldiors, the whole number being thrée
hundred.
The good duke of Lancaster hauing knowledge hereof, directed his fléet or nauie towards
the hauen of Brest, where when he had arriued, they all fled from the siege, both
by sea and land, those onlie, which were in the fort, remaining behind. Now the prior
of S. Iames in Calis desired the good duke that he might giue the first assault against the
fort; who taking the repulse with his retinue, he ceased and gaue ouer. In like sort did
manie more giue the assault to the same for the space of two daies and more: in somuch
that some digging vnder the wals, and vndermining the foundations of one towre,
the same fell downe vpon sir Robert Swinarton a valiant knight of Staffordshire, and
manie more, among whome was Iohn de Bolton a couragious gentleman and an esquier
by degree of Yorkeshire. As for those that were vpon the towre, they also came tumbling
downe, and were presentlie slaine.
Philip the duke of Lancasters daughter married to the king of Portingale.
In the meane time the lord Maletret gardian of the fort, sent word to the duke of
Lancaster, that he would yeeld and surrender the hold into his hands vpon condition,
that he and all his might freelie depart with such armour, goods, chatels and victuals as
they had reposed and laid vp in store for their necessarie prouision: wherevnto the good
duke (as he was alwaies good) verie gentlie agréed; vpon condition also, that before their
departure, they should ruinate the said fort, and laie it eeuen with the ground; and
should likewise allow and paie him towards his costs and charges defraied in the siege of
the same, twentie thousand scutes of gold. Then might you sée the people flocking from
all parts of the countrie, some with beires, some with cabbins, some with carts, and some
with crutches to fetch awaie the dead and the wounded: in so much that there was not
one, either slaine outright, or deadlie maimed, for whome his freends did not mone and
lament. Yea, the lord Maletret himselfe was so mangled and hurt, that he could not go
on his legs, but as he leaned on mens shoulders, and was borne vp on either side. It
was reported, that manie dead bodies were hidden in heaps of salt, to the end that the
Englishmen should not glorie and triumph in the multitude of the slaine, of whome [in
sight] the number amounted to aboue 150. Thus farre goeth Henrie Knighton, whose
report giueth no small light to the matter vnder hand. After the duke had remained a
moneth at Groigne, he went to Compostella, and there soiourned for a season, during the
which, his constable sir Iohn Holland woone diuerse townes and fortresses which the
enemies kept: diuerse yeelded to the duke with better will, for that the duchesse his
wife was there with him, whom they knew to be right inheritour to the realme. ¶ At
Mouson a towne on the confines betwixt Spaine and Portingale, the king of Portingale and
the duke of Lancaster met, where they communed and tooke counsell togither for the
more spéedie proceeding in their enterprise against their aduersaries of Castile. Also
there was a mariage concluded betwixt the said king of Portingale, and the ladie Philip
daughter to the said duke, which marriage shortlie after was wholie consummated, the
said ladie being first married by procuration at Compostella, and after sent into Portingale
right honorablie accompanied.
The king of Portingale & the duke of Lancaster ioining their armies togither inuade Castile.
The duke continued at Compostella all the winter season, till towards March, and
then (according to appointment taken betwixt him, and the king of Portingale, at their
being togither at Mouson, for their iournie to be made into Castile) the said king assembled
an armie of a thousand men of armes, and ten thousand other souldiers, with
the which entring the confines of Castile, he first tooke the towne of Feroule, and after |771|
ioining with the duke, who had in the meane while by his marshall taken the townes of
Ruelles, Ville Lopes, Pounceuoide, Dighos, Baionne in la Maroll, Ribadan, Maures,
Basanses, and Orens, with others in the countrie of Gallis, they marched foorth with
their whole powers both togither, and passing ouer the riuer of Dure, entered into the
countrie de Campo.
Variance amongst writers.
¶ Here
the English writers make mention of a battell, which the constable of Castile
should giue to the duke, and that the victorie remained on the dukes side, and the
Spaniards chased out of the field. But Froissard (who liued in those daies, and learned
that which he wrote of those that were with the duke in his iournie) maketh no remembrance
of any such thing, but that contrarilie the king of Castile folowing the aduise of
such Frenchmen as were sent into Spaine to aid him, caused all the riches of the countrie
to be brought into the walled townes and fortresses, which he stuffed with men of warre,
to defend them from the Englishmen and Portingales; and further to cut off their vitels,
and to kéepe them from hauing forage abroad in the countrie, vnlesse such as were sent
were garded with the greater troops for their suertie and defense.
Great death in the English host in Spaine by reason of the great heat of that countrie.
Thus bestowing the most part of all such men of warre, both Frenchmen and Spaniards,
as he could make in places most conuenient for that purpose, he fullie determined
not to giue battell till his enimies had wearied themselues in keeping of the fields,
and that a new power was come to his aid out of France, which he dailie looked for. By
which means it came to passe, that the Englishmen not vsed to such hot aire as they
found in those parts in that season of the yeare (for it was about Midsummer) fell dailie
into manie perillous diseases, whereof no small number died; and other became so
faint, that they were not able to helpe themselues, that to consider the miserie in which
they were, it would haue rued the harts of their verie foes. Herevpon was the duke constreined
to fall to a communication for a peace, which in the end was accorded, though
not at this instant.
Froissard. The lord Fitz Walter. I thinke that none of these thrée were barons but onlie the lord Poinings.
Howbeit a truce was granted, in such wise as it might be at the Englishmens choise to
returne into their countrie, either by sea or by land, thorough France. Such as passed
through Spaine to France, had safe conducts sealed and signed by the king of Spaine;
but scarse the halfe of those that came out of England with the duke, returned thither
againe, they died so fast, aswell after the breaking vp of their campe, as before.
Amongst other, there died before the breaking vp of the campe, one of the greatest barons
of all the companie, named the lord Fitz Walter; and afterwards within the towne of
Ville Arpent, there died (as Froissard saith) three great barons of England, and men of
great possessions: sir Richard Burlie a knight of the garter, who had béene as it were
high marshall of the armie, the lord Poinings, and sir Henrie Percie cousine germane to
the earle of Northumberland.
The duke of Lancaster returneth out of Portingale into Gascoigne.
In the towne of Noie deceassed sir Mauburin de Liniers a Poictouin, and in the towne
of Ruelles died the lord Talbot, and so here and there (saith Froissard) there died in all
all twelue great lords, foure score knights, two hundred esquiers, and of the meaner sort of
souldiers aboue fiue hundred. After that the armie was broken vp, the duke of Lancaster and
the duchesse his wife went into Portingale, and there remained a season, and then taking the
sea, sailed to Baionne in the marshes of Gascoigne, where he rested a long time after.
¶ In this meane while, there was communication and offers made for a marriage to be
had betwixt the duke of Berrie, vncle to the French king; and the ladie Katharine
daughter to the duke of Lancaster, and of the duchesse his wife the ladie Constance.
A marriage concluded betwéene the prince of Spaine, and the duke of Lancasters daughters. Fabian.
Abr. Fl. out of Henrie Knighton canon of Leicester abbeie.
In Angl. prælijs sub Rich. 2.
When the king of Spaine vnderstood of that treatie, he began to doubt, least if that
marriage tooke place, it might turne to his disaduantage; and therefore to be at quietnesse
with the duke of Lancaster, whose puissance he doubted, and whose wisdome he
perfectlie vnderstood, by politike meanes and earnest sute, at length concluded a peace
with him on this wise. That his eldest son Henrie should haue in mariage the ladie Katharine
daughter to the duke of Lancaster, begot on his wife the duchesse Constance, and |772|
be intituled price of Austurgus. In consideration of which marriage to be had, and all
claimes to ceasse, which the duke in right of his wife might chalenge or pretend; it was
agreed, that the said duke should receiue yearelie the summe of ten thousand marks, to
be paid to him, or to his assignes in the citie of Baionne in Gascoigne, during the terme
of the liues of the said duke and duchesse; and further to haue in hand the summe of
two hundreth thousand nobles. ¶ Henrie Knighton in his relation of this composition
betwéene these persons of great estate, dooth say, that it was told him by one of the good
duke of Lancasters owne houshold, and attendant vpon him in this voiage into Spaine,
that the Spanish king did send seuen and fortie mules loden with coffers full of gold for
the second paiment wherevpon they were agréed. As touching the first paiment (saith
Knighton) I asked no question of the partie. So that (besides the annuitie, which mine
author reporteth to be 16000 thousand marks, during the parties liues iointlie, and 12000
marks, if it fortuned that the dukes daughter should suruiue and outliue hir husband) it
should séeme there were other large allowances, which if they were (as it is likelie) after
this rate, it was a right roiall munificence. And to this report of Knighton dooth Ch.
Okland make a kind of allusion, who speking of the conditions of peace betweene the
duke of Lancaster, and the king of Spaine, saith:
Causæ diffidens extemplò Hispanus, agebat
De pace, acceptis & conditionibus, offert
Argenti ac auri plaustrorum protinùs octo
Iustum onus, argentíque decem soluenda quotannis
Millia nummorum, &c.
The aforesaid agreement and marriage was not concluded, till about the thirteenth yeare of king Richards reigne, so that in the meane while manie incidents chanced in England and in other regions, which in their time and places shall be touched, as to purpose serueth.
Iacob. Meir. Froissard.
A mightie great nauie of French ships at Sluis purposing to inuade Englād.
And first it is not to be forgotten, that the Frenchmen neuer shewed more vanitie
than they did this yeare, since the linage of the Capetes began first to rule in France.
All the ships that they could prouide from the confines of Spaine, vnto the mouth of the
Rhene, all alongst the coast, they assembled at Sluis and thereabouts, and made so great
preparation for the warre, that the like had not béene heard of (meaning, as they boasted,
and made their vants) to passe ouer into England, and to deuoure the whole countrie,
in dooing sacrifice to the soules of their elders with the bloud of the English people.
Howbeit these words were wind, & to them accorded the prouerbe,
Parturiunt montes, nascetur ridiculus mus.
There were numbred in the moneth of September about Sluis, Dam, and Blankberke 1287
ships, besides those which were rigged in Britaine by the constable, who had caused an
inclosure of a field to be made of timber, like railes or barriers, that when they were
landed in England, they might therewith inclose their field, and so lodge more at suertie,
and when they remooued, it was so made with ioints, that they might take it vp in péeces
and easilie conueie it with them.
The description of the inclosure.
Thom. Wal.
Tho. Walsi. The prouision of ye Englishmen to resist ye great power of Frenchmen.
This inclosure or wall of wood was twentie foot in height, and conteined in length or
in compasse, when it was set vp, three thousand pases, and at the end of euerie twelue
pases stood a turret able to receiue ten men, that was higher than the rest of the wall by
ten foot at the least. There were appointed to haue passed ouer in those ships twentie
thousand men of armes, twentie thousand crosbowes, and twentie thousand other men of
warre. To haue séene the great apparell, furniture and prouision, the shipping, trussing,
bearing, and carrieng to and fro of things needfull for this iournie, a man might haue
maruelled; for suerlie the like hath sildome beene remembred. All that was doone there
on that side of the sea by the Frenchmen, was notified into England, so that the Frenchmen
were not more occupied to prepare themselues to inuade England, than the Englishmen
were to make themselues readie to defend their countrie from all danger of enimies; so |773|
that euerie hauen towne, especiallie alongst the west south, and east coasts, were kept
and warded with notable numbers of armed men and archers.
Abr. Fl. out of Henrie Knighton canon of Leicester abbeie.
¶ Notwithstanding
the great confidence which the French king reposed in the fortification
which he had imbarked, thinking thereby to haue wrought great woonders, to the
discomfiture of the English: yet (contrarie to his expectation) it so fortuned, that about
Michaelmas, the lord William Beauchampe capteine of Calis tooke two ships; whereof
one was loden with a péece of the said inclosure or wall of wood, and in the same ship
was the maister carpenter of the inclosure, being an Englishman borne, but banished his
countrie before that time for some offense. He also tooke another ship, wherein were
engins, guns, gunpowder & other instruments of war. Not long after this, two more
ships were taken likewise, whose burthen was parcels of the foresaid frame or inclosure:
so that three ships were met withall and seized vpon, each of them loden with one kind
of stuffe. Whereof king Richard hearing, he caused the said inclosure to be reared and
set vp about Winchelsie towne. In the meane while, namelie in September, the foresaid
armie came into Flanders, and arriued at the hauen of Sluis, intending to make their
progresse into England: but by prolonging of the time there, they were driuen to great
distresse and want of vittels: for it was reported that a loafe of bread, sold in England
for a penie, was sold there for eighteene pence, and a hens eg for a penie: so that in the
end of Nouember they returned to France, missing their purpose as much as if they had
neuer ment it.
The Londoners speciallie afraid of the Frēch forces.
There were readie within the realme at that season, in one part and other 100000
archers, and ten thousand men of armes, besides those that were gone into Spaine with
the duke of Lancaster. All this preparation lasted for the more part of the summer,
euen till the beginning of winter: and still the French king that was come downe into
Flanders, staied for the comming of his vncle the duke of Berrie: who at length in the
moneth of Nouember came to Sluis, hauing protracted time, of purpose, that he might
by the excuse of winter, cause this iornie to be put off till another season. Wherein he
shewed more wit than all the councellors which the French king had about him: for if he
had not politikelie shifted off the matter, the king had landed here in England, to the great
danger of his person and losse of his people. And yet if we shall beléeue writers that
liued in those daies, by reason of the brute that was spred through the realme, of that
huge preparation which the French king made to inuade this land, no small feare entered
into the harts of manie, namelie of the Londoners, who (as if the enimies had beene
alredie landed) bestirred them, in making what prouision they might for their defense,
though it séemed by their manner of dooings, they stood in doubt least the whole realme
had not béene able to make sufficient resistance.
Dissention among the noblemen.
Froissard.
Tho. Walsin A parlement at London.
In déed diuerse were the more afraid, for that they percieued how the barons and
great lords agreed not in manie points among themselues, and so being not of one mind,
the wiser sort doubted least through their disagréeing in that troublesome time, some
danger might grow to the state of the whole realme. Notwithstanding, no small number
of others wished nothing more, than that the French king in going forward with his purpose,
might haue come ouer, not doubting but that he should haue found such a welcome,
as would haue beene little to his ease. About the feast of saint Michaell, a
parlement was called and holden at London, and withall great numbers of men of armes
& archers were appointed to come and lie about London, that they might be readie to
march foorthwith against the enimies whensoeuer it chanced them to land. Thus all the
townes and villages twentie miles in compasse round about London, were full of men of
armes and archers, lieing as it had beene in campe; and wanting both vittels and monie,
they were driuen to spoile and to take by violence what they might get. At length, after
they had laine thus to small purpose a long season, they were licenced to depart home,
with commandement to be readie to returne againe vpon the first summons. Manie of
them were constreined through necessitie, to sell their horsses,
and armour, and some |774|
to spoile and to rob as they went homewards, not sparing what they might laie their
hands vpon. Although the men of warre were dismissed home, the parlement yet continued,
and the lords still remained at London, hearkening still for the French kings
comming.
Robert Véer marquesse of Dubline created duke of Ireland.
The lord Robert Véer earle of Oxenford, whome the king in the last parlement had
made marquesse of Dubline, was now in this parlement created duke of Ireland: the
other lords sore enuieng so high preferment in a man that so little deserued, as they
tooke it. For by reason of the kings great affection which he bare not onelie to this noble
man, but also to the lord Michael de la Poole, whom he had latelie created earle of Suffolke,
and after aduanced him to the office of lord chancellor (as before ye haue heard)
not onelie the lords, but also the commons sore grudged at such their high preferrement,
in somuch that in this present parlement, the knights & burgesses in the lower house,
exhibited a bill against the lord chancellor, of diuerse crimes which they laid to his
charge, and so vsed the matter, with the helpe of the lords, that in the end in some
respect they had their willes against him, contrarie to the kings mind, as after may
appeare.
And where the king had demanded a reliefe of monie towards the maintenance of his
estate, and charges of the warres, it was answered, that he néeded not any tallage of his
subiects, sith he might furnish himselfe with such a summe at the hands of the said earle,
that was iustlie indebted vnto him therein, as they were able well to prooue. But the
king was nothing herewith contented, conceiuing no small displeasure, aswell against
them of the lower house, as against the lords in the vpper, for fauouring them in the
lower, in matters that went so sore against his mind. Herevpon (as was said, whether
trulie or otherwise, the lord knoweth) by a conspiracie begun betwixt the king & such as
were most in fauour with him, it was deuised, that the duke of Glocester (as principall)
and such other lords as fauored the knights and burgesses in their sute, against the earle
of Suffolke, and were otherwise against the king in his demand of monie, should be willed
to a supper in London, there to be murthered.
Richard Exton iustlie cōmended.
But the duke comming by some meanes to vnderstand of this wicked practise, had no
desire to take part of that supper, where such sharpe sauce was prouided, and withall
gaue warning to the residue, that they likewise should not come there, but to content
themselues with their owne suppers at their lodgings. It was said, that sir Nicholas
Brember, who had béene maior the yeare before, had promised his assistance in the
execution of this horrible fact: but thorough the commendable constancie of Richard
Exton that was maior this yeare being mooued by the king for his furtherance therein,
and denieng flatlie to consent to the death of such innocent persons, that heinous practise
was omitted. This matter being brought to light, the hatred and malice which men
bare to such councellors of the king greatlie increased, and the duke of Glocester and
such as withstood the king, dailie grew more and more into the peoples fauour.
A subsidie granted and appointed to be spent according to ye discretion of the nobilitie.
Howbeit at length, through the earnest sute of some of the great lords, there was
granted to the king halfe a tenth and halfe a fiftéenth, which should not be spent at the
pleasure of the prince, but by the order and appointment of the said lords, & so at length
the earle of Arundell was appointed to receiue it, to furnish him with a nauie to the seas.
But before this paiment might be granted, there was much adoo, & hard hold: for where
the said earle of Suffolke then lord chancellor, at first had demanded of the commons in
the kings name, foure fiftéens (for with lesse (said he) the king could not mainteine his
estate and the warres which he had in hand) the whole bodie of the parlement made
answer thereto, that without the king were present (for he was then at Eltham) they
could make therein no answer at all: and herewith they tooke occasion at length to say
further, that except the said earle of Suffolke were remooued from the office of chancellorship,
they would meddle no further with any act in this parlement, were it neuer of so
small importance. |775|
Dissention betwéene the king and the parlement house.
The duke of Glocester and the bishop of Elie sent to ye K. at Eltham frō the whole bodie of the parlement.
Their requests to the king.
The king being aduertised hereof, sent againe to the commons, that they should send
vnto Eltham (where he laie) fortie of the wisest and best learned of the common house,
the which in the name of the whole house should declare vnto him their minds. And
then the house was in no small feare, by reason of a brute that was raised, how the king
sought meanes to intrap and destroie them that followed not his purpose. Herevpon
aswell the lords of the vpper house as the commons of the lower assembled togither, and
agréed with one consent, that the duke of Glocester, and Thomas Arundell bishop of
Elie, should in the name of the whole parlement be sent to the king vnto Eltham: which
was doone, and the king was well contented that they should come. When they came
before his presence, with humble reuerence they declared their message, which consisted
in these points: That the lords and commons assembled at that present in parlement,
besought him of his lawfull fauour, that they might liue in peace and tranquillitie vnder
him.
And oftener if néed require.
The causes & conditions of a parlement.
They further declared, that one old statute and laudable custome was approued, which
no man could denie, that the king once in the yeare might lawfullie summon his high
court of parlement, and call the lords and commons therevnto, as to the highest court of
his realme, in which court all right and equitie ought to shine as the sunne being at the
highest, whereof poore and rich may take refreshing; where also reformation ought to be
had of all oppressions, wrongs, extortions, & enormities within the realme; and there the
king ought to take counsell with the wise men of his realme, for the maintenance of his
estate, and conseruation of the same. And if it might be knowen that any persons within
the realme or without, intended the contrarie; there must also be deuised how such
euill weeds may be destroied. There must also be studied and foreséene, that if any
charge doo come vpon the king and realme, how it may be honorablie borne and discharged.
Absence of the king from the parlement for the space of 40 daies.
The kings answer.
Further, they declared that till that present, his subiects (as was thought) had louinglie
demeaned themselues towards him, in aiding him with their substance to the best of their
powers, & that their desire was to vnderstand how those goods were spent. And further
they said, they had one thing to declare vnto him, how that by an old ordinance it was
enacted, that if the king should absent himselfe fourtie daies, not being sicke, and refuse
to come to the parlement, without regard to the charges of his people, and their great
paines, they then may lawfullie returne home to their houses: and therefore sith he had
béene absent a long time, and yet refused to come among them, it was greatlie to their
discomfort. To this the king (as we find) made this answer: “Well, we do perceiue
that our people and commons go about to rise against vs: wherefore we thinke we cannot
doo better than to aske aid of our cousine the French king, and rather submit vs vnto him
than to our owne subiects.”
Wealth of the people is the glorie of the prince and suertie of his reigne.
The lords answered, that it should not be good for him so to doo, but a waie rather to
bring him into extreame danger, sith it was plaine inough, that the French king was his
ancient enimie and greatest aduersarie, who if he might once set foot in the realme of
England, he would rather despoile and dispossesse the king of his kingdome, than put his
helping hand to relieue him. He might (they said) call to remembrance, how his noble
progenitour king Edward the third, his grandfather, and prince Edward his father had
trauelled in heat and cold, with great anguish and troubles incessantlie, to make a conquest
of France, that rightfullie apperteined vnto them, and now to him, in which wars
he might likewise remember how manie lords, noble men, and good commons of both
realmes had lost their liues, and what charges both the realmes likewise bare in mainteining
those warres: and now (the more pitie) greater burthens were laid vpon the necks of
the English subiects for the supportation of his charges, by reason whereof, they were so
low brought (said they) that they haue not to paie their rents, and so by such meanes was
his power decaied, his lords brought behind hand, and all his people sore impouerished.
And as that king cannot be poore that hath rich people, so cannot he be rich that
hath |776|
poore commons. And as he tooke hurt by such inconueniences chancing through euill
councellors that were about him, so the lords and noblemen susteined no lesse hurt each
one after his estate and calling. And if remedie were not in time prouided through his
helping hand, the realme must needs fall in ruine, and the default should be imputed to
him and to those his euill councellors.
Change of officers by the parlement.
The earle of Suffolke gréeuouslie charged by the parlement house for sundrie offenses.
By these and the like persuasions the king was induced to come to the parlement, and
according to his appointment he came indeed. Soone after his comming was Iohn Fortham
bishop of Durham discharged of his office of lord treasuror, and in his place was
appointed one Iohn Gilbert bishop of Hereford, that was a frier of the order of preachers,
a man more eloquent than faithfull, as some reported of him. Also the earle of Suffolke
was discharged of his office of lord chancellor, and Thomas Arundell bishop of Elie placed
in his roome, by whole consent of parlement. The same earle of Suffolke was charged
with manie & verie great enormious crimes, frauds, falshoods, and tresons, which he
had practised, to the great preiudice of the king and realme, and therevpon was committed
to ward in the castell of Windsore. Notwithstanding they adiudged him not to death
(as some write) nor disgraded him of the honor of knighthood, but condemned him to
paie a fine of twentie thousand marks, and also to forfeit one thousand pounds of yéerelie
rents which he had purchased.
But other write, that notwithstanding the king was sore offended for the accusations
brought against the said earle of Suffolke and others, whome he loued, and was loth to
heare anie euill of: yet he was constreined at length, after he had shifted off the matter
by sundrie deuises, to appoint certeine persons with full power and authoritie to heare,
and in iudgment to determine those matters. The duke of Glocester therfore, and the
earle of Arundell were appointed as iudges; which (whilest the king as yet was absent,
who got him foorth of the waie of purpose, bicause he would not be present at the condemnation
of those whome he most entierlie loued and fauoured) went earnestlie in hand
with their businesse, and so at length (as Walsingham saith) the earle of Suffolke was conuicted,
& found giltie of sundrie crimes, trespasses, and naughtie parts: for which it
was thought that he deserued to lose his life & goods, but yet he was suffered (as the
same Walsingham saith) to go abroad vnder suertie, certeine great men being bound
for him in great sums of monie. But what order soeuer was taken for the punishment
of him, sure it is he was displaced from his office of chancellorship, as before yée haue
heard.
Thirtéene lords appointed by parlement to haue the gouernement of the realme vnder the king.
Furthermore, the lords, and other estates in this parlement, considering that through
couetousnesse of the new deposed officers, the kings treasure had béene imbezeled, lewdlie
wasted, & prodigallie spent, nothing to his profit: there were in this parlement thirteene
lords chosen, to haue ouersight vnder the king of the whole gouernment of the realme, as
by their commission in the statutes of the tenth yeare of this king it dooth in the booke of
statutes at large appeare. Of those thirteene there were thrée of the new officers named,
as the bishop of Elie lord chancellor, the bishop of Hereford lord treasuror, and Nicholas
abbat of Waltham lord keeper of the priuie seale: the other ten were these, William
archbishop of Canturburie, Alexander archbishop of Yorke, Edmund Langlie duke of
Yorke, Thomas duke of Glocester, William bishop of Winchester, Thomas bishop of
Excester, Richard earle of Arundell, Richard lord Scroope, and Iohn lord Debereux.
But this participation of the gouernement fell out to be inconuenient, as by processe
of the storie shall appeare, euen to those vnto whome it was allotted: so that no small
a doo happened among them and their partakers: according to the old prouerbe, which
saith;
Væ sibi quando canes veniunt os rodere plures.
The king of Armenia sueth for a safe conduct to come into England which is denied him.
Moreouer, at the kings instance and earnest sute it was granted, that Robert de Veer
late marquesse of Dubline, and now newlie created duke of Ireland, should haue and
receiue to his owne vse thirtie thousand marks, that the Frenchmen were
to giue for the |777|
heires of the lord Charles de Blois, that remained here in England, which Charles in times
past chalenged as his righfull inheritance the dutchie of Britaine, against the earle of
Montfort. This grant was made to the duke of Ireland, with condition, that being furnished
with this monie, he should passe ouer into Ireland, before the next Easter, there to
recouer such lands as the king had giuen to him. For aswell the lords as the commons
were so desirous to haue him gone, that they wished the realme rather to spare so much
treasure, than to haue his presence about the king, to allure him to follie. The same
time the king of Armenia sued for a safe conduct to come againe ouer into this land, to
speake with the king as it had been about the moouing of some peace betwixt the two
realms of England and France; but sith his meaning was suspected to be to no good end,
but to benefit himselfe by receiuing of some great gifts at the kings bountifull hands, his
sute was not granted.
Two of the Frēch kings ships taken with a great price in them. Guns were inuented little more than six yeares before this time, to wit, An. 1380.
In this meane time also, whilest the French king with such a companie of dukes, earls
and other lords, as had not béene heard of, still continued in Flanders, staieng as well for
a conuenient wind, as for the comming of the duke of Berrie; it chanced that certeine
English ships, as they wafted the seas, met with two of the French ships, that were sailing
towards Sluis, and fighting with them, tooke them, and brought them both to Sandwich.
There was found aboord the same ships, a maister gunner, that sometime had serued the
Englishmen at Calis, when sir Hugh Caluerlie was lieutenant there; also diuerse great
guns and engins to beat downe wals were found and taken in the same ships, with a great
quantitie of powder that was more worth than all the rest.
Restitution of merchants goods taken.
About the same time, or rather somewhat before, the Englishmen also tooke certeine
hulks and six cariks of the Genowais, laden with great riches: but bicause they were
merchants, they found such fauor at the kings hands through means of Michaell de la
Poole then lord chancellor (whome they had made their fréend) that they had their vessels
and all their goods restored, and streightwaies they passed with the same vnto Sluis, where
the enimies laie, to make sale of their wares there. Wherevpon much murmuring rose
among the kings subiects, taking it in euill part, that they should be suffered so to go their
waies to releeue the enimies of the realme, with such goods as were once brought into the
Englishmens possession, and speciallie the lord chancellor was verie euill thought of, for
shewing so much fauour vnto those strangers.
The French fléet setting forward towards England
is driuen backe by contrarie winds.
The kings inordinate affection towards the duke of Ireland and the earle of Suffolke.
The French king still remaining in Flanders, tarieng for the comming of the duke of
Berrie, and also for a conuenient wind, at length on the euen of All saints, the wind came
about very fauourablie for the Frenchmens purpose: wherevpon they weied anchors, and
lanched from the hauen of Sluis, but they were not past twentie miles forward on their
way, when the wind suddenlie turned contrarie to their course againe, and brought them
backe with such violence, that diuerse of them as they should enter the hauen, were broken
and brused, and so by this occasion, and the counsell of the duke of Berrie togither, the
French king brake vp his iournie for that yeare, and returned into France. ¶ Ye haue
heard what was doone by the states assembled in parlement against the earle of Suffolke,
whom the most part of the realme so greatlie hated, but yet neuerthelesse, the king had
such an affection towards him, that immediatlie after the parlement was dissolued, he
vndid all that had béene enacted against him, receiuing him into more familiaritie than
before, and caused him to continue with the duke of Ireland, and Alexander Neuill archbishop
of Yorke, which two lords trauelled most earnestlie to mooue the king against the
other lords, and to disannull all that had béene doone in the last parlement.
There increased therefore in the king an inward hatred, which he conceiued against the
lords, these men putting into his eare, that he was like no king but rather resembled the
shadow of one; saieng, it would come to passe that he should be able to doo nothing of
himselfe, if the lords might inioy the authoritie which they had taken vpon them. The
king gaue credit to these tales, and therefore had the lords in great gelousie, notwithstanding
they were thought to be his most true and faithfull subiects, and the
other craftie, |778|
deceitfull, and vntrustie; but such an affection had the king to them, that no informations,
nor accusations, though neuer so manifestlie prooued, could bring them out of his fauour,
in so much as at the feast of Christmasse next following, he caused the earle of Suffolke
to sit with him at his owne table, in robes accustomablie appointed for kings to weare,
and not for meaner estates, which was much noted, and no little increased the enuie
against him.
The earle of Arundell goeth to the sea with 500 men of armes and a thousand archers as Froissard noteth.
A great abuse in choise souldiers.
About the beginning of March in this tenth yeere, Richard earle of Arundell, being
appointed lord admerall, & Thomas Mowbraie earle of Notingham, the earle of Deuonshire,
and the bishop of Norwich (as Froissard saith) went to the sea with a warlike
power of men of armes and archers, so well trimmed and appointed as was possible. For
the lord admerall vnderstanding that the duke of Glocester, and manie other noblemen
would sée the muster of his men, vsed all diligence, and spared for no costs, to haue the
most choisest and pikedst fellowes that might be gotten, not following the euill example of
others in times past, which receiued tag and rag to fill vp their numbers, whom they hired
for small wages, and reserued the residue to their pursses. And when to the aduancement
of the realms commoditie they should haue incountered the enimies, they shifted off all
occasions thereto, and onelie prolonged time, without atchiuing any enterprise auaileable,
to the end they might receiue the whole wages, and kéepe themselues from danger, which
they should hardlie haue auoided, when they had not about them such able men as were
like to match the enimies: but the earle of Arundell contrarilie got the ablest men he
might, not sparing his owne pursse, to the end that by their seruice he might atchiue some
worthie enterprise, to redound vnto the commoditie of his countrie.
A good policie.
A great victorie of the English nauie against the Flemish fléet, Ia. Meir. Tho. Walsi.
After the duke of Glocester had beheld so faire and chosen a power of men of warre,
they were streightwaies appointed to get them on shipbrood, & so being imbarked, the
whole nauie passed foorth to the Thams mouth, where they staied to watch for the fléet of
Flanders, that was readie to come from Rochell with wines. At length, vpon a sundaie,
being the euen of the Annuntiation of our ladie, the Flemish fleet was discouered a good
way off, by one that was mounted into one of the tops of a ship of the English fléet. The
earle of Arundell greatlie reioising at those newes, foorthwith with his whole fléet made to
the sea. When the Flemings approched neere to our nauie, they made saile, as if they
would set vpon the same; and our men of purpose made countenance as if they would
haue retired, as mistrusting themselues to be able to match their aduersaries, who coueting
rather a safe passage than battell, passed by: but the Englishmen hauing once got the
wind fit for their purpose, suddenlie set vpon the Flemish ships, and fought with them
right fiercelie: at length, after a sore conflict which indured foure houres, the victorie fell
to the Englishmen.
Ia. Meir. Thom. Wals.
There were taken fourescore ships, with diuerse capteins and men of armes, namelie
their chiefe admerall, named Iohn Buicke, a perfect good seaman, and one that had aforetime
doone much hurt to the English nation. Diuerse of their ships were bouged, and
some escaped from the battell. But the earle of Arundell pursued them so egerlie for the
space of two daies togither, that at length he tooke them, and brought them backe to his
nauie, so that what in the battell and in the chase, there were taken of great and small, to
the number of an hundred vessels, all fraught with wines, so that there was found aboord
the same nine thousand tuns, or rather (as other saie) ninetéene thousand, which togither
with the vessels were streight sent vnto Orwell hauen, and to other hauens abroad in the
realme, beside that which fell to the kings share, as due to him by his prerogatiue. Part
of the Flemish fléet escaping (as before ye haue heard) was pursued vnto the hauen of
Sluis and Blankerke.
The liberalitie of the earle of Arundell.
The citizens of Middleburgh came to the earle, and requested him that they might buie
those wines of him, and paie for the same after the rate of an hundred shillings the tunne,
alledging how they were the kings fréends, and stood in néed of wines: but the earle of
Arundell, thinking it more reason that those which had borne the charges of his iournie, |779|
to wit, the commons of the realme of England should haue the commoditie thereof than any
other, he denied their sute. But yet to shew them some pleasure as his fréends, he gaue
them twentie tuns to make merrie with. As for that which fell to the earles share, he
vsed such bountifulnesse in bestowing it among his fréends, that he left not to himselfe so
much as one tunne. He wan therefore no small praise, that forbearing his owne commoditie,
which he might haue reaped in selling those wines to strangers, he had more
regard to the profit of the commons, whereby they might vnderstand, that that which they
had laid foorth towards the setting forward of his iournie, was not altogither lost nor cast
awaie. By this meanes (besides the commendation which he drew to himselfe) he also
wan the harts & good will of the people, whose freendship is purchased by gifts and good
déeds, sith they make profit the metrod of amitie, & bound in beneuolence with receiued
benefits, as the poet saith,
Vulgus amicitias vtilitate probat.
Diuers rodes made into Flanders by the Englishmen, & great spoile doone.
Wine sold for thirtéene shillings foure pence the tun.
The earle of Aurundell saileth into Britaine with a great power.
All the countrie of Flanders neere to the sea coasts, was in great feare: for the Englishmen
landed, and euerie day went abroad into the countrie, burning diuerse townes and
villages, as Mude, Osiburge, Houckam, Monachacedam, & others. And at length, after
they had taken their pleasure in the countrie, for the space of ten daies togither, they
hoissed vp sailes, and returned with all their preie and booties, which being sold, and
vttered abroad in the realme, made wine so plentifullie here in England, that it was sold
for thirtéene shillings foure pence the tun, and twentie shillings the best and choisest.
The earle of Arundell not satisfied with his happie atchiued enterprise, but minding to
doo more seruice to the benefit of his countrie, gathered his ships together, and hiring
new souldiers to supplie the roomes of them that were hurt, maimed, or slaine, turned his
sailes towards the castell of Brest, which seemed to be a keie to the lesse Britaine, and
being (as yee haue heard) in the Englishmens possession, the Frenchmen were about
to raise vp and build farre greater and stronger bastillions, than those were that the
duke of Lancaster had taken and destroied, as he sailed forward on his iournie toward
Spaine.
Enuie ye follower of vertue & prowesse.
One of these two new bastiles the earle of Arundell woone by force from them that kept
it: and bicause it séemed necessarie to be kept for a defense to the castell, if it were in the
Englishmens hands, he committed it to the custodie of certeine Englishmen. The other
being not yet finished, but begun in sumptuous wise to be builded, he set on fire and
burned. This doone, furnishing the garison with sufficient vittels and munition to serue
them for one whole yeare, he returned home into England, with great praise and commendation
of the commons for his dooings. But the duke of Ireland the earle of Suffolke,
sir Simon de Burlie, and sir Richard Sturrie, that still continued about the king,
séemed rather to enuie the earle of Arundels good name, than otherwise to commend
him and others to the king, that had béene foorth in that iournie, in so much that when
the earle of Nottingham, otherwise called earle Marshall, that had béene euer the kings
plaifellow, and of equall age to him, came now to the court, hoping to be right welcome,
and to receiue great thankes at the kings hands, he had no good countenance shewed
vnto him, neither of the king, nor of the duke of Ireland, who disdaining once to talke
with him, séemed to enuie the worthie prowesse in other, which he knew defectiue and
wanting in himselfe.
The lord Percie sent to the seas.
Shortlie after, by the counsell of those lords and knights that remained about the king,
the lord Henrie Percie, sonne to the earle of Northumberland, was sent to the seas, to
beate backe the attempts of the enimies, but he was slenderlie appointed to atchiue anie
great enterprise. This was doone of some enuious purpose, bicause he had got a name
amongest the common people, to be a verie hardie and valiant gentleman, as well among
Englishmen, as Scots. But he either ignorant, or not much waieng of that which they
craftilie had imagined against him, boldlie and valiantlie executed the businesse inioined
him, and hauing remained abroad, during the whole time of his appointed seruice, |780|
returned safelie home. ¶ About the same time, a frier Carmelite, named Walter Disse, that
had béene confessor to the duke of Lancaster, obteined in fauour of the same duke, at
pope Vrbans hands, certeine faculties, to be distributed to such as would praie &
paie for them. Among other of those faculties, one was, to make all those whom he
thought good, the popes chapleines, according to forme of law, and the custome vsed in
the court of Rome.
Frier Pateshull forsaking his profession, preacheth openlie against his owne order.
Wickleuists.
Now bicause such as obteined this fauour, inioied great liberties, manie were glad to
bestow largelie, to be so preferred, the frier being redie to admit those that offered most.
Among other, one Peter Pateshull, a frier of the Augustines order, was made by him the
popes chapleine, a man not vnlearned, and one that fauoured Wicliffes doctrine, and
therevpon forsaking his priuate profession, gaue himselfe to a publike trade of life, which
might séeme to him more holie, commendable, and sure. Herevpon, he tooke vpon him
to preach against his owne order, namelie in a sermon which he made in saint Christophers
church in London. He inueied so earnestlie against the abuses and heinous
crimes which the friers, sometimes his brethren, vsed to put in practise, that it was an
horror to heare. There were present an hundred at the least of Wicliffes opinion at his
sermon. Now in the meane while that he so laid foorth what he knew against his late
brethren, some persons there were that ran to the Augustine friers, and declared the
whole matter; wherevpon a dozen of the hardiest and lustiest fellowes among them came
to the church, where this Pateshull was preaching, and hearing what was said, they began
to be sore mooued, insomuch that one of them more zealous in his religion than the other,
stepped foorth, and gainesaid those things which the preacher proponed.
A libell by frier Pateshull against his brethren.
When the Wicleuists perceiued this, they set vpon him that so disquieted the congregation,
and laieng hands on him, threw him downe, trode him vnder their féet, and lent him
manie a good buffet: and chasing all the other friers awaie, they were fullie bent to haue
killed them, and set their house on fier, crieng out with lowd voices; “Let vs destroie
these murtherers, let vs burne these Sodomits, and hang vp such traitors of the king and
realme.” And running thus with such a furious noise and outrage, they purposed verelie
to haue set fire on the friers lodgings, but that through the humble praier of frier Thomas
Ashborne, and one that was his fellow, being reputed for two good men, and doctors of
diuinitie, they were staied. The comming also of one of the shirifes of London holpe
much to appease them, so that by his persuasion, they returned home to their houses.
But Peter Pateshull, being mainteened among them, was counselled, sith he was interrupted
in his sermon, to set downe in writing all such matters as he was about to intreat
of, & what he knew further. He therefore deuised a libell, in which he accused diuerse
of his brethren, of murthering sundrie of their fellowes.
And for more proofe to be giuen to his saiengs, he told the names of them that were
made awaie, and the names also of the murtherers, and shewed where those that were
murthered were buried. He affirmed further, that the said friers his brethren of late,
were Sodomits and traitors, both to the king and realme, and manie other things he declared
(too too bad) in that his writing or libell which he fastned vpon the church doore
of S. Paule in London, that the more confusion might thereby redound vnto his late
brethren, the friers aforesaid. In the beginning of the same libell he protested, that he
was got foorth of the diuels dungeon, and through the grace of God escaped from amongst
wicked and filthie persons; by reason whereof, and for that he was an auoucher of the
veritie, he said, he was sure to suffer great aduersities at the friers hands, if they might
laie hold on him. But he thanked pope Vrbane, for that through his grant he had obteined
such libertie, that by help of his fréends, he might lawfullie withdrawe himselfe
from the hands of his enimies.
The fauourers of frier Pateshull.
There were diuerse men of good worship that mainteined this Pateshull, and caused a |781|
transcript of this libell to be written foorth, affirming all to be true that was therein mentioned.
Amongst other that thus fauoured this cause, were diuerse knights, as sir William
Neuill, Sir Lewes Clifford, sir Iohn Clanbowe, sir Richard Sturrie, and sir Thomas
Latimer, and the chéefest of all was one sir Iohn Montacute, who caused all the images
to be taken downe and set aside in corners, which Iohn Aubreie, and his successour sir
Alane Buxhull, or any their ancestors had set vp in their chappell of Cheneleie. ¶ About
the same time, the duke of Ireland sought to be diuorsed from his lawfull wife, a trim
yoong ladie, daughter to the ladie Isabell, that was one of king Edward the third his
daughters; and tooke to wife one Lancegrone a Bohemer one of the quéenes maids; by
reason whereof, great occasion of slander and reproch grew, and diuerse lords, speciallie
the duke of Glocester, that was vncle to the ladie that was forsaken, tooke great displeasure
herewith. But sith the king allowed of all the duke of Irelands dooings, the duke of
Glocester dissembled such iniuries doone to his neece for the time, till opportunitie
might serue to reuenge the same.
Dissention betwixt the king & the nobles.
The duke of Ireland vnderstood all these things, and therefore was the more circumspect
for his owne safetie, and studied how by some meanes he might dispatch the duke
of Glocester out of the waie, as the man whom he most feared; least his life should be
his destruction, by one meanes or other. Easter was now past, the time (as ye haue
heard) appointed before the which the duke of Ireland should haue transported ouer
into Ireland, & yet was he not set forward. But least somewhat might be thought in the
matter, and for feare of some stir to be raised by the lords of the realme, that wished him
gone, according to the order prescribed at the last parlement, the king as it were to bring
him to the water side, went with him into Wales, where being out of the waie, they might
deuise how to dispatch the duke of Glocester, the earles of Arundell, Warwike, Derbie,
and Notingham, with others of that faction. There were with the king, beside the duke
of Ireland, Michaell de la Poole earle of Suffolke, Robert Trisilian lord chiefe iustice,
and diuers other, which doubtfull of their owne safegards did what they could (as writers
report) to mooue the king forward to the destruction of those noblemen. After the king
had remained in those parties a good while, he returned, and brought the duke of
Ireland backe with him againe so that it seemed his voiage into Ireland was now quite
forgotten.
Grafton.
Certeine questions in law demanded of the iustices.
A councell holden at Notingham.
About the same time, Robert Trisilian lord chiefe iustice of England came to Couentrie,
and indicted there two thousand persons. The king and the quéene came to Grobie, and
thither came by his commandement the iustices of the realme. There were also with him
at the same time, Alexander archb. of Yorke, Robert Veere duke of Ireland, Michaell
de la Poole earle of Suffolke, Robert Trisilian, & his fellowes; of whom it was demanded,
if by the lawes of the realme the king might reuoke the ordinances made in the last
parlement, to the which he had giuen his consent in manner by constraint; and they
made answer that he might. Then were the iustices commanded to come vnto Notingham,
where the king appointed to meet them, and thither he came according to his appointment,
and held a solemne counsell in the castell of Notingham, the morrow after S.
Bartholomews day.
Iustice Belknap cōpelled to subscribe.
Iustice Belknaps words.
In this councell were the aforesaid archbishop of Yorke, the duke of Ireland, the earle
of Suffolke, Robert Trisilian iustice, Robert Bramble iustice, and sundrie other, all which
iustices were commanded to set their hands vnto the question vnder written, that by
meanes thereof, those persons that were about the king thought they might haue good
occasion to put the duke of Glocester, and other lords that were his complices vnto death,
which in the last parlement were ordeined to haue the gouernance of the realme, and all
such as were consenting to the same. Diuerse of the iustices refused to subscribe, but
yet they were constreined to doo as the rest did, among the which was Iohn Belknap, who
vtterlie refused, till the duke of Ireland, and the earle of Suffolke compelled him thereto;
for if he had persisted in the refusall, he had not escaped their hands,
and yet when he |782|
had set to his seale, he burst out into these words; “Now (said he) here lacketh nothing
but a rope, that I might receiue a reward worthie for my desert, and I know, if I
had not doone this, I might not haue escaped your hands, so that for your pleasures and
the kings I haue doone it, and deserued thereby death at the hands of the lords.” Which
indéed shortlie followed, for in the next parlement he was condemned and executed. All
this remained in record.
Additions to Polychron.
MEMORANDUM that on the fiue and twentith day of August, in the 11 yeare of the reigne of king Richard the second, at the castell of Notingham aforesaid, Robert Trisilian lord chiefe iustice of England, Robert Belknap lord chiefe iustice of the cōmon plees, Iohn Holt, Roger Fulthorpe, & William Borough, knights and associats of the said Robert Belknap, and Iohn Lockton one of the kings sergeants at the law, being pesonalie required in presence of the lords and other witnesses vnder written by our said souereigne lord the king, in that faith and allegiance in which to him they were bounden, that they should trulie answer to certeine questions vnderwritten, and vpon the same by their discretions, to saie the law.
Questions in law demāded of the iustices.
1 First, it was asked of them, whether the new statute, ordinance, and commission made in the last parlement held at Westminster, be hurtfull to the kings prerogatiue. Wherevnto all of one mind answered, that they were hurtfull, and speciallie bicause they be against the kings will.
2 Item, it was inquired of them, how they ought to be punished, that procured the said statute, ordinance, and commission to be made. Wherevnto with one assent they answered, that they deserued death, except the king of his grace would pardon them.
3 Item, it was inquired, how they ought to be punished, which moued the king to consent to the making of the said statute, ordinance, and commission. Wherevnto they answered, that vnlesse the king would giue them his pardon, they ought to lose their liues.
4 Item, it was inquired of them what punishment they deserued, that compelled the king to the making of that statute, ordinance and commission. Wherevnto they gaue answer, that they ought to suffer as traitors.
5 Item, it was demanded of them how they ought to be punished that interrupted the king so, that he might not exercise those things that apperteined to his regalitie and prerogatiue. Wherevnto answer was made, that they ought to be punished as traitors.
6 Item, it was inquired of them, whether that after the affaires of the realme, and the cause of the calling togither of the states of the parlement, were once by the kings commandement declared and opened, and other articles on the kings behalfe limited, vpon which the lords and commons of the realme ought to intreat and proceed; if the lords neuertheles would proceed vpon other articles, and not meddle with those articles which the king had limited, till time the king had answered the articles proponed by them, notwithstanding the king inioined them to the contrarie: whether in this case the king might rule the parlement, and cause them to proceed vpon the articles by him limited, before they proceeded any further? To which question it was answered, that the king should haue in this part the rule, for order of all such articles to be prosecuted, vntill the end of the parlement. And if any presumed to go contrarie to this rule, he was to be punished as a traitor.
7 Item, it was asked, whether the king when soeuer it pleased him might not dissolue the parlement, and command the lords and commons to depart from thence or not? Wherevnto it was answered that he might. |783|
8 Item, it was inquired, that for somuch as it was in the king to remooue such iustices and officers as offend, and to punish them for their offenses; whether the lords commons might, without the kings will, impeach the same officers and iustices, vpon their offenses in parlement or not? To this answer was made, that they might not, and he that attempted contrarie, was to suffer as a traitor.
9 Item, it was inquired, how he is to be punished, that mooued in the parlement, that the statute wherin Edward, the sonne of king Edward, great grandfather to the king that now is, was indicted in parlement, might be sent for; by inspection of which statute, the said new statute or ordinance and commission were conceiued, and deuised in the parlement?
To which question, with one accord, as in all the residue they answered, that as well he that so summoned, as the other, which by force of the same motion, brought the said statute into the parlement house, be as publike offendors and traitors to be punished.
10 Item, it was inquired of them, whether the iudgment giuen in the parlement against Michaell de la Poole earle of Suffolke, were erronious and reuocable, or not?
To which question likewise with one assent they said, that if the same iudgement were now to be giuen, the iustices and sergeant aforesaid would not giue the same: bicause it seemed to them, that the said iudgment is reuocable and erronious in euerie part.
In witnesse of the premisses, the iustices & sergeant aforesaid to these presents haue set their seals, these being witnesses; Alexander archbishop of Yorke, Robert archbishop of Dubline, Iohn bishop of Durham, Thomas bishop of Chester, Iohn bishop of Bangor, Robert duke of Ireland, Michaell erle of Suffolke, Iohn Ripon clearke, and Iohn Blake.
Thom. Wals.
The lords indicted of diuerse offenses.
Now beside these iustices and sergeant, there were called at that present vnto Notingham,
all other iustices of the realme, and the shiriffes. Also, diuerse of the citie of London,
which the king knew would incline to his will, the rather; for that some of them,
hauing aforetime confessed treason against the king by them imagined, and obteining pardon
for the same, were readie at his commandement, to recompense such fauour, in the
accomplishment of whatsoeuer they knew might stand with his pleasure. Herevpon, they
being impanelled to inquire of certeine treasons that were supposed to be committed by
the lords, which in the last parlement had so caused things to passe, contrarie to the kings
pleasure, indicted the same lords of manie crimes informed against them. ¶ The Londoners
indeed were euill reported of in those daies, by some writers, for their vnstablenesse,
one while holding on the kings part, and with such as were chéefe in counsell about him;
and an other while on the lords side that were of a contrarie faction: according as the
streame of their affections draue them, and as they were carried awaie perforce by the
floud of their variable willes, whereby they were diuided into differing passions, as they
were assaulted by sundrie and vncerteine desires: which is the nature of the people, as the
poet noteth, saieng:
Scinditur incertum studia in contraria vulgus.
Why the shiriffes of all shires were sent for to the court.
Soldiers reteined on all sides by the king against the lords.
But now, as concerning the cause whie the shiriffes were called hither, it was chéeflie to
vnderstand what power of men they might assure the king of, to serue him against the lords
and barons, whome he tooke to be his enimies: and further, that where he meant to call a
parlement verie shortlie, they should so vse the matter, that no knight might be chosen, but
such as the king and his councell should name. But answer was made herevnto by the
shiriffes, that the lords were so highlie beloued of the commons, that it laie not in their
powers to assemble any great forces against the lords; and as for choosing the knights of
the shires, they said that the commons would vndoubtedlie vse their ancient liberties, and
priuileges, in choosing such as they thought meetest. But yet, after that the indictments
were found, according to the desire of the king and his councellors, and that those which
had béene called about this matter, were licenced to depart home; the king and the duke
of Ireland sent messengers into euerie part of the realme, to reteine men of
warre to assist |784|
them in the quarell against the lords, if néed were. Manie made answer, that sith they
knew the lords to be faithfull and loiall to the king, euen from the bottome of their hearts,
and were readie to studie, to deuise, and to doo all things that might tend to his honor, and
wealth of the realme; they might not by anie meanes beare armour against them.
But a great number of other, that tooke it that they were reteined for a good and
necessarie purpose, promised to be readie, whensoeuer it should please the king to send for
them.
The duke of Glocesters protestation vpon his oth.
The lords being in this meane while aduertised of these dooings, were striken with great heauinesse, for that not knowing themselues (as they tooke it) giltie of anie offense, the king should thus seeke their destruction. Herewith the duke of Glocester, meaning to mitigate the kings displeasure, receiued a solemne oth before the bishop of London, and diuerse other lords, protesting by the same oth, that he neuer imagined, nor went about any thing, to the kings hinderance, but to his power had alwaies doone what he might to aduance the kings honor, prosperous state and good liking, except onelie that he had giuen no good countenance to the duke of Ireland, whom the king so much loued. And suerlie for that the said duke had dishonored his kinswoman, and the kings also, he was firmelie determined to reuenge that iniurie vpon him; and herewith he besought the bishop of London to declare what his words were vnto the king.
Stout words of the bishop of London.
The bishop comming to the king, made report of the duke of Glocesters protestation,
confirmed with his oth, in such wise, as the king began somewhat to be persuaded that it
was true. But when the earle of Suffolke perceiued that, fearing least the reconciliation
of the king and the duke his vncle should turne to his vndooing, he began to speake
against the duke, till the bishop bad him hold his peace; and told him, that it nothing
became him to speake at all. And when the earle asked why so; “Bicause (said the
bishop) thou wast in the last parlement condemned for an euill person, and one not worthie
to liue, but onelie it pleaseth the king to shew thée fauour.” The king offended with
the bishops presumptuous words, commanded him to depart & get him home to his church,
who foorthwith departed, and declared to the duke of Glocester what he had heard and
séene. Herevpon, the great misliking that had beene afore time betwixt the king and the
lords, was now more vehementlie increased, the duke of Ireland, the earle of Suffolke, the
archbishop of Yorke, the lord chiefe iustice Robert Trisilian, and others, still procuring,
stirring, and confirming the kings heauie displeasure against the lords.
The lords confer how to preuēt the perils pretended against them.
The earle of Northumberland sent to apprehend the earle of Arundell.
The duke of Glocester considering to what conclusion these things tended, came secretlie
to conference with the earles of Arundell, Warwike, and Derbie, who were in like danger,
if they prouided not more spéedilie for their safetie, wherevpon he discouered to them
the perill wherein they all stood in common, so that when they weied what was the most
expedient meane to safe gard their liues, they gathered their power togither, determining
to talke with the king with their armour vpon their backes, for their more suertie, as well
concerning his pretense to bring them to their deaths, as for the fauour which he bare to
those whom they reputed to be traitors, both to him, and to the whole state of the realme,
whereby the same could not auoid spéedie ruine, if remedie were not the sooner prouided.
The king on the other part tooke aduise, how he might apprehend these lords (whom
he tooke to be plaine traitors) ech one apart, before they might gather their strengths about
them; and first, he sent the earle of Northumberland and others, vnto the castell of Reigate,
to take the earle of Arundell, who laie there at that present. But howsoeuer it fortuned,
the earle of Northumberland came backe, and failed to accomplish that which he
had in commandement.
The earle of Arundell ioineth with the other lords.
After this, a great number were sent by night, to haue laid hands on him, and to haue
brought him to the kings presence; or in case he resisted, to haue slaine him, if by any
meanes they might: but he being warned by a messenger, that came to him from the duke
of Glocester, conueied himselfe awaie, and with such bands as he had got togither, rode all
that night, so that in the morning hauing passed thirtie miles, not without
great trauell, and |785|
all speed possible, he was in the morning aduanced to Haringie parke, where he found the
duke of Glocester, and the earle of Warwike, with a great power of men about them.
¶ At the same time the king was about to set forward towards Canturburie, there to performe
some vow of pilgrimage, which he had vndertaken to make vnto the shrine of
Thomas Becket. But a brute was raised, and a slander (belike) contriued, to bring him
in further hatred of his subiects, that he meant to steale ouer into France, vnto the French
king, hauing promised to deliuer vp into his hands the towne of Calis, with the castell of
Guines, and all the fortresses which his predecessors had possessed in those parties, either
by right from their ancestors, or by warlike conquest.
Councell taken how to deale against the lords.
Howbeit this his iournie to Canturburie was suddenlie staied, vpon knowledge had of
the gathering togither of the lords in Haringie parke, wherewith the king being sore amazed,
called togither such as he trusted, to vnderstand what their opinion was of the matter;
and vnderstanding that the purposed intention of the lords, for which they were so assembled,
was to this end (as they pretended) to bring him vnto a better trade of life, and more
profitable order of gouernement, he was streight striken with no small feare, demanding
of them their aduise, what was best for him to doo in such troublesome state of things.
Some were of this mind, that it should be best to séeke to appease the lords with faire promises,
assuring them, that they should haue their desires. Other thought it better to
assemble the kings friends, and ioining them with the Londoners, to go foorth and trie the
hazard of battell with the lords. Among them that were of this mind, the archbishop of
Yorke was the chiefest. But other that were thought to vnderstand more of the world than
he did, iudged it not wisedome so to doo, considering that if the king lost the field, then
should great harme and dishonor follow; and if the victorie fell to his side, yet could he
gaine naught, but lose a great number of his subiects.
The lords send messengers to the king.
This was in Nouember, at what time the king, vpon his returning from Canturburie,
meant to haue holden a parlement; but through those stirs, neither his iournie to Canturburie,
nor the parlement went forward: yet he caused order to be giuen, that no citizen
of London should sell to the duke of Glocester, the earle of Arundell, or any other of the
lords, any armour, bowes, arrowes, or other munition, or matter that might tend to the
furniture of warre, vpon a great paine. But notwithstanding, the lords went forward
with their businesse; and before they approched the citie of London, they sent to the king
the archbishop of Canturburie, the lord Iohn Louell, the lord Cobham, and the lord
Iohn Deuereux, requiring to haue deliuered vnto them such as were about him, that were
traitors and seducers both of him and the realme, that sought nothing else, but to trouble
both poore and rich, and to sow discord and variance betwixt the king and his nobles.
And further, they declared that their comming was for the honor and wealth both of the
king and realme.
A rash answer of the maior of London.
The Londoners refuse to fight against the lords.
But the king being ruled altogither by the duke of Ireland, the earle of Suffolke, and
two or three other, was fullie persuaded that the lords intended to bring him vnder their
gouernement, and therfore he was counselled to make the French king his sure friend in
all vrgent necessities. And to be assured of him, it was reported, that those councellors
aduised him to render vp into the French kings hands the towne of Calis, and all that he
had else in possession, on the further side of the sea. Howsoeuer this matter went, truth
it is, that the king sent for the maior of London, requiring to know of him how manie able
men they thought the citie could make. The maior answered, that he thought verely the
citizens might make in time of need, fiftie thousand men, within an houres respit. Well
said the king, then I beseech you go and prooue what will be done. But when the maior
began to attempt the matter, he was answered generallie, that they would neuer fight
against the kings freends, and defenders of the realme (as indeed they tooke the lords to
be) but against the enimies of the king and realme they would alwaies be readie to
fight, and shew what resistance they were able. This answer the maior reported to the
king. |786|
The earle of Northumberlands and the lord Bassets words to the king in the behalfe of the lords.
At the same time there was about the king the lord Rafe Basset, who said thus to the
king flatlie and plainelie: “Sir, I haue béene, and euer will be your true liege man, and my
bodie and goods shall euer be at your graces commandement, in all iustice and trueth.
But neuerthelesse, hereof I assure you, that if my hap be to come into the field, I will
without faile alwaies follow the true part; and it is not I that will aduenture to haue my
head broken for the duke of Irelands pleasure.” Likewise, the earle of Northumberland,
being at that time in the court, spake these words to the king; “Sir, there is no doubt
but these lords, who now be in the field, alwaies haue beene your true and faithfull subiects,
and yet are, not intending to attempt anie thing against your state, wealth, & honor.
Neuerthelesse, they féele themselues sore molested and disquieted, by the wicked deuises
of certeine persons about you, that seeke to oppresse them. And verilie without faile,
all your realme is sore greeued therewith, both great and small, as well lords as commons;
and I sée not the contrarie, but they mind to aduenture their liues with the lords
that are thus in armes, speciallie in this case, which they reckon to be yours and your
realmes. And sir, now yée be in the cheefe place of your realme, and in the place of
your coronation, order your selfe now therefore wiselie and like a king. Send to them to
come before your presence in some publike place, where they may declare vnto you the
intent and purpose of their comming, accompanied with so great a number of people
into these parts, and I beléeue it verelie, they will shew such reasons that you will hold
them excused.”
The lords take an oth togither, to prosecute their purposed enterprise.
The archbishop of Canturburie, and the lord chancellor bishop of Elie, and other of the
bishops also there present, affirmed the earles aduise to be good. And the king considering
wiselie the case as it stood, began to be appeased, and accorded to follow their
aduise, desiring the archbishop of Canturburie, and the bishop of Elie, to aduertise them
of his plesure, which was, that he willed them to come to him to Westminster, on sundaie
then next following; and so they repairing to the lords, made report to them of the kings
mind and purpose. But the duke of Glocester, and the other lords, were so fullie bent in
their opinion, that they swore all whole togither, that they would neuer giue ouer their
enterprise, so long as they had a penie to spend, in maintenance of their cause: and if it
chanced anie of them to depart this life, the ouerliuers should persist therein, vntill the
time that they had brought their purpose to some good effect.
The lords séeke the fauour of the Londoners.
Thom. Wals.
And bicause they doubted least the king might stirre the citie of London against them,
they determined first to aduertise the maior and the citie, how their comming was onlie
to reforme certeine great enormities, which they set downe in writing, & sent it to the
maior and citizens, beseeching them of their fauour and counsell therin. This doone, they
determined yet to kéepe their daie on the sundaie following, to appeare before the kings
presence: but this was not got of them, till that the lord chancellor, with diuerse other
noblemen of good credit, had vndertaken vpon their oths for the kings behalfe, that no
fraud nor deceipt, no perill nor euill pretense should be put in practise against the lords,
wherby they might come to losse either of life, limme, or goods, or otherwise, through the
kings means; but that if he should go about anie such things, the said lord chancellor
and other the mediators should forwarne the lords therof.
An ambush at Mewes.
When therefore the lords were readie, according to couenant, to come vnto Westminster,
they were secretlie aduertised, that there was an ambush laid in a place called
the Mewes, and so they staied, and came not at the appointed houre. Wherevpon, when
the king demanded, how it fortuned that the lords kept not promise, the bishop of Elie
lord Chancellor made him this answer; “Bicause” saith he, “there is an ambush of a
thousand armed men or more laid in such a place (and named it) contrarie to couenant,
and therefore they neither come nor hold you for faithfull of your word.” The king hearing
this, was astonied, and said with an oth, that he knew of no such thing, & withall
sent to the shiriffes of London, commanding them to go to the Mewes, and (vpon search
made) if they found anie force of men there assembled, to take and kill all such as they |787|
could laie hands vpon. But sir Thomas Triuet, and sir Nitholas Brambre, knight, that
had in déed assembled such a number of men, when they vnderstood what order the king
had giuen therein, they sent their men backe to London.
The lords come before the kings presence in Westminster hall.
The lord chācelor speaketh for the king to the lords.
The lords, after this, receiuing a safe conduct from the king, and perceiuing all to be
safe and cleare, came vnto Westminster with a strong power of men about them. The
king, when he heard they were come, apparelled himselfe in his kinglie robes, and with
his scepter in hand came into the great hall at Westminster. The lords as soone as they
had sight of him, made to him their humble obeisance, & went foorth till they came to
the nether steps, going vp to the kings seat of state, where they made their second obeisance;
& then the king gaue them countenance to come néerer to him, & they so did,
kneeling downe before him, & foorthwith he rose from his place, and louinglie welcomming
them, tooke each of them by the hand, and that doone sate him downe againe.
Herewith the bishop of Elie lord chancellor, as mouth to the king, declared vnto these
lords in effect as followeth. “My lords (said he) our souereigne lord the king, hearing
that you were assembled in Haringie parke, in other maner than was conuenient, would
not foorthwith run vpon you with force to destroie you, as he might easilie haue doone,
if he had not wished your safetie; for no man doubteth, but if his pleasure had béene to
gather an armie, he might haue had more people than you could haue got to haue taken
part with you against him, and so happilie much bloud might haue béene spilt, which
thing certeinlie our souereigne lord the king vtterlie abhorreth: and therefore vsing patience
and mildnesse, he hath rather chosen to talke with you in peaceable wise, that he may
vnderstand the cause whie yée haue assembled so great a number of people togither.”
The answer of the lords & their gréefes.
The king reprooueth the lords dooings.
The lords for answer héerevnto said, that “they assembled their forces togither, for
the profit both of the king and realme, and speciallie to take awaie from him such traitors
as remained continuallie about him; to wit, Robert de Veer duke of Ireland, Alexander
Neuill archbishop of Yorke, Michaell de la Poole erle of Suffolke, Robert Trisilian that
false iustice, and sir Nicholas Brambre, that disloiall knight of London: for so they
tearmed them all. And to prooue their accusations true, they threw downe their gloues,
protesting by their oths to prosecute it by battell.” “Naie (saith the king) not so, but in
the next parlement, which we doo appoint before hand to begin the morrow after the
Purification of our ladie, both they and you appearing, shall receiue (according to law)
all that which reason shall appoint. And now to you my lords I speake, by what meane
or by what reason durst you so presumptuouslie take vpon you within this my land to rise
thus against me? Did you thinke to feare me with such your presumptuous boldnesse?
Haue I not armed men sufficient to haue beaten you downe, compassed about like a sort
of deere in a toil? If I would: trulie in this behalfe I make no more account of you,
than of the vilest skullions in my kitchen.”
The king taketh both parties into his protection.
Grafton.
When he had said these words, with much more, he lift vp the duke of Glocester that
all this while knéeled afore him, and commanded the residue to rise also. After this
he led them courteouslie to his chamber, where they sate and dranke togither. And
finallie it was concluded, that they should all méet togither againe at the next parlement,
and ech one to receiue according to iustice: and in the meane time the king tooke aswell
the duke of Glocester, as the duke of Ireland into his protection, so that neither part in
the meane time should hurt the other, nor presume to make any gathering of people vntill
the time prefixed: and so this councell brake vp, and the lords departed. These things
yet were doone in absence of the forenamed persons whom the lords accused, for they
durst not appeare in presence of the lords; for if they had béene espied, they had smarted
for it, as was thought, without any respect that would haue béene had of the kings presence.
And now, for somuch as it should be well knowne through all the citie, that these
lords had nothing offended him with their comming, the king caused a proclamation to be
made, the tenour whereof was as followeth. |788|
RICHARD by the grace of God, &c. We will that it be knowne to all our liege people throughout our realme of England, that whereas Thomas duke of Glocester, Richard earle of Arundell, & Thomas earle of Warwike, haue beene defamed of treason by certeine of our councellors; we as it apperteineth diligentlie searching the ground & cause of this defamation, find no such thing in them, nor any suspicion thereof: wherfore we declare the same defamation to be false, and vntrue, and doo receiue the same duke and earles into our speciall protection. And bicause these accusers shall be notoriouslie knowne, their names are Alexander archbishop of Yorke, sir Robert Veere duke of Ireland, Michaell de la Poole earle of Suffolke, Robert Trisilian lord chiefe iustice, and sir Nicholas Brambre of London knight, who in like case shall remaine till the next parlement and there shall stand to their answers. But in the meane time we likewise take them into our protection, streictlie charging and commanding, that no maner of person charge any of the forenamed, either priuilie or apertlie, in word or deed, to hurt them, or or cause any hurt to be doone to them, but all quarels & demands against them to be remitted, vntill the next parlement prefixed.
Now to haue all things in more perfect readinesse and
remembrance when the estates
should be assembled, certeine of the lords were appointed to sit in the meane time, to
deuise how they might procéed orderlie in redresse of such matters, as séemed to require
some spéedie reformation: neither did they thinke it good to depart in sunder, for feare
to be intrapped through the malicious practise of their aduersaries. Which doubt of
theirs seemed afterwards to stand them in stéed of great wisedome. For immediatlie after,
their said aduersaries came to the king, and declared how they were dailie in danger of
their liues, by reason of the malice which the lords had conceiued against them onelie for
the kings sake, and not for any matter of their owne. And whereas the king had promised
that they should appeare at the next parlement, which was at hand, they told him plainelie
that they neither durst nor would put their bodies in such manifest danger. The king
considering hereof, withdrew himselfe from the companie of the lords that were assigned
to sit at London, to deliberate of matters that were to be talked of and ordered in the
parlement; and so that councell was deferred and laid aside: and the kings councellors
that stood in danger of their liues through the malice of the lords confederated with the
duke of Glocester, got them from the court, and withdrew some into this place and some
into that.
The earle of Suffolke fléeth ouer to Calis.
Grafton.
Among other the earle of Suffolke fled ouer vnto Calis in secret wise, by the helpe of a
knight called sir William Hoo, who holpe to conueie him thither. He had changed his
apparell, and shauen his beard, and so disguised, counterfeited himself to be a poulter,
and to sell certeine foule which he had gotten, by which means he was not knowne, till at
length comming to the gates of the castell (wherof his brother sir Edmund de la Poole was
capteine) he discouered to him (scarselie knowing who he was, by reason he was so disguised)
the whole occasion of his repairing thither, requiring him to keepe his counsell,
and that he might remaine with him in priuie maner for a time, till he might heare more
how things went in England, from whence he was thus fled, to auoid the bloudie hands
of his enimies, that sought his life. His brother doubting what might be laid to his
charge if he shuld conceale this matter from the lord William Beauchampe lord deputie
of the towne, streightwaies aduertised him thereof, who tooke order that the earle should
foorthwith be sent backe againe into England to the king, who receiued him with small
thanks to them that brought him ouer, so that (as some write) his brother being one, was
committed to prison for disclosing him. But yet bicause it should not séeme
that he |789| imprisoned him for that cause, he was shortlie after set at libertie, and returned againe to his
charge at Calis. The earle was also permitted to go whither he would, although the
king had vndertaken to present him and others at the next parlement to answer their
offenses, as the same might be laid to their charge.
A commission to the shiriffe of Cheshire to safe conduct the duke of Ireland to the kings presence.
¶ But
here it may be doubted by the vncertentie of writers, whether the earle of Suffolke
thus fled ouer to Calis, before the iournie at Ratcote bridge, or after. But whether
it chanced either after or before, it is certeine that since the time that the lords had forced
the king to promise to exhibit him and others at the next parlement to abide their trials,
he durst not openlie remaine in the court, but taking leaue of the king departed from
him. Whervpon the king being out of quiet for the absence of him and other his best
beloued councellors, whom he so much esteemed, and namelie of the duke of Ireland, and
the said earle of Suffolke, he appointed one Thomas Molineux constable of the castell of
Chester, a man of high valiancie, and great power in the parties of Cheshire and Lancashire
to raise an armie of men, with the assistance of the shiriffe of Cheshire, to whom
his commission of authoritie in that behalfe, vnder the great seale was directed, to the
end that they might conueie the duke of Ireland in all safetie vnto the kings presence.
The lords séeke to stop the passage of the duke of Ireland.
The shiriffe hauing receiued this commission, togither with the foresaid Thomas Molineux
raised a power, and such as refused to serue, in respect of such good will as they
bare to the lords, he committed to prison, commanding the gailors to kéepe them streict
in irons with bread and water till his returne. Moreuer, the king sent to sir Rafe Vernon,
& sir Richard Ratcliffe, willing them to assist the other. And so thus they set forward
with the number of fiue thousand men. When the lords vnderstood that the duke
of Ireland was marching towards London, with such a power of men, meaning to ioine
with the Londoners, and so to make as it had beene an inuincible armie, they bestirred
themselues, and fell in hand to arme their men, and to exhort one another, that now they
should not be negligent in their owne defense, but make hast for the dispatching of those
that craftilie had gone about to conspire their deaths. And so these lords, to wit, the
duke of Glocester, the earles of Derbie, Arundell, Warwike, and Notingham, assembled
their powers out of all quarters, to incounter with the duke of Ireland; and when they
had got their companies togither, they forelaid all the waies by which he was thought to
come.
The duke of Ireland his souldiers reuolt frō him.
The duke of Ireland flieth frō his armie.
Virg. Aeneid. 9.
But the duke of Ireland hauing with him Molineux, Vernon, and Ratcliffe, rode forward
in statelie and glorious araie, with an armie (as ye haue heard) of fiue thousand
men, supposing that none durst come foorth to withstand him. Neuerthelesse when he
came to Ratcote bridge, not past foure miles from Cheping Norton (which bridge if he
could haue passed, he had béene out of the danger of all enimies) he suddenlie espied
where the armie of the lords laie, not far distant from him, readie in the midst of a vallie to
abide his comming. Some of the earle of Derbies companie had broken the bridge, & so
stopped his passage. He therefore perceiuing his enimies intention, staied, and caused
the kings banner to be spred, and began to set a good countenance of the matter, and to
exhort his people to shew themselues valiant; and herewith caused the trumpets to sound.
But when it appeared that as some were readie to fight in his quarell, so there were other
that quite forsooke him, and said flatlie they would not fight against so manie noble
men, in so vniust a cause: he being thereof aduertised, began to wax faint-harted, and to
prepare himselfe to escape by flight; and declaring no lesse openlie vnto them, said:
“Before we come to ioine, I will séeke to withdraw my selfe out of the waie, and saue
my selfe if I can; for me they onlie seeke, against you they haue no quarell, so that I
being shifted awaie, you shall easilie be preserued.” Herewith one of the knights said to
him; “You haue brought vs out of our countrie, you haue procured vs to giue you our
promise, you haue caused vs to take this iournie in hand: here therefore are we readie to
fight & win the victorie with you, if our hap be such; or if fortune will not so fauour us,
we are readie to spend our liues with you.” “No” said he, “ye shall not so doo,” and |790|
forthwith striking his horsse with spurs, he fled from them for feare which had set wings on
héeles, as one saith:
――pedibus timor addidit alas.
Thomas Molineux slaine.
Herevpon manie that were with him, cursing this his demeanour, prepared to yeeld
themselues to the lords. But Thomas Molineux determined to fight it out, sith the lords
were not yet all come togither to that place, but onelie the earle of Derbie and certeine
others. Neuerthelesse, after he had fought a while, and perceiued it would not auaile
him to tarie longer, as one despairing of the victorie, betooke him likewise to flight, as
the duke of Ireland had led him the waie: and plunging into the riuer, which was at
hand, it chanced that sir Thomas Mortimer being present amongst other at the same
place, willed him to come out of the water vnto him; for if he would not, he threatened
to shoot him through with arrowes in the riuer where he stood. “If I come (said Molineux)
will ye saue my life?” “I will make thée no such promise (said sir Thomas Mortimer)
but notwithstanding, either come vp, or thou shalt presentlie die for it.” “Well
then (said Molineux) if there be no other remedie, suffer me to come vp, and let me trie
with hand-blowes, either with you or some other, and so die like a man.” But as
he came vp, the knight caught him by the helmet, plucked it off his head, & streightwaies
drawing foorth his dagger, stroke him into the braines, and so dispatched him.
This was the end of sir Thomas Molineux, which through his bold and rash aduenture,
in a most dangerous and desperat case, he pulled vpon himselfe; and might as
well haue auoided as incurred, if the same prouident care of safetie had taken him in the
head that mooued the duke of Ireland to take flight for his indemnitie: wherein he séemed
to remember that there is no safe attempting of any perilous enterprise without dread of
danger: for he that can tell when a thing is to be feared, can tell in like sort when it is to
be vndertaken; as the wiseman verie sententiouslie saith:
Animus vereri qui scit, scit tutò aggredi.
The duke of Ireland flieth into Holland.
In the meane time, the duke of Ireland (as ye haue heard) séeking to escape by flight,
came to the riuers side; but finding the bridge broken, he galoped till he found an other
bridge, where he found a number of archers readie to stop his passage. When he saw
that he was thus inclosed with his enimies on the one side, and the riuer of Thames on the
other, he thought to put all in aduenture; and casting awaie his gantlets, and sword (to
be the more nimble) gaue his horsse the spurres, and lept into the riuer; but missing the
foord, and not able to land with his horsse on the further side, he forsooke him, and
swimming ouer so well as he might, got to the banke, and so escaped. It was now night,
and therefore his enimies hauing no knowledge of the countrie, followed him not; but his
horsse, helmet, curasses, gantlets, and sword being found, it was thought verelie that he
had béene drowned. The next newes heard of him, was that he had passed the seas, and
was got into Holland, where he had no great freendlie welcome, by reason that Albert duke
of Bauiere, who was lord of that countrie, bare such good will to his coosins of England,
the dukes of Lancaster, Yorke, and Glocester, that he commanded this duke of Ireland
to depart foorth of his countrie, as immediatlie therevpon he did, from thence resorting
to the bishoprike of Vtreict, and after into other countries, till finallie he ended the
course of his life, as after in place conuenient
shall appeare.
Letters foūd in the duke of Irelands trunks.
Burford.
But now to returne to the armies where we left them. After the duke was fled, and
Thomas Molineux slaine (as before ye haue heard) the armie of the lords set vpon the people
that were come with the duke of Ireland (as hath béene said) foorth of Chesshire, Lancashire,
and Wales; and taking them as enimies, spoiled them of their horsse, armor,
bowes and arrowes. The knights and esquiers had their armor and horsses againe to them
restored, and were reteined with the lords to serue them: but the commons without
either armor or weapon were sent home, and had no other harme done vnto them. The
duke of Irelands cariage being taken, letters were found in his trunkes or males, which
the king had written to him, exhorting him with all spéed to repaire vnto London, with |791|
what power he might make, and there he should find him readie to liue and die with him.
Such was the conclusion of this battell, which happened néere vnto Burford, fast by Bablake,
to the great reioising of manie through the realme, for that the enimies thereof (as
they tooke the matter) were thus ouerthrowne. But yet the escaping awaie of the duke
of Ireland did somewhat mitigate their ioy, for what was become of him it was vncerteine.
After this the duke of Glocester, and the other lords went to Oxford, being sorie that their
fortune was not to haue taken the duke of Ireland.
Tho. Walsi.
A brute raised that king Richard meant to yéeld vp Calis into the French kings hands.
At the same time, or rather before, the archbishop of Yorke, and the lord chiefe
iustice sir Robert Trisilian, fearing the indignation of the lords, withdrew out of the waie,
and durst not be séene. But now the lords, who after the iournie at Radcote bridge,
were come (as ye haue heard) to Oxford; we find that the same time a brute was raised
(whether of truth or not, we haue neither to affirme nor denie) how there was a messenger
taken being sent from the French king with letters, in which was conteined a licence
of safe conduct, for the king of England, the duke of Ireland, and others, to come to Bullongne,
with a certeine number limited, where they should find the French king come
downe thither readie to receiue them, to the end that for a certeine summe of monie,
which the French king should giue to the king of England, the towne of Calis, and all
the fortresses in those parts, which were in the Englishmens hands, should be deliuered
to the Frenchmen; and further that the king of England should doo his homage to the
French king, for the lands which he held in Gascoigne, and so to haue acknowledged
himselfe his liege man. The lords (as was reported) hauing got these letters, and taken
counsell togither how to procéed in their businesse, to bring the same to good end, remoued
from Oxford, and on Christmas euen they came to S. Albons, and there staied
that daie and the next.
The lords come to London with a great armie.
K. Richard kéepeth his Christmas in the Tower of London.
The lords send to the Maior and citizens of London to vnderstand their meaning.
The Londoners in great perplexitie which part to take.
On saint Stephans daie they tooke their waie to London with an armie of fortie thousand
men, as some write; & comming into the fields besides Clerkenwell, mustered their
men, being diuided in thrée seuerall battels verie well appointed with armor and weapon,
that it was a beautifull sight to behold them. The king kept his Christmas, not at Westminster,
but in the Tower; not douting but there to be defended what chance soeuer
should happen. The lords mistrusting the Londoners, lodged them with their people in
the suburbs. They sent yet two knights, and two esquiers, vnto the Maior and Aldermen
men of the citie, to vnderstand whether they were minded to take part with them, or with
the duke of Ireland, and his adherents, traitors (as they tearmed them) both to the king
and the realme. The Londoners were now in no small feare and perplexitie, not knowing
well what waie was best for them to take, weieng diuers perils; as first the kings displeasure,
if they opened their gates vnto the lords; and if they shut them foorth, they feared
the indignation and wrath of the commons that were come thither with the lords, and
were readie to breake downe their wals and gates, if they were neuer so little prouoked.
Besides this, they stoode most in doubt, least if the wealthiest citizens should not giue
their consent to receiue the lords into the citie, the meaner sort, and such as wished rather
to sée some hurlie burlie than to continue in peace, would séeke by force to set open the
gates, and make waie for the lords and their people to enter, that they might make
hauocke, and spoile whatsoeuer might be found of value in the rich mens houses.
The Londoners incline to the lords.
The lords enter into London.
The kings words touching the lords procéedings.
These doubts with all the circumstances being well weied and considered, the Maior
Nicholas Exton, and certeine of the chiefe men in the citie, went foorth to the lords, and
offered them to lodge in the citie at their pleasure, with all things necessarie as they
should deuise. The Maior caused also wine, ale, bread, and chéese, to be distributed
among the armie, so as ech one had part, which courtesie turned greatlie afterwards to
the commoditie of the citie. The lords vpon search made, perceiuing that there was no
guile meant by laieng of men in ambushes within the citie to intrappe them, or otherwise,
but that all was sure inough and cleare without anie such euill meaning, they entred the
citie and there abode quietlie. Then went the archbishop of Canturburie and others betwixt |792|
the king and the lords to make peace betwixt them. But the king at the first seemed
little to estéeme the matter, saieng to the archbishop; Well let them lie here with their
great multitude of people hardlie till they haue spent all they haue, and then I trust they
will returne poore inough and néedie, and then I doubt not but I shall talke with them,
and vse the matter so as iustice maie require.
The lords refuse to come into ye Tower but after search made they come thither to the kings presence.
The lords being informed hereof, were maruelouslie mooued, and sware that they
would not depart till they had spoken with him face to face, and foorthwith they sent part
of their companies to watch the Thames, for feare the king should scape their hands, and
then laugh them to scorne. When the king then perceiued himselfe to be inclosed on
ech side, he talked eftsoones with the archbishop and his associats that were messengers
betwixt him and the lords, willing them to declare to the lords that he would be contented
to treat with them in reasonable order; wherevpon they required that he should
on the morow next insuing come vnto Westminster, where he should vnderstand their
demands. When the king heard that, he refused to come vnto Westminster, but willed
that they should come to him there in the Tower. The lords sent him word againe, that
the Tower was a place to be suspected, for that they might there be surprised by some
guilefull practise deuised to intrap them. The king herevnto made answer, that they
might send some two hundred men, or so manie as they should thinke good, to make a
through search, whether they néeded to feare anie such thing; and this accordinglie was
doone: they hauing the keies of the gates and of all the strong chambers, turrets, and
places within the Tower sent vnto them.
R. Grafton.
Thom. Wals.
The lords open their gréefes to the king.
On the fridaie, the duke of Glocester, the earls of Derbie, and Notingham, came to the
king, where he was set in a pauillion richlie arraied; and after their humble salutations
done, and some talke had betwixt them, they went at the kings request with him into his
chamber, where they recited vnto him the conspiracie of their aduersaries, through which
they had béen indicted. They also shewed forth the letters which he had sent to the duke
of Ireland, to leauie an armie vnto their destruction. Likewise the letters, which the
French king had written to him, conteining a safe conduct for him to come into France,
there to confirme things to the diminishing of his honor, to the decaie of his power, &
losse of his fame. ¶ During the time of this communication also, the earle of Derbie
desired the king to behold the people that were assembled in sight before the Tower, for
the preseruation of him and his realme: which he did, and maruelling to sée such a goodlie
armie and strength, as he declared to them no lesse, the duke of Glocester said vnto him;
Sir this is not the tenth part of your willing subjects that haue risen to destroie those false
traitors, that haue misled you with their wicked and naughtie counsell.
R. Grafton.
Tho. Walsing.
The incōstancie of the king.
The king being brought to his wits end, aswell with those things which the lords had
charged him with, as otherwise with the sight of that great multitude of people, seemed
greatlie amazed. Wherevpon the lords, vnder condition that the next daie he should
come to Westminster to heare more of their minds, and to conclude further for the behoofe
of the common-wealth of the realme, began to take leaue of him, meaning so to
depart: but the king desired them to tarrie all night with him and the quéene. The
duke thinking to make all sure, made excuse that he durst not be absent from all those
folks, which they had brought with them, for feare that some disorder might arise, either
in the armie, or in the citie; yet at the kings instance, the earles of Notingham and
Derbie taried there all night. The king before his going to bed, was quite turned concerning
his determination and promise made to go the next daie to Westminster, through
such whispering tales as was put into his eares, by some that were about him, telling him
that it stood neither with his safetie, nor honour, so lightlie to agree to depart from the
tower, vnto such place as the lords had thus appointed him, to serue more for their purpose
than for suertie of his person.
The K. is cōpelled to condescend to the lords request.
When the lords therefore vnderstood that he would not keepe promise with them, they
were greatlie offended, insomuch as they sent him flat word, that if he would not come |793|
(according to promise) they would suerlie choose another king, that would and ought to
obeie the faithfull counsell of his lords. The king with this message being touched to
quicke, to satisfie their minds, and to auoid further perill, remooued the next morning
vnto Westminster, where the lords comming before his presence, after a little other talke,
they declared vnto him, that aswell in respect of his owne honour, as the commoditie &
wealth of his kingdome, it was behouefull, that such traitors, and most wicked & slanderous
persons, as were nothing profitable, but hurtfull to him and his louing subiects, should be
remooued out of his court; and that other that both could and would serue him more
honorablie and faithfullie were placed in their roomes. The king, although sore against
his mind, when he saw how the lords were bent, and that he wanted power to withstand
their pleasures, condescended to doo what they would haue him.
Certeine persons put out of the court.
Certeine ladies expelled the court.
So when he had granted thereto, they iudged that Alexander Neuill archbishop of
Yorke, Iohn Fourdham bishop of Durham lord tresuror, Thomas Rushoke, a frier of the
order of the preachers, bishop of Chichester, and confessor to the king, were worthie to be
auoided the court. But the archbishop of Yorke, and the bishop of Chichester would
abide no reckonings, but got them out of the waie, and fled, it was not knowne whither.
The lords did expell out of the court the lord Zouch of Haringworth, the lord Burnell, the
lord Beaumont, Albrey de Véer, Baldwin de Bereford, Richard Aderburie, Iohn Worth,
Thomas Clifford, and Iohn Louell knights. These were dismissed out of the court, and
remooued from the king, but not discharged, for they were constreined to put in suerties
to appeare at the next parlement. There were also certeine ladies expelled the court, as
those that were thought to doo much harme about the K. to wit, the ladie Poinings, wife
to Iohn Worth of Mowen, and the ladie Moulinge, with others, which also found suerties
to answer at the next parlement, to all such things as might be obiected against them.
Moreouer there were arrested and committed to seuerall prisons, sir Simon Burlie, William
Elmham, Iohn Beauchampe of Holt steward of the kings house, sir Iohn Salisburie,
sir Thomas Triuet, sir Iames Barneis, sir Nicholas Dagworth, and sir Nicholas Brambre
knights. Also Richard Clifford, Iohn Lincolne, Richard Mitford the kings chapleins,
and Nicholas Sclake deane of the kings chappell, whose word might doo much in the
court. There was also apprehended Iohn Blake an apprentise of the law: all which persons
were kept in streict ward till the next parlement, in which they were appointed to
stand vnto their triall and answers.
The parlemēt that wrought woonders.
R. Grafton.
Thom. Walsin.
R. Grafton.
The iustices arrested & sent to the tower.
Why the iustices were apprehended.
Shortlie after, to wit, the morrow after the Purification of our ladie, the parlement began,
the which was named the parlement that wrought woonders. The king would gladlie
haue proroged the time of this parlement, if by anie meanes he might. The lords came
to the same parlement, with a sufficient armie for their owne safeties. On the first day
of this parlement, were arrested as they sat in their places, all the iustices (except sir
William Skipworth) as sir Roger Fulthrop, sir Robert Belknap, sir Iohn Carie, sir Iohn
Holt, sir William Brooke, and Iohn Alocton the kings sergeant at law, all which were sent
to the tower, and there kept in seuerall places. The cause whie they were thus apprehended,
was for that, where in the last parlement, diuerse lords were made gouernours of
the realme, both by the assent of the same parlement, and also by the aduise and counsell
of all the iustices then being, and indentures tripartite thereof made, of the which one part
remained with the king, an other with the lords so chosen to gouerne the realme, and the
third part with the iustices: and yet notwithstanding, the said iustices at a councell holden
at Notingham (as yee haue heard before) did go contrarie to that agreement. Wherevpon
it was now determined, that they should make answer to their dooings.
The duke of Ireland & his associats attainted of treson by this parlement.
Trisilian chéefe iustice descried by his owne man is executed at Tiburne.
Moreouer, in the beginning of this parlement, were openlie called Robert Véer duke of
Ireland, Alexander Neuill archbishop of Yorke, Michaell de la Poole earle of Suffolke,
sir Robert Trisilian lord cheefe iustice of England, to answer Thomas of Woodstoke duke
of Glocester, Richard earle of Arundell, Henrie earle of Derbie, and Thomas earle of
Notingham, vpon certeine articles of high treason, which these lords did charge them with. |794|
And forsomuch as none of these appeared, it was ordeined by the whole assent of the parlement,
that they should be banished for euer, and their lands and goods mooueable and
vnmooueable to be forfeit and seized into the kings hands, their lands intailed onelie excepted.
Shortlie after was the lord chéefe iustice, Robert Trisilian found in an apothecaries
house at Westminster, lurking there, to vnderstand by spies dailie what was doone
in the parlement: he was descried by one of his owne men, and so taken and brought to
the duke of Glocester, who caused him forthwith the same daie to be had to the tower, and
from thence drawne to Tiburne, and there hanged.
Sir Nicholas Brambre executed with an axe of his owne deuise.
Ouid. li. I. de art.
On the morrow after, sir Nicholas Brambre, that sometime had beene maior of London,
was brought foorth to iudgement and condemned, although he had manie fréends that
made sute to saue his life. This man had doone manie oppressions within the citie of
London (as was reported.) In his maioraltie, he caused great & monstruous stocks to be
made to imprison men therein, and also a common axe to strike off the heads of them
which should resist his will and pleasure, for he was so highlie in the kings fauour, that he
might doo what he would. And the report went, that he had caused eight thousand or
more to be indicted, which before had taken part with the lords, intending to haue put
them all to death, if God had not shortened his daies. Manie other euill fauoured reports
went abroad of him, as that he meant to haue changed the name of London, and to haue
named it little Troie, of which citie baptised with that new name, he purposed to be intituled
duke. But these were forged rumors deuised and spred abroad in those daies, as
manie other were, partlie by the vaine imagination of the people, and partlie of purpose,
to bring those whome the king fauoured further out of the peoples liking. But now
touching sir Nicholas Brambre: in the end being thus called to answer his transgressions,
he was found giltie, and had iudgement, neither to be hanged, nor drawne, but to be beheaded
with his owne axe which before he had deuised: seruing him heerein as Phalaris
the tyrant sometime serued Perillus, the inuentor of that exquisite torment of the brasen
bull, wherein the offendor being put (and the counterfet beast by force of fier made glowing
hot) hauing his toong first cut out, through extreamitie of paine made a bellowing alwaies
as he cried, as if it had béene the verie noise of a naturall bull. Of which strange torment
Perillus himselfe first tasted, suffering death by an engine of his owne deuising,
which he thought should haue purchased him a good liuing, whereof the poet saith:
Vt Phalaris tauro violentus membra Perilli
Torruit, infelix imbuit autor opus.
Diuerse that stood against the lords executed.
The duke of Glocester a seuere man.
Sir Simon Burlie.
After this, sir Iohn Salisburie, & sir Iames Berneis, both knights and lustie yoong men,
were by iudgement of parlement drawne and hanged. Then folowed Iohn Beauchampe
of the Holt, lord Steward of the kings house, that had serued king Edward the third, and
his sonne Lionell duke of Clarence: who likewise by decrée of this parlement was drawne
and hanged. Also Iohn Blake esquier, who in an infortunate houre stood against the lords
in the councell at Notingham, was now drawne and hanged, and so was one Thomas Vske.
Last of all (or as some hold, first of all) was sir Simon Burlie beheaded, although the earle
of Derbie did what he could to saue his life, by reason whereof, great dissention rose betwixt
the said earle, and the duke of Glocester: for the duke being a sore and a right
seuere man, might not by any meanes be remooued from his opinion and purpose, if he
once resolued vpon any matter. Some spite he bare (as was thought) towards the said sir
Simon Burlie, both as well for the faithfull fréendship, which was growne betwixt the duke
of Ireland, and the said sir Simon, as also for that he looked to haue had such offices and
roomes which sir Simon inioied, by the kings gratious fauour and grants thereof to him
made, as the Wardenship of the cinque ports, and constableship of the castell of Douer
and the office of high chamberleine.
† Abr. Fl. out of Henrie Knighton fol. 191.
¶ But
now, bicause of all these which were condemned and executed at this parlement,
in our common chronicles there is least written; and in Froissard, and diuerse private
pamphlets I haue read most of this sir Simon, I haue thought good to set downe some |795|
part of his life, so largelie as this volume may well beare, although a great deale more
briefe than where I found it. This sir Simon was the son of sir Iohn Burlie knight of the
garter, and brought vp in his youth vnder his kinsman doctor Walter Burlie, who (as in
the latter end of king Edward the third you haue heard) was one of the chiefe that had
charge in the bringing vp of the Blacke prince, eldest sonne to the said king Edward. By
this occasion he grew into such fauour with the prince, that afterwards the said prince committed
vnto him the gouernance of his sonne Richard of Burdeaux, who as he was of a
gentle and courteous nature, began then to conceiue so great loue and liking towards him,
that when he came to the crowne and was king, he aduanced him highlie to great honours
and promotions, in somuch that at one time & other he was made knight of the garter,
constable of Douer, lord Warden of the cinque ports, lord chamberleine,†
earle of Huntington,
and also one of the priuie councell to the king.
Neither was there any thing doone concerning the affaires apperteining vnto the state
without his counsell, appointment, and direction, wherein he so much fauoured and leaned
to the partie of the duke of Ireland, that he was sore enuied, and greatlie hated of diuerse
of the rest of the nobilitie, speciallie of the kings vncle the duke of Glocester, who vpon
malice that he bare to the man, not so much for his owne demeanour, as for his alies,
and peraduenture for desire of his roomes, more than of his life, caused him to be accused
of diuerse offenses against the crowne, realme, and church; namelie, for that he had (as
they surmized against him) spoiled and wasted the kings treasure, and withholden the paie
of the souldiers and men of warre, wherevpon he was arrested, called to account, & hauing
no clerke allowed him to make vp the same, was found in arrerages 250000 franks. And
although for one part thereof he demanded allowance of monie, which he had defraied
and laid out in Almaine, and in Boheme, about the kings marriage, and for the residue
desired daies of paiment, yet he could obteine neither. Further, he was accused that the
duke of Ireland and he had gathered great summes of monie, conueied the same to Douer,
and from thence sent it in the night by sea into Germanie.
Froissard.
Thoms. Wals.
Lastlie, the archbishop (forsooth) and the moonks of Canturburie charged him that he
sought the means to remooue the shrine of the archbishop Thomas, otherwise called
Thomas Becket, from Canturburie vnto Douer, vnder a colour of feare, least the Frenchmen
being assembled in Flanders to inuade England, should land in Kent and take Canturburie,
and spoile it, where indeed (as they surmized against him) he meant to send it
ouer the seas vnto the king of Boheme. Herevpon he was first committed to the tower,
and before the king or his other friends could procure his deliuerance, he was without law
or iustice, before any of the residue (as some hold) brought foorth and beheaded on the
tower hill, by commandement of the duke of Glocester, and other of his faction, quite contrarie
to the kings will or knowledge, in somuch that when he vnderstood it, he spake manie
sore words against the duke, affirming that he was a wicked man, and worthie to be kept
shorter, sith vnder a colour of dooing iustice, he went about to destroie euerie good and
honest man. The king was also offended with the duke of Yorke, for his brothers presumptuous
doings, though the said duke of Yorke being verelie a man of a gentle nature,
wished that the state of the common-wealth might haue béene redressed without losse of
any mans life, or other cruell dealing: but the duke of Glocester, and diuerse other of
the nobilitie, the lesse that they passed for the kings threatening speach, so much more
were they readie to punish all those whom they tooke to be their enimies. In deed the
said sir Simon Burlie was thought to beare himselfe more loftie, by reason of the kings
fauour, than was requisite, which procured him enuie of them, that could not abide others
to be in any condition their equals in authoritie.
It should appeare by Froissard, that he was first of all, in the beginning of these stirs
betwixt the king and the lords, committed to the tower, and notwithstanding all the shift
that either the king, or the duke of Ireland, or anie other of his fréends could make for
him, by the duke of Glocesters commandement he was cruellie beheaded, so
greatlie to |796|
the offense of the king, and those that were his trustie councellors, that therevpon the
king caused the duke of Ireland the sooner to assemble an armie against the said duke
and his complices, therby to restraine their presumptuous proceedings. But whether he
was thus at the first or last executed, to please the king the better, now at this parlement,
amongst others that were condemned in the same: his lands were giuen to the king, a
great part whereof he afterwards disposed to diuerse men as he thought expedient. But
yet in the parlement holden in the one and twentith yeare of this kings reigne, the act
of atteindor of the said sir Simon was repealed: and at an other parlement holden in the
second yeare of king Henrie the fourth, all his lands which then remained vngranted and
vnsold, were restored to sir Iohn Burlie knight, sonne and heire of sir Roger Burlie,
brother to the said Simon, of whom lineallie is descended Thomas Eins esquier, now
secretarie to the queenes maiesties councell in the north parts. And thus far touching
sir Simon Burlie, of whom manie reports went of his disloiall dealings towards the state,
as partlie ye haue heard, but how trulie the lord knoweth. Among other slanderous tales
that were spred abroad of him, one was that he consented to the deliuering of Douer
castell by the kings appointment to the Frenchmen for monie. But as this was a thing
not like to be true, so (no doubt) manie things that the persons aforesaid, which were
executed, had béene charged with, at the least by common report among the people,
were nothing true at all; although happilie the substance of those things, for which they
died, might be true in some respect.
Grafton.
The iustices condemned to perpetuall exile.
The king taketh an oth to performe the lords orders.
Sir William Elmham that was charged also for withdrawing of the soldiers wages, discharged
himselfe therof, and of all other things that might be laid to his charge. As
touching the iustices, they were all condemned to death by the parlement, but such
meanes was made for them vnto the queene, that she obteined pardon for their liues.
But they forfeited their lands and goods, and were appointed to remaine in perpetuall
exile, with a certeine portion of monie to them assigned for their dailie sustentation: the
names of which iustices so condemned to exile were these, Robert Belknap, Iohn Holt,
Iohn Craie, Roger Fulthorpe, William Burgh, and Iohn Lokton. Finallie, in this
parlement was an oth required and obteined of the king, that he should stand vnto and
abide such rule and order as the lords should take: and this oth was not required onelie
of the king, but also of all the inhabitants of the realme. ¶ In these troubles was the
realme of England in these daies, and the king brought into that case, that he ruled not,
but was ruled by his vncles, and other to them associat.
The earle of Arundell sent to the sea with a great nauie, in aid of the duke of Britaine.
Peraduēture Maluere, it may be Mongomerie.
In the latter end of this eleuenth yeare was the earle of Arundell sent to the sea with
a great nauie of ships and men of warre. There went with him in this iournie, of noble
men, the earles of Notingham & Deuonshire, sir Thomas Percie, the lord Clifford, the
lord Camois, sir William Elmham, sir Thomas Morieux, sir Iohn Daubreticourt, sir
William Shellie, sir Iohn Warwike or Berwike, sir Stephan de Liberie, sir Robert Sere,
sir Peter Montberie, sir Lewes Clanbow, sir Thomas Coque or Cooke, sir William
Paulie or Paulet, & diuerse others. There were a thousand men of armes, and three
thousand archers. The purpose for which they were sent, was to haue aided the duke
of Britaine (if he would haue receiued them) being then eftsoones run into the French
kings displeasure, for the imprisoning of the lord Clisson constable
of France.
The earle of Arundell returneth out of France.
But after that (contrarie to expectation) the duke of Britaine was come to an agréement
with the French king, the earle of Arundell drew with his nauie alongst the coasts
of Poictou, and Xaintonge, till at length he arriued in the hauen that goeth vp to Rochell,
and landed with his men at Marrant, foure leagues from Rochell, and began to pilfer,
spoile, and fetch booties abroad in the countrie. The Frenchmen within Rochell issued
foorth to skirmish with the Englishmen, but they were easilie put to flight, and folowed
euen to the bariers of the gates of Rochell. ¶ Perot le Bernois a capteine of Gascoigne,
that made warre for the king of England in Limosin, and lay in the fortresse of Galuset,
came foorth the same time, and made a roade into Berrie with foure
hundred spears. |797|
The earle of Arundell, after he had laine at Marrant fiftéene daies, returned to his ships,
and finallie came backe into England, and Perot le Bernois likewise returned to his
fortresse. ¶ About the same time was a truce taken betwixt the parties English and
French on the marches of Aquitaine, to begin the first daie of August, and to indure
till the first of Maie next insuing.
Abr. Fl. out of Henrie Knighton canon of Leicester abbeie.
O Scotish crueltie and more than barbarous bloodthirstinesse.
¶ In
this yeare 1388, in Lent, the Scots entred into the westerne borders, & what
with killing as also with burning they did much mischiefe. Moreouer they shewed extreme
crueltie against young children and sucklings, against women bigge with child and
in trauell, against weake and weerish men and crooked with age, in the countrie of Gildisland,
within the lordship of the lord Dacres, gathering them togither into houses, and
shutting them vp, and locking the doores, they burned without mercie or pitie to the
number (as it was said) of two hundred and aboue.
An ouerthrow giuen to the Englishmen by the Scots at Otterburne.
Fabian. Caxton. A parlement at Cambridge.
Sir Thomas Triuet slaine with the fall of his horse.
This yeare in August, the Scots inuaded the countrie of Northumberland, and at Otterburne
ouerthrew a power of Englishmen, which the earle of Northumberland and his
sonnes had leauied against them. In this battell the earle Dowglas chiefe of that armie
of Scots was slaine, and the lord Henrie Percie, and his brother sir Ralfe, sonnes to the
said earle of Northumberland, were taken prisoners, as in the Scotish chronicles ye may
read more at large. After the feast of the natiuitie of our ladie, a parlement was holden
at Cambridge, in the which diuerse statutes were ordeined; as For the limiting of seruants
wages; For punishment of vagarant persons; For the inhibiting of certeine persons
to weare weapons; For the debarring of vnlawfull games; For maintenance of
shooting in the long bow; For remouing of the staple of woolles from Middleburgh vnto
Calis; For labourers not to be receiued, but where they are inhabiting, except with licence
vnder seale of the hundred where they dwell. There was also an act made, that
none should go foorth of the realme, to purchase anie benefice with cure or without cure,
except by licence obteined of the king; and if they did contrarie herevnto, they were to
be excluded out of the kings protection. There was granted to the king in this parlement,
a tenth to be leuied of the clergie, and a fiftéenth of the laitie. Moreouer, during the
time of this parlement, as sir Thomas Triuet was riding towards Barnewell with the king,
where the king lodged, by forcing his horsse too much with the spurs, the horsse fell with
him so rudelie to the ground, that his entrails within him were so burst and perished,
that he died the next daie after. Manie reioised at this mans death, as well for that men
iudged him to be excéeding haultie and proud; as also for that he was suspected not to
haue dealt iustlie with the bishop of Norwich, in the iournie which the bishop had made
into Flanders: but speciallie men had an ill opinion of him, for that he stood with the
king against the lords, counselling him in the yeare last past to dispatch them out of the
way. ¶ Sir Iohn Holland, the kings brother on the mothers side, that was latelie returned
out of Spaine, where he had beene with the duke of Lancaster, was now made
earle of Huntington.
Abr. Fl. out of Henrie Knighton canon of Leicester abbeie.
Battell and slaughter betwéene flies.
¶ In
Iulie, whiles the king was at Shéene, there swarmed togither in his court great
multitudes of flies and gnats, insomuch that in maner of skirmishing they incountered ech
other; and making great slaughters on both sides, were in the end swept awaie from the
place where they lay dead, with brushes and béesoms by heaps. This was deemed an
vnluckie prognosticat of some mischiefe like to fall vpon the necke of
the land.
Commissioners sent to treat a truce betwéene England, France, and Scotland.
Frossaird.
Also in this twelfth yeare, were commissioners appointed to méet at Balingham, betwixt
Calis and Bullongne, to treat a truce to be had betwixt the realmes of England,
France and Scotland. Walter Skirlow bishop of Durham that had béene latelie before
remoued from Bath vnto Durham, from whence Iohn Fordham had béene translated vnto
Elie, was sent as head commissioner for the king of England, and with him were ioined
sir Iohn Cranbow, and sir Nicholas Dagworth, knights, and Richard Rowhale clearke,
a doctor of law. By Froissard it appeareth that the earle of Salisburie was one, & sir
Thomas Beauchampe lord deputie of Calis appointed likewise as an assistant with them. |798|
The bishop of Baieux, the lord Valeran earle of S. Poule, sir Guillam de Melin, sir
Nicholas Bracque, and sir Iohn le Mercier came thither for the French king. And for
the king of Scots there appeared the bishop of Aberdeine, sir Iames and sir Dauid Lindsey,
and sir Walter Sankler, knights. After long treatie, and much a doo, at length a
truce was concluded to begin at Midsummer next, and to last thrée
years after.
Abr. Fl. out of Henrie Knighton canon of Leceister abbeie.
Scholers of Oxford togither by the eares.
Truce of 3 years betwéene six kings.
¶ In
this yeare of Grace 1389, in the Lent time, there sprang a pitifull strife in Oxford,
the variance in the yeare before being not fullie allaied, but both sides alwaies prouoking
ech other. For the Welsh scholers being euermore quarelous, and hauing the southerlie
scholers taking their parts, rose against the scholers of the north, so that to and fro manie
a deadlie mischiefe happened betwéene them. In the end, this strife did so increase,
that there was a daie of skirmish appointed and agreed vpon by both sides to be tried in
the field. But by the meanes of Thomas of Woodstoke duke of Glocester all this sturre
was appeased, and manie of the Welsh scholers banished from the vniuersitie. ¶ On the
thursdaie before Easter (being mawndaie thursdaie) the lord Beaumont gardian of Carleill
in the west marches entred Scotland fortie leagues, & spoiling Fowike, made wast at his
pleasure, and brought awaie with him manie Scots prisoners & captiues. ¶ About this
time a truce of thrée years was taken betwéene king Richard, the kings of France, Scotland,
Spaine, Portingale, and of Nauarre. This truce began on the first daie of August
in the néerer parts of the realme both by sea and land; and on the fiftéenth of August
in the further parts, because knowledge could not be giuen thereof without some long
time.
The Scots in the time of treatie spoile the countrie of Northumberland.
The Scots hauing prouided an armie to inuade England are hardly persuaded to accept the truce.
Whilest the commissioners were occupied in the marches betwixt Calis and Bullongne
about this truce, the Scots entring into Northumberland, did much mischiefe, leading
awaie manie prisoners, men and women, besides other great booties and preies which
they got abroad in the countrie. The lord Thomas Mowbraie earle of Notingham was
sent with fiue hundred spears to reuenge those attempts of the enimies: but for that his
power was small in comparison to theirs, he preuailed litle or nothing against them. Sir
Iohn Clanbow, and sir Richard Rouale clerke, tooke the French kings oth; and the earle
of saint Paule that had maried the ladie Maud Courtnie with other noblemen, came into
England, and receiued the kings oth here for the confirming of this last mentioned truce.
The Scots might not without much adoo be persuaded to accept this truce, being readie
the same time with an armie to enter into England, but yet through the diligence of such
Frenchmen as went thither for that purpose, at length they agreed.
The kings question to his lords and others in the councel chamber.
Claudian.
This yeare the king by counsell of some that were about him, called the nobles and
great men of the realme togither, and as they were set in the councell chamber staieng
till he came: at length he entring into the same chamber, and taking his place to sit
among them, demanded of them, of what age he was now? Whereto answer was made,
that he was full twentie yeares old. Then (said he) I am of yeares sufficient to gouerne
mine owne house and familie, and also my kingdome: for it séemeth aginst reason that
the state of the meanest person within my kingdome should be better than mine. Euerie
heire that is once come to the age of twentie years, is permitted, if his father be not liuing,
to order his businesse himselfe: then that thing which is permitted to euerie other person
of meane degrée by law, why is the same denied vnto me? These words vttered he with
the courage of a prince, not without the instigation and setting on of such as were about
him, whose drift was by discountenancing others to procure preferment to themselues,
abusing the kings tender years and gréene wit, with ill counsell for their aduantage: where
as it had béene more méete to haue giuen him those precepts which Claudianus hath in
his tract of the institution of a prince; and among others this:
Non tibi quid liceat, sed quid fecisse decebit
Occurrat, mentémq; domet respectus honesti.
The king taking vpō him the gouernement of all things displaceth diuerse officers & setteth others in their roomes.
Wickham bishop of Winchester made L. chancelor.
When the barons had hard the words of the king, being therewith astonied, they made
answer, that there should be no right abridged from him, but that he might take vpon |799|
him the gouernment as of reason was due. Well said he, yée know that I haue beene a
long time ruled by tutors, so as it hath not béene lawfull to me to doo anie thing, were
it of neuer so small importance, without their consents. Now therefore I will, that they
meddle no further with matters perteining to my gouernment, & after the maner of an
heire come to lawfull age, I will call to my councell such as pleaseth me, and I will deale
in mine owne businesse my selfe. And therefore I will first that the chancellor resigne
to me his seale. When the archbishop of Yorke (who in the yeare last past had béene
remooued from Elie vnto Yorke, and Alexander Neuill displaced) had deliuered vnto
him the seale, the king receiuing it of him, put it in his bosome, and suddenlie rising,
departed foorth of the chamber, & after a little while returning, sat downe againe, and
deliuered the seale to the bishop of Winchester, William Wickham, and so made him
chancellor, although sore against the same bishops will. He made also manie other new
officers, remoouing the old, and vsed in all things his owne discretion and authoritie.
The duke of Glocester, the earle of Warwike, & other honorable and worthie men, were
discharged and put from the councell, and others placed in their roomes, such as pleased
the king to appoint. At the same time he made fiue new
iustices.
Abr. Fl. out of Henrie Knighton canon of Leicester abbeie.
¶ Of
this assuming the regiment to himselfe, as diuerse diuerslie report: so Henrie
Knighton a man liuing in those daies, and committing to writing the occurrents of that
tumultuous time, saith as followeth. In the moneth of Maie, the king held a councell
at Westminster, and in the feast of the Inuention of the crosse, comming personallie to
the councell house he remooued all the great officers (contrarie to expectation and thinking)
from their offices, and at his pleasure placed in their roomes whome he list. He
remooued the archbishop of Yorke lord chancellor, and put in his place the bishop of
Winchester: he remooued the bishop of Hereford lord treasuror, and put another in his
place: he remooued the clearke of the priuie seale, and all other: so likewise did he the
iustices of either bench. But least the affaires of the realme should in the meane while
be hindered, he commanded the iustices of law to follow and prosecute things requisite
as they were woont, till such time as he was better aduised touching the prouiding of other
iustices. The erle of Arundell likewise, vnto whome the gouernment of the parlement
was committed, and the admeraltie of the sea, was remooued; and the earle of Huntington
put in his roome. In like sort dealt the king with the residue of his officers,
saieng that he ought not to be inferior in degree & of lesse account than an other ordinarie
heire whatsoeuer within the realme of England; sith the law and custome of the realme
of England auerreth, that euerie heire being in the gardianship of anie lord, when he is
growne to be one and twentie yeares of age, ought presentlie to inioy the inheritance left
him by his father, and is lawfullie to possesse his patrimonie, and freelie to dispose and
order his owne goods and chattels to his liking. But now it is come to passe, that I thus
manie yeares haue liued vnder your counsell and gouernement; and now first to God,
secondlie to you, I giue manifold thanks, that you haue gouerned and supported me,
mine inheritance, and my realme of England, as well within as without, & speciallie
against our enimies round about vs, all renowme of honour and praise to vs and our
kingdome alwaies safelie reserued. But now God hath so dealt for vs, that we are of full
age, so that we are two and twentie yeares old at this present: and we require that we
may fréelie and at libertie from this time forward rule and gouerne both our selues and
our inheritance; and we will haue our kingdome in our owne hands, and officers and
seruitors of our owne appointing at our pleasure; secondlie, as shall seeme to vs more
auaileable, by Gods grace, to elect, choose, and preferre vnto offices such as we doo
well like of, and at our pleasure to remooue such as be presentlie resiant, and in their
roomes to substitute and set others wheresoeuer and whomsoeuer we list. The king
hauing thus spoken, there was not one that went about to breake him of his will, but
they all glorified God, who had prouided them such a king as was likelie to prooue
discreet and wise. |800|
Wickleuists increase.
In this season, the followers of Wickliffes doctrine maruellouslie increased, speciallie
in the diocesse of Sarum, where they had manie that tooke vpon them as ministers, both
to preach the word, and to dispense the sacraments. This they did in secret: but they
were discouered by one that had beene of their fellowship, who declared to the bishop of
Salisburie at his manor of Sonning, all the whole circumstances thereof, as he knew.
There were of them that preached in those daies earnestlie against pilgrimages, calling
such images as the people had in most veneration, as that at Walsingham, and the rood
of the north doore at Paules in London, rotten stocks, and worme eaten blocks, through
which the vnskilfull people being mocked and deceiued, were compelled most manifestlie
to commit idolatrie. The bishops (saith Thomas Walsingham) hearing, beholding, and
knowing these things with much more, to be true, did little or nothing to redresse the
same, saue onlie the bishop of Norwich who stirred coles, swearing and staring, that if
anie of that sect presumed to preach anie peruerse doctrine within his diocesse, he would
cause them either to hop headlesse, or to frie a fagot for it: he was therefore not a little
praised and extolled by the moonks and other religious men (as should appeare) for that
his zeale.
The duke of Lancaster returneth into Englād foorth of Gascoigne.
A councell holden at Reding where ye duke of Lancaster reconcileth the king and the lords.
In Nouember, the duke of Lancaster came foorth of Gascoigne into England, after he
had remained first in Spaine, and after in Gascoigne, thrée yeares togither. Of his successe
in Spaine is spoken before, & likewise of the agréement betwixt the king of Castile,
& the said duke, which was not in all points confirmed, till a little before his returne
now into England. About the same time the king had called a councell of his nobilitie at
Reading, to the which the duke of Lancaster made the more hast to come, bicause he
knew that the king would shew no good countenance to some of the noblemen; and
therefore he doubted least malicious offenses might arise betwixt them, which to appease
he meant the best he could, and his trauell came to good effect: for he did so much, that
as well the king as the lords departed from the councell as freends, the lords taking their
leaues of him in louing maner, and he courteouslie bidding them farewell: and so each
of them resorted vnto their homes well pleased for that present. ¶ The king held his
Christmasse this yéere at Woodstoke, and the duke of Lancaster laie at his castell of
Hertford.
The earle of Penbroke as he was learning to iust is wounded to death.
At the same time the lord Iohn de Hastings earle of Penbroke, as he was practising to
learne to iust, through mishap was striken about the priuie parts, by a knight called sir
Iohn S. Iohn, that ran against him, so as his inner parts being perished, death presentlie
followed. The losse of this earle was greatlie bemoned by men of all degrees, for
he was liberall, gentle, humble, and courteous to each one, aboue all the other yoong
lords in the land of his time. Of this earles ancestors this is reported for a thing strange
and maruellous, that from the daies of Aimer de Valence earle of Penbroke, that was
one amongst other that sat in iudgement of Thomas earle of Lancaster, there was not
anie earle of Penbroke succéeding the same Aimer de Valence, vnto the daies of this
yoong earle by misfortune thus slaine, that euer saw his father, nor yet anie of their fathers
might reioise in the sight of anie of their sonnes, being still called hence, before the time
came for them so to doo.
Francis Thin, out of diuerse ancient monuments belonging to the Hastings and others.
¶ Now
héere, bicause this Iohn Hastings, being the last of that surname and armes of
the whole blood, which of that line inioied anie title of honor, I thinke it not vnfit for this
place (since other occasion will not be giuen therefore) to talke of the Hastings somwhat
higher than this man: though not from the shell to perpetuate the memorie of them, the
which I haue now doone, least otherwise by ingrate obliuion it might neuer hereafter come
to light. In which I will not begin from the first honourable Hastings, whose bloud by
manie descents continued, is thought by most ancient monuments, which I haue séene
and read, to haue béene a baron before the conquest in this land, and to haue borne the
same cote in the field, which this now slaine earle of Penbroke did: whereof hereafter in
my descriptions and lines of the earles of Penbroke I will make more ample discourse in a |801|
new booke (if God giue good successe therein) onelie at this time making some small repetition
from that Henrie Hastings, from whome the Hastings (in respect of the mariage
of Alda daughter to Dauie earle of Huntington, brother to William king of Scots) did
descend: who (amongst others) in the reigne of Edward the first, made title to the kingdome
of Scotland. The originall of which name in this treatise I will neither flatteringlie
defend, nor obstinatlie reiect, to haue growne from Hastings the Dane, who in the reigne
of Alured (long before the conquest, about the yeare of our redemption 890) came with
Rollo into England, and for a certeine space infested this nation, departing aside to France.
And now to the purpose.
Henrie lord Hastings (who bare for his armes gold a manche gules) married Alda (or
Ada) the fourth daughter of Dauid earle of Huntington, she being one of the heires to
to Iohn Scot earle of Chester, & of Huntington (which died without issue) son of the
said Dauid, and brother to the said Ada. To this Henrie and Ada did Henrie the third
king of England, in the two & twentith of his reigne (in place of the portion of hir brothers
lands, which should haue descended to hir as parcell of the earledome of Chester,
for that the king would not haue the said earledome diuided amongst distaues) giue in exchange
certeine lands mentioned in this déed following.
Strattondale.
OMNIBUS, ad quos, &c; salutem. Sciatis quòd concessimus pro nobis & hæredibus nostris, Henrico de Hastings, & Adæ vxori eius, pro rationabili parte sua, quæ prædictam Adam contingent, de hæreditate Iohannis quondam comitis Cestriæ fratris ipsius Adæ in Cestershire, faciedo eis rationabile excambium, ad valentiam prædictæ partis ipsam Adam contingentis de prædicto com. Cestershire. Et ad maiorem securitatem cōcessimus eidem Henrico & Adæ manerium nostrum de Bremesgraue cum pertinentibus in comitatu Wigorniæ, manerium nostrum de Bolisoure cum castris & pertinentibus in com. Derby, manerium nostrum de Mountesfeld cum Soka cū pertinentibus in comitatu Notingham, manerium de Worsfeld cum pertinentibus in com. Salop. manerium de Stratton cum pertinentibus in eodem com. manerium de Wiggutton cum pertinent in com. Stafford, & maneriū de Woluerhamton cū pert. in eodē com. in tenentiam. Tenendum eisdem Henrico & Adæ & hæredibus ipsius Adæ, quo vsq; prædicta pars ipsam Adam contingens & de prædicta hæreditate extenta fuerit, & rationabile excambium in prædictis terris vel alias eis assignauerimus. In cuius, &c. Teste rege apud Ditton 11. Innij, anno regni nostri 22.
The which manours the said Henrie and Ada did hold during the life of the said Ada,
in peaceable and quiet possession. After hir death the said Henrie goeth into Gascoigne,
where he remained steward vntill the comming of Henrie the third, at what time the said
Henrie surrendered his office, but the king importunate with him still to reteine the same,
he flatlie denied it, and would no longer remaine there, suddenlie returning into England
without licence or knowledge of the king, for which contempt the king greeuouslie incensed,
in reuenge and for satisfaction of the same, made the same lands to be extended
by Thomas Paslew and others, who by the kings processe extended part thereof to a
treble value, after which extent returned into the chancerie, the king seized the manour
of Bremesgraue, Bolesoure, Strattondale in Norton, & left in his hands the manours of
Lierton, Oswardbecke, Cundoner, Wourfeld, and Wigutton, whereof the said Henrie
died seized. Two yeares before which grant of the lands before said to this Henrie, to
wit, in the twentith yeare of Henrie the third, the said Henrie Hastings made his petition
to serue in the pantrée (as he was bound by tenure) at the coronation of euerie prince, |802|
the record whereof in the ancient written booke of the earls of Huntington, is in these
words following.
VICESIMO Henr. tertij quo coronata fuit regina Elionara filia Hugonis comitis Prouinciæ apud Westm. factæ sunt contentiones magnæ de seruitijs ministralibus, & de iuribus pertinentibus ad eorum ministeria, sed respectuatur, iuribus singulis saluis, vt tumultus requiesceret vsq; ad quindena Paschæ sequetis, &c. Et Henricus de Hastinges, cuius officium seruiendi de mappis à veteri vendicauit officiū illud, & habuit. Nam quamuis Thurstanus vendicauit officium illud, asserens suum esse debere à veteri, tamen rex repulsat, & admisit Henricum de Hastinges, ea die assignans eisdem diem de contentione finienda ad prædictum terminum. Extractas verò post prandium mappas tanquam suas ad officium pertinentes recepit.
This
Henrie had by Ada his wife, his sonne & heire Henrie Hastings, from whome Buchanan
dooth saie that Henrie Hastings now earle of Penbroke is descended, whereof I
will not now heere dispute.
Henrie Hastings knight, sonne of Henrie, after the death of his father, finding himselfe
greeued that the inheritance, which should haue descended vnto him from his mother,
was so withholden from him for the offense of his father, contrarie to law and iustice,
and without iudgement, but by the kings power, pursued a bill against the king, therby
to haue remedie and restitution, for the supposed false returne of the extent which was
made against his father; and vpon the same bill, this Henrie Hastings obteined a new
writ to make a fresh extent directed to maister Thomas of Wimundham, Robert de la
Laie, Robert de Solham, Hugh Peeche, & Thomas de Braie, to vnderstand if the remnant
of the lands to him descended, beside that by the king extended, would counteruaile
the value of such lands as he should haue by descent from and of the earle and earledome
of Chester, which matter neuer being ended in his time, was afterward prosecuted
of the Hastings from parlement to parlement, vntil the thirtie fourth yeare of Edward the
first, as more plainelie shall after appeare. Of this Henrie, Hollingshed intreateth much
in the reigne of Henrie the third: this man (being he that in the time of Edward the first,
made title to the crowne of Scotland) maried Ione one of the daughters of William Cantulpe
lord of Aburgauenie, in the right of Eua, one of the daughters and heires of William
Bewsa or Brewcusa, for I find both written, of which Ione this Henrie had issue Iohn
Hastings his sonne and heire, Edmund which maried Isabell, & had great possessions in
Wales: Ada first maried to Robert de Champane: Lora maried to sir Thomas the sonne
of sir Iohn de Latimer, and Ione which was a nun at Nottingham.
Iohn Hastings knight, sonne of the last Henrie, was borne at Asleghe, in the yéere of our Lord 1262, and in the six & fortith yeare of the reigne of Henrie the third. This man after his fathers death did (in the yeare of our Lord 1274, and the second yeare of the reigne of Edward the first, being the kings ward) demand the execution of his office of the pantrie, at the coronation of queene Elianor wife to Edward the first, but could not execute the same by reason of his nonage, and also for that he was in ward to the said king. After, when he was growne to full yeares, there arose in the yeare of our Lord 1305, and in the thirtie third yeare of the reigne of Edward the first, great contention betweene Antonie Beake bishop of Durham, this Iohn Hastings, Iohn Balioll, and Robert Bruse, for the manors of Penrith, Castlesoure, Salgkill regis, Lange Worthbie, Carlaton, and of Werkine Tinehale, whereof Henrie king of Scots (kinsman of the said Robert Bruse, Iohn Balioll, and Iohn Hastings, whose heire they were) died seized in his demesne of fee. In which sutes after manie delaies made, and manie summons |803| against the said bishop, the plée went without daie, bicause the bishop must go to Rome. But after his returne the sute being reuiued and continued, it went once more without daie, bicause the king seized the same into his hands, and held it all the time of his reigne. These things thus doone, and Edward the first departed, this Iohn Hastings as yet not hastie to renew his sute of the land, but rather to execute his right of the pantrie, did in the first yeare of Edward the second, demand the executing of that office, at the coronation of the said Edward the second and Isabell his wife at Westminster, which he obteined, and laid the clothes and napkins in the great hall by him and other his knights, one the tables whereat the king, the quéene, and other great states should dine, which (according as I haue seene noted) was in this sort.
AD altam sedem ipsius regis tres mappas, & super alias mensas in eadem aula 28 mappas, vnde quælibet pecia continebat 4, & in parua aula coram regina, & alibi in ilia parua aula 14, quarū quælibet pecia continebat 3. Et dum fuerūt ad comestum, mappas per se & suos custodiebat, & post comestum illas trahebat, & deferre faciebat seruientes ad seruiendum, & istas cum suis loquelis habebat sine voluntate vel cum voluntate, & eas detinebat per totum festum coronationis, licèt petitæ erant deliberatione, primò à senescallo regis, postea ab ipso rege, per quod idem rex præcepit domino Willielmo Martin, & alijs senescallis suis, quòd plenam & celerem iusticiam ei facerent, & deliberationem de mappis prædictis si fuerit faciendum. Qui inde postea nihil facere voluerunt, aut non curauerunt toto festo coronationis prædictæ, nec postea in congregationibus. Per quod postea dominus Iohannes de Hastings fecit petitiones suas domino regi, & concilio suo, quòd feodum suum mapparum prædictarum ei deliberaretur, pro vt ei de iure fuerit deliberandum. Et quòd fecit seruitium suum debito modo, prout antecessor suus fecit longo tempore Henrici regis, quando habuit feodum suum, tempore quādo desponsauit Elionaram filiam comitis Prouinciæ, tanquam pertinens ad manerium suum de Asheley in comitatu North. pro vt patet in Memorandum ipsius regis in camero suo de scaccario diuersis locis in istis verbis.
* Williame de Hastinges tient demye fee de chiualer in Asheley du roy a fayre le seruice per seriante deestree panetre le roye, which is found in the fourth leafe of Chester beginning, Le counte Roger le Bigot, in the title of eschetes of seriantie in the countie of Northfolke. Touching which it is thus further found in the same place. * Henrie de Hastings tient en Asheley du roye per sergiante de la panetre, fo. Syesme. * Henrie de Hastings tient vn seriante de la panetre le roy en Ashelty, & vaute per an. C. sol. fol. 9. * Williame de Hastings tient vn fee de chiualer en Asheley seriante deestree despenser en le despens. le roy. fo. 4. * Henrie de Hastings tient vn terr en la ville de Asheley per le seruice deestree le despenser.
Which petitions and all other petitions for his part of his land in the kings hands, by the censure made in the time of Henrie the 3, the said Iohn Hastings lord of Aburgauennie did pursue from parlement to parlement, vntill the parlement holden at Yorke after Michaelmas, where supplication was made to the king, by him and others, that he might remaine with the king in Gascoigne, as his steward or marshall: which if he would performe, all his forsaid petitions and all other petitions which were reasonable, should be granted vnto him. By occasion whereof he granted vnto the kings and the nobles request: so that the king would find him pledges due therefore, and that he might obteine iustice in his inheritances, and those his lawfull sutes, which had beene hitherto denied vnto him, which thing the king faithfullie promised in euerie respect to be performed towards him: |804| wherevpon he sailed into Gascoigne, in the yeare of Christ 1302, being the 31 of Edward the first, the wednesdaie after the feast of S. Lucie. But for this faire shew, it séemeth he sped neuer the better: for which cause not being restored in the 34 yeare of Edward the first, he pursued his sute afresh, and had from the king at Yorke this definitiue sentence, deliuered by the mouth of Walter Langhton, then the kings treasuror (as I find by such notes as I haue séene) that he should séeke the records of the chancerie, and bring them to the next parlement, which the said Iohn did. At what time he brought foorth the former grant of Henrie the third, of the said lands giuen in recompense of his part of the earledome of Chester. After which yet it was agréed by the king and his councell for diuerse considerations (and mostlie (as I suppose) because he had refused to serue in Gascoigne, and onelie went as it were inforced) notwithstanding all that the said Iohn could alledge, that he should take nothing for his petition, but further to be in the kings mercie for his false claime: the whole processe whereof I haue seene in an ancient written monument of French. All which (as I gather) was done in the life of Edward the first (notwithstanding that I haue a little vnorderlie before treated of the executing of his office of the pantrie at the coronation of Edward the second, sonne to Edward the first) as may be confirmed by Piers Longtoft in these verses:
Et pour peril escheuer toutz apres promist
Ke Iean de Hastin cheualiere lit
Emerie de la Bret barone ne pas petit
Alant in Gascoigne touz sans contredit
Pour la terme attendue del trevis auant dit.
Registrum comitum de Huntington.
This Iohn married two wiues both called Isabell, whereof the first was Isabell
de Valence one of the daughters and heirs of William Valence earle of Penbroke
& lord of Aburgauennie, but how the said Wil. Valence came to the honor of
Aburgauennie, since William Cantelupe before named was once lord thereof, and
much about that time, I can not yet certeinlie learne. But yet I following good
authoritie haue set downe this Valence to be lord of Aburgauennie, & that he gaue
the same to one Iohn Hastings, which must néeds be this man, marieng his daughter.
The other wife of this Iohn Hastings, was Isabell the daughter of Hugh Spenser earle of
Winchester. By his first wife he had six children, to wit, Iohn Hastings his heire, William
Hastings that maried Elianor the daughter of sir William Martin, which died without
heires; Henrie Hastings that was a clerke, and Elizabeth Hastings maried to Roger
Greie lord of Ruthine sonne of sir Iohn Greie, of whom is descended Henrie earle of
Kent now liuing. Ione maried to Edmund Mortimer, by whom she had no issue, being
after maried to William de Huntingfield, by whome she had Roger de Huntingfield; and
Margaret Hastings maried to William the sonne of William Martin lord of Kemmies. By
Isabell Spenser his second wife, he had thrée children, to wit, Hugh Hastings lord of
Folliot, of whome shall be more intreated, when we come to the last Iohn Hastings erle
of Penbroke slaine at tilt, as before. Thomas Hastings, and Pelagia de Huntington.
His first wife Isabell Valence died 1305, being the 31 of Edward the first, and was buried
at the frier minors in Couentrie. His second wife ouerliuing hir husband, was after
maried to sir Rafe Monthermer, for which mariage the said Rafe was fined by Edward the
second at a thousand marks, as appeareth in the rols of the chancerie of 13 of Edward
the second: she died the 9 of Edward the third, & was buried in the frier minors of Salisburie.
This Iohn Hastings departed this life 1313, the sixt yeare of the reigne of Edward
the second.
Iohn Hastings lord Hastings and Aburgauennie, was borne in the fiftéenth yeare of Edward the first, in the yeare of Christ 1287. For at the death of his father, which happened (as before) in the sixt yeare of Edward the second, he was found to be of the age of six & twentie years, which if it be added to the yeare of our Lord 1287, make vp the full number of 1313, in which his father died. This man in the eight yeare of Edward the second at the parlement holden at London in the Carmelite friers, being about the yeare |805| from the birth of Christ 1314, renewing the sute to the king (after the death of Antonie Beke bishop of Durham, which happened in the yeare of our Lord 1310) for the lands, whereof his father had the said bishop in sute, and which were after seized into the kings hands, as before appeareth, in the life of his father. It was then found vpon search, that sir Iohn Ballioll (who was partie to the said sute before) had the realme of Scotland by award: by reason of certeine lands that he gaue to sir Antonie de Beke the bishop of Durham: for which cause it séemed king Edward the first seized the same lands into his hands as forfeit to him, in that they were after the maner of a bribe giuen to the said bishop, to support the sute of the said Iohn Balioll for the obteining of the crowne of Scotland. And for that cause this Iohn Hastings was counselled by such as willed him well, that he should surceasse his sute, and so he did. This Iohn Hastings maried Iulian the daughter of Thomas lord Leiburne the sonne of William lord Leiburne, and had by hir Laurence de Hastings: after which this Iohn Hastings died in the eightéenth yeare of Edward the second, and in the yeare of our Lord 1325. His wife Iulian liued manie yeers after, and surrendred hir life in the fortie one yeare of Edward the third, and in the yeare of our Lord 1366.
Laurence Hastings lord Hastings and Aburgauennie, was also afterward earle of Penbroke, he was borne about the thirtéenth yeare of Edward the second, being also about the yeare of our redemption 1320: which is proued by this, that the said Laurence was fiue yeares old at the death of his father, which (as before is said) happened in the yeare 1325, and in the eightéenth of Edward the second, at what time he was seized as the kings ward, and committed to the gouernement of tutors, appointed him by the said Edward the second. This Laurence Hastings for the nobilitie of his race, the actiuitie of him selfe, the largenesse of his possessions, and his familiaritie with the king, was created earle of Penbroke, about the one and thirtith yeare of the reigne of king Edward the third. He maried Anne or Agnes the third daughter of sir Roger Mortimer the first earle of March, by whom he had issue Iohn Hastings.
Iohn Hastings earle of Penbroke lord Hastings Aburgauennie and Weifford in Ireland, the sonne of Laurence Hastings the first earle of Penbroke of that name, did in the fortie one yeare of Edward the third, being about the yeare of our Lord 1369, infeoffe diuerse persons of the manor of Lidgate in Suffolke, of which towne was Iohn Lidgate the monke of Berie and famous poet of England surnamed. After which in the fortie six yeare of Edward the third, and in the yeare of our Lord 1371, when the Frenchmen besieged Rochell, he was sent with an armie of men to the rescue of the same. But being set vpon by the Spanish nauie in the hauen of Rochell, they slue and tooke manie of the English, burnt their nauie, and caried the earle with sundrie other prisoners into Spaine; where this earle a long time remained prisoner. Which misfortune was iustlie supposed to haue fallen vpon him, because he was a man of euill life, giuen greatlie to lecherie, an infringer of the liberties of the church, and a persuader of the king that he should (for his warres) more grieuouslie exact manie subsidies and contributions vpon the clergie than vpon the laitie. After that he had béene long prisoner in Spaine (by the space almost of three yeares) he was ransomed for a great summe of monie, by Bertram Cleikine, and died (as I coniecture by some sufficient proofe) betwéene Paris and Calis, as he came into England, in the fortie ninth yeare of Edward the third, in the yeare of our Lord 1374: so that he neuer fullie paied his ransome. He had two wiues, Margaret the daughter of Edward the third, & Anne the daughter of sir Walter Mannie and of Margaret Segraue made dutchesse of Northfolke in the time of Richard the second: but when he maried these wiues, I can not certeinlie find. And in the earle of Kents booke (which treateth of the contention of the Hastings and the Greies, for bearing of the armes of Hastings) there is no mention made (as farre as my memorie serueth) of the said Margaret; the reason whereof I suppose to be, for that this Iohn Hastings had no issue by hir: and that booke onelie serued to conueie a lineall descent from the Hastings |806| to intitle the Greies. This Iohn Hastings had by his second wife (Anne) a sonne called Iohn Hastings, which after succéeded his father in all his inheritances.
But before I saie anie more of the Hastings, I thinke it not amisse to giue some warning of an error in Polydor of Vrbin, writing that Anne the countesse of Penbroke (wife to this man, for none of the earles of Penbrokes had anie wife so named within the compasse of years wherein Polydor appointeth this time) descended of a noble house of S. Paule in France, a woman of great vertue, and a louer of learning and of learned men, founded a house in Cambridge, to this daie called Penbroke hall: which in truth was not builded by hir, but by Marie the wife of Odomare or Aimer de Valence earle of Penbroke, who was slaine at tilt in the one & twentie yeare of Edward the third, in the yeare of our Lord 1374: which was thirtie seauen yeares before the death of this Iohn Hastings earle of Penbroke: which Marie was in verie déede the daughter of Guie earle of S. Paule, the kinswoman of Edward the third, and a French woman. This woman being in one daie (& that the daie of hir mariage) a maid, a wife, & a widow (hir husband being that day slaine at tilt) did in hir widowhood (in the one & twentith yeare of Edward the 3, in the yeare of our Lord 1374) erect that house in Cambridge vpon hir owne ground, and appointed the same to be called the hall of Marie Valence, or Penbroke hall: by meanes whereof it was long after called Aula Valentiæ Mariæ.
Now to returne (where I left) to the last wife of this Iohn Hastings called Anne, she (after the death of hir husband) did at the coronation of Richard the second, in the yeare of Christ 1382, being about the fift yeare of the reigne of the said Richard, sue by petition to execute by hir deputie the office of the panteler, by reason of the manor of Ashley, which she had for hir iointure, whervnto she was admitted, & by hir deputie sir Thomas Blunt knight did performe the same: as this record dooth testifie, in which is set both hir petitions, and the iudgement thereof in this forme.
ITEM Anna quæ fuit vxor Iohannis Hastings nuper comes Penbrochiæ porrexit in curia quandam petitionem suam in hæc verba. A treshonore seigneur le due de Lancast. & senescall d’Angliter supplie Anne que fuit le femme Iohn de Hastinges nadgares countie de Penbroke, qui cōme le mannor de Asheley in le com. de Northfolke soit tenens de nostre seigneur le roy par le seruice de faire le office de napperie al coronement le roy, quel mannor soel tient en dower del dowement son dit baron. Ore plest luy accepter del faire son office person deputie, a cestie coronement nostre seigneur le roye, pernant les fees du dit office ceastascauoir les nappes quant il sont sustreytz. Et quia post ostensionem verisimilium euidentiarum & rationem ipsius Annæ, ac proclamationem in curia prædicta debitè factam, in hac parte nullus huiusmodi clamor ipsius Annæ contradixit: consideratum fuit quòd ipsa ad officium prædictum per sufficientem deputatum suum faciendum admitteretur, & sic officium illud per Thomam Blunt militem, quem ad hoc deputauit, dicto die coronationis in omnibus perfecit, & peracto prandio mappas de mensis subtractis pro feodo suo recepit.
Thus this much touching this Iohn Hastings earle of Penbroke and dame Anne Mannie his wife.
Iohn Hastings (the sonne of Iohn Hastings last recited) was earle of Penbroke lord Hastings Aburgauennie & Weisford, who being verie yoong at the time of his fathers death, was ward first to Edward the third, and then to Richard the second, but neuer saw his full age of one and twentie yeares, nor euer possessed the lands wherevnto he was borne: for not long after that he had married Philip the second daughter of Edmund Mortimer (earle of March Vlster and lord of Wigmore) he was [about the ninetenth yeare of his age, |807| the fiftéenth yeare of king Richard the second, and the yeare of our redemption 1391, being a youthfull and lustie yoong gentleman (but tender and slender) in the Christmasse time, when the K. held that feast at Woodstoke in Oxfordshire] willing to learne to iust, whervpon in the parke then incountring with a knight called Iohn saint Iohn (a valiant and stout person) he was slaine when they ran togither, as the said knight did cast his speare from him, and so the said earle receiuing this manner of death, no man knew whether it happened by mishap or of purpose. To which Iohn Hastings now slaine, Margaret Segraue duchesse of Northfolke his grandmother (by his mother the daughter of sir Walter Mannie) was executrix and disposer of all his substance. After his death, his widow the ladie Philip was married to Richard earle of Arundell, & after that to Iohn lord saint Iohn, being the same man (as I suppose) which slue hir first husband this Iohn Hastings. But here before the death of this Iohn I must not forget, that though he were within age at the coronation of Richard the second, as not being past nine or ten yeares old; he sued to execute at the said coronation, the offices which his ancestors had afore performed. But bicause his mother had the mannor of Ashley in dower (as is before expressed) he did not sue to serue in the pantrie, but leauing that, demandeth the carieng of the second sword and the golden spurs before the king. The records of both which I haue here set downe.
IOHANNES de Hastings nuper comes Penbrochiæ protulit quandam petitionē in hæc verba. A treshonoree seigniour le duc de Lancastre & seneschall d’Angleterre, Iohn fitz & heyre Iohn de Hastinges counte de Penbroke, que cōme il tient le Chastell de la ville de Tynbye, le grange de Kingswood, le cōmote de Craytrath, le mannor de Chastell Martin, & le mannor de Traygaire per seruice de porter le second espee deuant le roy a son coronement: qui pleast a luy, accepter a son dit office a faire ore a ceste coronement. Et super hoc Richardus comes Arundell & Surrey exhibuit in curia quandā aliam petitionē in hæc verba. A roy de Chastell & de Lion duc de Lancastre & senescall d’Angleterre, supplie Richard counte de Arundell & Surrey, de luy receuer a faire son office, a porter le second espee deuant le roy ore a son coronement, que luy appertient de droit pur le countie de Surrey. Quibus petitionibus intellectis & auditis, & hinc inde dictorum comitum rationibus, pro eo quòd dictus Iohannes comes Penbrochiæ (qui infra ætatē in custodia regis existit) ostendit curiæ meliores & verisimiliores rationes pro se, quàm prædictus comes Arundell pro ipso monstrauit. Dominus rex declarata coram eo materia prædicta, præcepit Edmundo comiti mariscallo, quòd ipse gladium prædictum ista vice in nomine iure prædicti comitis Penbrochiæ deferret, saluo iure alterius cuiuscunq;. Qui quidem mariscallus gladium ilium ex hac causa die coronationis gestabat calcaribus deauratis.
IOHANNES filius & hæres Iohannis de Hastings nuper comitis Pēbrochiæ exhibuit in curia quandam petitionem in hæc verba. A treshonore seigneur le roy de Chastell, &c. Et seneschall d’Anglterre, supplie Iohne fitz & heyre Iohne Hastings nadgares counte de Penbroke, de estre receue a son office de porter les grandes esperon, d’oores deuant le roy nostre seigneur ore a son coronement, en mannor cōme William le marischall son ancester les porta il coronoment de roy. Edw. audita & intellecta billa prædicta, pro eo quòd Iohannes est infra ætatem & in custodia domini regis, quanquam sufficientes ostendit curiæ recorda & euidētias, quòd ipse seruitium prædictum de iure facere deberet; |808| consideratum extitit, quòd esset ad voluntatem regis, quis dictum seruitium ista vice in iure ipsius Iohannis faceret. Et super hoc rex assignabat Edmundum comitē mariscallum, ad deferēdum dicto die coronationis prædicta calcaria in iure ipsius hæredis. Saluo iure alterius cuiuscunque, & sic idem comes mariscallus illa calcaria prædicta in dicto die coronationis coram ipso domino rege deferebat.
In this Iohn Hastings ended all the honorable titles of the Hastings, bicause this man dieng without issue, his inheritances were dispersed to diuerse persons; for the honour of Penbroke came to Francis at court by the kings gift, the baronies of Hastings and Weisford came to Reinold Greie of Ruthine, the baronie of Aburgauennie was granted to William Beauchampe of Bedford: for all which lands, and for the bearing of the armes of this same Iohn Hastings without difference, great contention grew betwéene sir Edward Hastings knight (descended of Isabell Spenser) and Reinold Greie lord Greie of Ruthine, sonne of Reinold Greie, sonne of Roger Greie, that married Elizabeth daughter of Isabell Valence, for both the said lord Greie and sir Edward Hastings were descended by two venters (as partlie before and partlie hereafter shalbe shewed) from one man Iohn Hastings, husband to both said Isabels. For the explanation whereof, and lineall descent to conueie the said sir Edward Hastings from the said sir Iohn Hastings, first lord of Aburgauennie of that surname; I must here repeat a little of that which I haue alreadie written: which is, that the said Iohn Hastings first lord of Aburgauennie, hauing two wiues, both Isabels, by his first wife Isabell Valence had Elizabeth maried to Roger Greie, and by his second wife Isabell Spenser, he had issue Hugh Hastings knight, from whome we are to deduce the said sir Edward Hastings in this sort. Hugh Hastings knight lord of Folliot (in the right of his wife) being sonne of the second wombe of Isabell Spenser, and Iohn Hastings sonne of Henrie Hastings married Margerie the daughter and heire of sir Richard Folliot, by whom he came to be lord of Folliot, and alwaies bare the armes of Hastings with a difference of a second brother of a second venter. This marriage was procured and made by Isabell his mother, who purchased the said ward for him. This Hugh died in the yeare of Christ 1347, in the one and twentith yeare of Edward the third, and was buried in the church of Elsing, in Elsrug in Northfolke which he builded; his wife Margerie died in the yeare 1349, being the thrée and twentith yeare of Edward the third, and was buried in the chappell of Fornewell. This Hugh had issue by his wife Hugh Hastings his heire, and a daughter married to sir Robert de la Mare.
Hugh Hastings knight, the sonne of Hugh and Margerie Folliot did marrie the daughter of Adam de Eueringham, by whom he had Hugh Hastings his sonne and heire, and two daughters, the one married to Winkfield, and the other to a knight called Elmham. This Hugh died at Calkewelhell or Gwines, and was buried in the friers of Doncaster, in the yeare of our Lord 1369, about the foure & fortith yéere of Edward the third. This man for him and his heires in difference from the other Hastings, earles of Penbroke his kinsmen by the halfe blood, did beare the Hastings armes with the labell, quartered with the armes of Folliot. Hugh Hastings knight the sonne of Hugh and Margaret Eueringham married Anne the daughter of Edward Spenser earle of Glocester, by whom he had issue Hugh Hastings and Edward Hastings, which contended with Reinold Greie lord of Ruthine. This Hugh tooke his pilgrimage to Ierusalem & died in Spaine, after whose death dame Anne Spenser his wife was maried to Thomas lord Morleie. Hugh Hastings eldest son of Hugh Hastings and dame Anne Spenser, married the daughter of sir Wil. Blunt knight; this Hugh died at Calis at the mariage of Richard the second, to Isabell the daughter of the king of France, about the 19 yeare of the reigne of the said Richard, being the yeare of our redemption 1395, who dieng without issue, all his right and title came to his brother Edward. |809|
Edward Hastings knight brother of the last Hugh began the contention with Reinold Greie lord of Ruthine, for the right of the lands, honors, and armes without difference of the last Iohn Hastings earle of Penbroke. This sute began about the eight yeare of Henrie the fourth, and continued at least vntill the fift yeare of Henrie the fift, if not longer; but in the end (notwithstanding manie false pedegrees counterfeited by this Hastings, and his vncle Henrie bishop of Norwich, one of the house of the Spensers) yet it was adiudged against the said sir Edward Hastings in the marshals court, that the lands, honors, and armes without difference, as the last Iohn Hastings earle of Penbroke did beare them, with the armes of William Valence earle of Penbroke, should be onelie borne by the said lord Greie of Ruthine and his heires, as being of the whole blood, and next heire to the said last Iohn Hastings earle of Penbroke, and that the said Edward Hastings should vtterlie be barred to beare the armes of Hastings, but quartered with the armes of Folliott, as onelie descending of the halfe blood of the said last earle of Penbroke of that name. And that all other pedegrees what so euer (except this) are false, and of purpose contriued, as appeareth by a notable booke and monument thereof remaining in the hands of Henrie Greie now earle of Kent (descended of the said Reinold Greie of Ruthine) conteining all the processe, examinations, witnesses, pedegrees & iudgements thereof, more plainelie maie appeare. In which contention there was shewed a matter by the deposition of sir William Hoo knight not vnworthie to be remembred (though it touch not the Hastings) concerning armorie and bearing of differences in armes, which was, that the said sir William said on his oth in the tenth yeare of Henrie the fourth, that before the times of Edward the third, the labell of three points was the different appropriat and appurtenant for the cognizance of the next heire; but the same king made his sons to beare the entire armes with labels of thrée points, with certeine differences in the said labels, to be knowen the one from the other, except his sonne the duke of Glocester, who bare a border about the armes of France and England. And thus, this much Francis Thin touching the name of Hastings.
The earle of Lancaster canonized for a saint.
A bill against wearing of badges.
No reteiners to weare badges.
An act against mediators for wilfull murderers.
In this yeare Thomas earle of Lancaster, for the opinion which had béene conceiued of
him, by reason of miracles and other respects, was canonized for a saint. The mondaie
next after the feast of saint Hilarie, a parlement was begun at Westminster, in which there
was a bill exhibited by the commons, that the lords and great men of the realme should
not giue to their men badges to weare as their cognizances; by reason that through the
abuse thereof, manie great oppressions, imbraseries, vnlawfull maintenances, and wrongs
were practised, to the hinderance of all good orders, lawes, and iustice. The lords would
not consent altogither to laie downe their badges; but yet they agreed that none should
weare any such cognizance except their seruants of houshold, and such as were in ordinarie
wages by the yeare. ¶ In the same parlement, certeine persons that had gone about some
new rebellion in Kent, being apprehended, were condemned, and so were drawne and
hanged. ¶ There was also an act made against such as should passe the seas, to purchase
prouisions (as they termed them) in any church or churches. And if any from thencefoorth
attempted so to doo, he should be reputed and taken as a rebell. Also there was
an act prouided against those that committed any wilfull murder, that none should presume
to sue for their pardon. A duke or an archbishop that so sued, should forfeit to the
king an hundred pounds. Likewise an earle or a bishop, an hundred marks, &c.
The duke of Lancaster made duke of Aquitaine.
Great tempest.
Great plague.
Great dearth.
Ab. Fl. out of Henrie Knighton canon of Leicester abbeie.
A roiall hunting.
Moreouer, in this parlement it was granted, that the king should haue of euerie sacke
of wooll fortie shillings, of the which ten shillings should be applied presentlie to the
kings vses, and thirtie shillings residue of the fourtie shillings should remaine in the hands
of the treasurors, towards the bearing forth of the charges of wars when any chanced. ¶
Also there was a subsidie granted of six pence in the pound, foure pence to the vse last
mentioned, and two pence to be imploied at the kings pleasure. In the same parlement,
Iohn duke of Lancaster was created duke of Aquitaine, receiuing at the kings hand the
rod and cap, as inuestures of that dignitie. Also the duke of Yorke his sonne and heire |810|
was created earle of Rutland. In the fift of March a sore and terrible wind rose, with
the violence whereof, much hurt was doone, houses ouerthrowne, cattell destroied, and
trees ouerturned. After this insued great mortalitie by pestilence, so that much youth
died euerie where, in cities and townes, in passing great numbers. Herewith followed a
great dearth of corne, so that a bushell of wheat in some places was sold at thirtéene
pence, which was thought to be at a great price. ¶ About the feast of S. Peter ad Vincula,
Iohn duke of Lancaster caused a great number of the nobles and péeres of the realme to
hunt at Leicester in the forrest and all the parkes there to him apperteining. On the
saturdaie the king and quéene were present, the archbishop of Yorke, the duke of Yorke,
Thomas Woodstoke duke of Glocester, the earle of Arundell Iohn of Holland, the earle
of Huntington, with other bishops, lords and ladies a great manie, and on thursdaie next
following the king departing from thence towards Notingham soiourned with the lord of
Beaumont besides Loughborrow.
A iournie against the Saracens.
The English archers good seruice.
In this thirtéenth yeare of king Richards reigne, the christians tooke in hand a iournie
against the Saracens of Barbarie, through sute of the Genowais, so that there went a
great number of lords, knights, and gentlemen of France and England, the duke of
Burbon being their generall. Out of England there went one Iohn de Beaufort bastard
son to the duke of Lancaster (as Froissard hath noted) also sir Iohn Russell, sir Iohn
Butler and others. They set forward in the latter end of this thirtéenth yeare, and came
to Genoa, where they remained not long, but that the gallies and other vessels of the
Genowais were readie to passe them ouer into Barbarie. And so about Midsummer in
the beginning of the fourteenth yeare of this kings reigne, the whole armie being embarked,
sailed foorth to the coasts of Barbarie, where neare to the citie of Affrike they landed, at
which instant the English archers (as some write) stood all the companie in good stead,
with their long bowes, beating backe the enimies from the shore, which came downe to
resist their landing.
Thom. Wals.
The earle of Derbie his exploits in his iournie against the infidels of Prutzenland.
After they had got to land, they inuironed the citie of Affrike, (called by the moores
Mahemedia) with a strong siege: but at length constrained with the intemperancie of the
scalding aire in that hot countrie, bréeding in the armie sundrie diseases, they fell to a composition
vpon certeine articles to be performed in the behalfe of the Saracens, and so 61
daies after their first arriuall there, they tooke the seas againe, & returned home, as in the
histories of France and Italie is likewise expressed. Where, by Polydor Virgil it may
séeme, that the lord Henrie of Lancaster earle of Derbie, should be capteine of the English
men, that (as before ye haue heard) went into Barbarie with the Frenchmen, and
Genowais. It should otherwise appeare by other writers, who affirme that the said earle
made a iournie in deed the same time against the miscreants, not into Barbarie, but into
Prutzenland, where he shewed good proofe of his noble and valiant courage: for ioining
with the masters and knights of the Dutch order there, the armie of the Lithuanians
that came against the said order was vanquished, and foure chiefe leaders of the Lithuanians
were taken prisoners, thrée other being slaine, with thrée hundred of their chiefest
and best approoued soldiers. Through the policie also and worthie manhood of the
earle of Derbie, there was a certeine citie taken, where the said earle and his men first
entring vpon the walles, did set vp his banner: other being slouthfull, or at the least
vnskilfull how to deale in such exploits. There were taken and slaine foure thousand of
the common people, and amongst them that were found dead, the king of Polognies
brother was one. The castell of the same citie was besieged fiue weekes space: but by
reason of sickenesse and such infirmities as chanced in the armie, the masters of Prutzen,
and Lifeland would not tarie any longer, but breake vp their siege and returned. The
master of Lifeland led with him into his countrie thrée thousand prisoners.
A roiall iusts holden in Smithfield at London.
The manner of the iusts in Smithfield.
Siluer saith Froissard.
In the meane time, whilest the christians were thus occupied, as well against the infidels
Barbarie, as in the east parts towards Littawe, a roiall iusts and martiall turnament
was proclaimed to be holden within Smithfield in London, to begin on sundaie
next after |811|
the feast of saint Michaell. And bicause this triumphant pastime was published, not onelie
in England, but also in Scotland, in Almaine, in Flanders, in Brabant, in Heinault, &
in France, manie strangers came hither foorth of diuerse countries, namelie Valeran erle
of saint Paule, that had married king Richards sister the ladie Mauld de Courtnie, and
William the yoong erle of Osteruant, sonne to Albert de Bauiere earle of Holland and
Heinault.
At the daie appointed, when all things were prepared there issued foorth of
the tower about thrée of the clocke in the after noone sixtie coursers apparelled for the
iustes, and vpon euerie one an esquier of honor, riding a soft pace. Then came foorth
foure and twentie ladies of honour (three score saith Froissard) mounted on palfries,
riding on the one side richlie apparelled, and euerie ladie led a knight with a chaine of
gold.
Those knights being on the kings part, had their armor and apparell garnished
with white hearts and crownes of gold about their necks, and so they came riding through
the stréets of London vnto Smithfield, with a great number of trumpets and other instruments
before them.
The king kept opē household in the bishop of London his palace by Paules church. The K. festeth the strangers.
The duke of Lancaster feasteth the strangers.
The king and the queene, with manie other great states were readie placed in chambers
richlie adorned to see the iusts: and when the ladies that led the knights, were come to
the place, they were taken downe from their palfries, and went vp into chambers readie prepared
for them. Then alighted the esquires of honor from their coursers, & the knights
in good order mounted vpon them. And so when their helmets were set on their heads,
and that they were redie in all points, after proclamations made by the heraults, the iusts
began, and manie commendable courses were run, to the great pleasure, comfort, and
recreation of the king, the quéene, and all other the beholders. The prise that daie on the
answerers part was giuen to the earle of saint Paule; and on the chalengers side, to the
earle of Huntington. On the mondaie, the king himselfe, with dukes, earls, lords, and
knights, came to the iusts, he being cheefe of the inner part. That daie the prise was
giuen to the erle of Osteruant, for the best dooer of the vtter part: and of the inner part,
to a knight of England called sir Hugh Spenser. On the tuesdaie, all manner of esquiers
iusted, and likewise on the wednesday all maner of knights and esquires that would, on
which daie was a sore and rude iusts, enduring till night. And so manie a noble course
and other martiall feats were atchiued in those foure daies, to the great contentation and
pleasure of manie a yoong batcheler desirous to win fame, & also highlie to the kings
honour, who by all that season held his court in the bishops palace by Paules church,
kéeping open houshold for all honest persons that thither resorted, especiallie euerie
night after the iusts were ended, a right sumptuous and princelie supper was prepared
for the strangers and other, and after supper, the time was spent in dansing and reuelling
after the most courtlike maner. On the thursdaie, the king made a supper to all
the lords, knights, and gentlemen strangers, and the quéene to all the ladies and gentlewomen.
On the fridaie the duke of Lancaster feasted at dinner all the said lords,
knights, and gentlemen strangers, in most sumptuous and plentifull maner. On the
saturdaie, the king and all the whole companie departed from London vnto Windsore,
where new feasting began, and speciallie the king did all the honour that might be deuised
vnto the earls of saint Paule and Osteruant. The earle of Osteruant, at the earnest
request of the king, receiued of him the order of the Garter, for the which he was euill
thought of afterwards by his freends, namelie the French king and others. Finallie,
after the king had thus feasted the strangers and others at Windsore, each man tooke
leaue of the king, the queene, and the kings vncles, and other lords and ladies, and so
departed, the strangers into their owne countries, and other home to their houses, or
whither they thought best.
Abr. Fl. out of Angl. præl. sub. Rich.2.
* Smithfield. *
¶ This
solemne iusts or tornement being touched, or rather in ample maner described
by Ch. Okland, is reported of him to haue béene kept for actiuitie sake, and to set the
youth & lustie blouds of the court on worke, who otherwise (bicause the king was yong
and loued to liue in peace and ease, feats of armes and warlike prowesse
both abroad and |812|
at home languished and laie as it were a fainting) through idlenesse and want of exercise,
degenerating and growing out of kind from their woonted warlike valiantnesse, should
giue themselues to filthie lecherie, riot, sléepe, loitering pastimes, and slouthfulnesse, all
which doo greatlie impaire prowesse. Wherevpon (saith he)
Rege priùs de re consulto, ludicra diri
Martis opus simulatum inter se bella mouebant,
Atq; dies totos viginti quattuor hastis
Assumptis, studio statuunt decurrere fixo.
Deinde idem numerus procerum pars prima lacessens
Mittit ad externas gentes qui talia pandant.
Ludus ab Angligenis mense exercebitur vno
Hasticus. Vrbi hærens * fabrorum dictus * agellus
Extra Londini muros, spatiosus & amplus
Est locus: hîc stadium cursuris, certáq; meta
Ponitur, huc veniant quacúnq; ex gente creati
Sanguine magnorum heroum. Certamine victor
Qui fuerit, terris prosternens corpora plura,
Aut plures hastas frangens, donabitur auri
Multa vi, capiet quàm plurima ditia dona
Præmia virtutis, Richardo hæc dante brabæa, &c.
Hauing thus described the place where the iusts should be kept, with the rewards, and
other circumstances; he toucheth the countries from whence the forren nobilitie came,
that should vndertake triall of chiualrie with these foure and twentie challengers: who at
the daie appointed (saith he) came pransing out of the Towre vpon their great barded
horsses through the broad streets, and their ladies of honor with them gorgiouslie decked
with bracelets, owches, cheines, iewels, spangles, and verie sumptuous attire: a goodlie
sight for the people to behold. At last, when they were come to Smithfield, and althings
readie, the trumpets sounded to the exercise; and both parties, as well the English as
the outlandish cheualiers ran togither, and tried their strengths till they did sweat and
were tired, their horsses panting and braieng with the violence of their bodilie motion;
their staues being crasht in sunder, flue vp into the aire, and the broken stocke or
stumpe hitting the aduersarie ouerthrew him to the ground: the beholders with ioy of
heart gaue a shout thereat, as greatlie delighted with the sight. Then came the night and
brake off the first daies tornement. On the next daie when they should renew and fall
afresh vnto it againe, they shewed themselues in courage equall to their ancestors, and
handled their matters so well that they got them great renowme. The third daie came,
and the multitude of people still gathered togither woondered at the right valiant deeds
of the valorous horssemen, how they did tosse, hoisse vp, and wind their speares, and
with what force they vsed their armes, what courage appeared in their statelie horsses, and
how the verie heauens rang with the ratling of their armor, and the strokes giuen to and
fro. Euerie daie brought with it his portion of pleasure, both to the contenders, and to
the beholders. When the time was expired of this tried chiualrie, necessarie occasion
mooued the king of England to set his mind on other matters, so that commending the
prowesse of the outlandish lords, he bestowed vpon them massie cheines of gold, & loding
them with other gifts of great valure, dismissed them into their countries. But the English
challengers required nothing but renowme for their reward, being allured onelie with
the loue of praise; and thus when these pastimes of chiualrie were quite ended, euerie
man got him home to his owne house. Thus farre Christopher Okland, touching the
description of this Hippomachia ludicra inter concertatores Anglos & externos.
Thom. Wals.
Ambassadors from the French king for a perpetual peace. Froissard.
A proclamatiō that all English beneficed men in Rome should returne into England.
Ambassadors were sent from the French king, vnto the king of England, to make an
ouerture of peace to be had, and to indure for euer betwixt the two realmes of England
and France, sith that by warre it was apparant inough, that neither realme,
could greatlie |813|
benefit it selfe,
but rather sore indamage either other, as afore time it had come apparantlie
to passe. Therefore the matter being well considered, both parts séemed well
affected towards some good conclusion by treatie to be had of a full and perfect peace.
About the same time, by the king with the aduise of his councell, proclamation was made
and published at London, that all beneficed men abiding in the court of Rome, being
Englishmen borne, should returne home into England before the feast of S. Nicholas,
vnder paine to forfeit all their benefices; and such as were not beneficed, vnder a paine
likewise limited. The Englishmen hearing such a thunder clap a farre off, fearing the
blow, left the popes court, and returned into their natiue soile.
The pope sendeth his nuncio to king Richard.
The pope troubled with such a rumbling noise, sent in all hast an abbat as his nuncio
vnto the king of England, as well to vnderstand the causes of this proclamation, as of
statutes deuised and made latelie in parlement against those that prouided themselues of
benefices in the court of Rome by the popes buls, which séemed not a little preiudiciall
to the church of Rome: in consideration whereof the said nuncio required that the same
statutes might be repealed and abolished, so farre as they tended to the derogation of the
church liberties: but if the same statutes were not abolished, the pope might not (said
his nuncio) with a safe conscience otherwise doo than procéed against them that made
those statutes, in such order as the canons did appoint. Moreouer the said nuncio declared
to the king certeine dangerous practises betwixt the antipape and the French king;
as to make the duke of Touraine the French kings brother king of Tuscane and Lombardie,
and to establish the duke of Aniou in the kingdome of Sicile.
The popes nuncio openeth to the king the Frēch kings priuie practises.
Nuncio.
Moreouer, he gaue the king to vnderstand, that if the French king might compasse by
the antipapes meanes to be chosen emperour, he would seeke to vsurpe vpon ech mans
right, and therefore it stood the king of England chieflie in hand to prouide against such
practises in time. And as for the treatie of peace which the Frenchmen séemed so much
to fauour, it was to none other end, but that vpon agreement once had, they might
more conuenientlie compasse their purpose in the premisses.
Furthermore the nuncio
earnestlie besought the king of aid in the popes behalfe against the French king, if (as he
threatned to doo) he should inuade him in Italie with open force. The king séemed to
giue fauourable eare vnto the nuncio, and after aduise taken, appointed to staie till
after Michaelmasse, at what time a parlement was appointed to be assembled, wherein
such things as he had proponed should be weied and considered, and some conclusion
taken therein.
Abr. Fl. out of Henrie Knighton canon of Leicester abbeie.
A sore bridle for the clergie.
About this time or in the yeare 1391, according to Henrie Knightons account, there
was a prophane statute made against the church & churchmen; namelie, that no ecclesiastical
person or persons should possesse manors, glebeland, houses, possessions, lands,
reuenues or rents whatsoeuer, at the hands of the feoffer, without the kings licence & the
chiefe lords. And this statute extended it selfe, as well to parish churches, chappels,
chanteries, as abbeies, priories, & other monasteries whatsoeuer: likewise to citizens of
cities, to farmers, & burgesses, hauing such rents or possessions for the common profit.
For men in those daies, that would bestow land or liuelod vpon church, fraternitie, or
conuent, and were not able for cost and charges to procure a mortmane, vnder the kings
licence and chiefe lords; were wont to feoffe some speciall men, in whom they had confidence
and trust; vnder whose name and title, churchmen, or anie other fraternitie or
conuent might inioy the profit of the gift, and might haue the commoditie thereof in possession.
And it was prouided by that statute, that all and euerie as well persons ecclesiasticall
as parishioners, both citizens, burgesses, and farmers, or anie other whatsoeuer,
hauing such rents, possessions, manors, or anie reuenues whatsoeuer, in the hands of such
feoffers, without the licence of the king and chiefe lords; that either they should obteine
and get a licence of the king and the chiefe lords to make it a mortmaine; or else
set such things to sale, & raise profit of them, on this side or before the feast of Michaelmasse
next insuing: or the said feast being past and expired, that then
the king and the |814|
chiefe lords, in things not ordered and disposed accordinglie, may enter and seize vpon
the same, and them haue and hold at his and their pleasure.
The duke of Glocester his iournie into Prutzen land.
The duke of Glocester in great fauor with the commons.
A great death in Yorke and sundrie other places.
About the same time, the duke of Glocester went into Prutzen land, to the great griefe
of the people, that made account of his departure, as if the sunne had beene taken from
the earth, doubting some mishap to follow to the common wealth by his absence, whose
presence they thought sufficient to stay all detriments that might chance, for in him the
hope of the commons onelie rested. In his returne home, he was sore tormented with
rough weather and tempestuous seas. At length he arriued in Northumberland, and
came to the castell of Tinmouth, as to a sanctuarie knowen to him of old, where after
he had refreshed him certeine daies, he tooke his iournie homewards to Plaschie in Essex,
bringing no small ioy for his safe returne to all the kingdome. ¶ On the ninth of Iulie
the sunne séemed darkened with certeine grosse and euill fauoured clouds comming betwixt
it and the earth, so as it appeared ruddie, but gaue no light from noone till the
setting thereof. And afterwards continuallie for the space of six weeks, about the middest
of the daie, clouds customablie rose, and sometimes they continued both daie and night,
not vanishing awaie at all. ¶ At the same time, such a mortalitie and death of people
increased in Northfolke, and in manie other countries of England, that it seemed not
vnlike the season of the great pestilence. In the citie of Yorke there died eleuen thousand
within a short space. ¶ Henrie Persie earle of Northumberland lieutenant of
Calis, was called home from that charge, and created warden of the marches against
Scotland, and Robert Mowbraie was sent to Calis to be the kings lieutenant
there.
A parlement at London.
Abr. Fl. out of Henrie Knighton canon of Leicester abbeie.
The duke of Lancaster ambassador for the king, right honorablie receiued into France.
Abr. Fl. out of Henrie Knighton canon of Leicester abbeie.
On friday next after All soules day, the parlement began at London, in which the
knights would in no wise agrée, that the statute made against spirituall men, for the prouiding
themselues of benefices in the court of Rome should be repealed:
but yet they
agréed thus much, that it should be tollerated, so as with the kings licence
such spirituallmen might purchase to themselues such benefices till the next parlement.
¶ In this parlement
aforsaid, there was granted vnto our lord the king one tenth of the clergie, and
one fiftéenth of the people towards the expenses of Iohn duke of Lancaster, who in Lent
next following went ouer into France to the citie of Amiens for a finall peace betweene
the kingdoms of England and France: where the king of France met him with a shew
of great pompe and honor, sending before him first of all to welcome him thither the
citizens of the same citie on horssebacke in a verie great number. Then afterwards, he
sent earles and barons a great manie to the same end, then his two vncles, last of all went
the king himselfe to meet him, and saluting him called him by the name of The most
worthie warrior of all christendome, the inuincible woorthinesse of the king onelie excepted.
And the duke had seauentéene daies (by couenant) to compasse this treatie of
peace: at last he returned, hauing attendant vpon him in his traine the bishop of Durham,
and the sonne of the duke of Yorke the earle of Rutland, with a thousand horssemen,
set foorth in a woonderfull sumptuous sort with goodlie furniture. ¶ Also conditionallie
a whole tenth and a whole fiftéenth were granted to him,
if it chanced that he made anie
iournie that yeare against the Scots. ¶ In this yeare, the duke of Gelderland sent to the
king of England letters of commendation & praise, wherein also were prouocations and
stirrings vp to warre and warlike actiuitie, and to the exercise of kinglie noblenesse, the
tenor whereof followeth:
MAGNIFICE princeps, innata vobis probitas, & prudentum consilia (vt opinamur) simul agerent in officium, quòd singula hæreditaria iura, quæ ex natalitio vestram magnificant regiam maiestatem, temporibus vestræ discretonis altissima prouidentia munirentur illæsa; et si quæuis oppugnaret violentia, clypeo militari studeat regalis industria |815| fortiter defendere sua iura. Et quòd vestram regiam personam cōtingamus in affinitate, ni vetet Deus ipse, quin semper parati erimus vobis in vestris iuribus defendendis assistere cum duobus milibus lancearū, quando & quotiens disponemini ad bellica conuolare. Nec perire debeant iura propter verba aut promissa, quomodolibet ad hoc laborat versutia Gallicorum. Sanè serenissime princeps in orbem volat fama, nec ambigitur quòd propter lanam & innumerabilia vestra singularia commoda, sine quibus non viuit oriens neque auster, regna singula in pecunijs vos salutant. In comparatione igitur ad alios reges vobis confert Deus ipse diuitias centuplatas. Probitas etiam militaris, & arcuum asperitas, sine pari, taliter huc vsque extulere gentem magnanimam occidentis, quòd timor non paruus vestros inuadit aduersarios; & ad hunc diem impariter victoriosè dimicauit cum Gallicis Angliæ gens austera. In pusillanimitate igitur (potentissime princeps) contra naturam non obdormeat cor leonis; sed & quales vobis contulit vires natura, ipsas applicare dignemini actibus bellicosis, in defensionem reipublicæ; iuris hæreditarij sustentationem, augmentúmque meriti, & incomparabiliter chronicabilem probitatem cordis magnanimi tanti regis.
MOST mightie prince, your roiall prowesse and the counsels of the sage, should altogither (as we thinke) moue you in dutie, by the most profound & deepe foresight of your discretion in time to maintaine and defend all and singular your rights & inheritance vnharmed, which by birth doo magnifie and make great your roiall maiestie, and if anie violence whatsoeuer gainstand and assault the same, your kinglie diligence should indeuor with the shield of a warrior valiantlie to defend your title and right. And bicause we are neere you, & doo as it were touch your roiall person in aliance, vnlesse God himselfe doo forbid and hinder vs, we will alwaies be readie in all your rights to assist and aid you with two thousand pikes, when and how often soeuer you shall be disposed to rush out to battell. Your right ought not to be lost for words and promises, howsoeuer the craftinesse of the French labor to this purpose. Trulie most excellent prince, your renowme doth flie into the world, neither is it doubted but for your wooll sake, and other your singular commodities being innumerable (without the which the east and the south can not liue) all realmes with their coines doo greet you. In comparison therefore of other kings God himselfe hath bestowed vpon you riches a hundred fold. Your warlike prowesse also, & the roughnesse of your bowes, being peerelesse, haue hitherto so extolled the couragious nation of the west, that no small feare dooth inuade your aduersaries; and to this day the sterne people of England haue (none like them) victoriouslie incountered with the French. Therefore ô most puissant prince, let not the hart of a lion sleepe in cowardlinesse against nature: but what force and valiantnesse nature hath giuen you, the same vouchsafe to put in practise with feats of armes in defense of your common wealth, the maintenance of your right by inheritance, the increase of your desert, and the peerelesse prowesse of so great a kings couragious hart right worthie to be chronicled.
The flix gotten by excessive feeding on fruits.
The lord maior of London commended for his carefull prouision of corne from beyond the seas in the time of dearth.
The price of corne that had continued at an high rate, almost for the space of two
yeares, began to fall immediatlie after haruest was got in, to the great reliefe of the poore,
which before through immoderate eating of nuts and apples, fell into the disease called
the flix, whereof manie died, and suerlie (as was thought) the death and dearth had
beene greater, if the commendable diligence of the lord maior of London had not béene,
in relieuing the commons by such prouision as he made for corne to be brought to London,
from the parties of beyond the seas, where otherwise neither had the countrie béene
able in anie thing to haue sufficed the citie, nor the citie the countrie.
H. Knighton |816|
referreth this scarsitie to the yeare 1390, and maketh a large discourse both of the miseries
which it brought with it, as also of the cause whereby it was procured, and of the notable
meanes whereby the same in most places was remedied.
Abr. Fl. out of Henrie Knighton canon of Leceister abbeie.
The cause of the scarsitie was not want of bread or corne.
Wooll sold dogcheape by the stone.
Prouision against scarsitie to relieue the poore.
O charitie of London!
In this yeare (saith he) was a great dearth in all parts of England, and this dearth or
scarsitie of corne began vnder the sickle, and lasted till the feast of saint Peter ad vincula,
to wit, till the time of new corne. This scarsitie did greatlie oppresse the people,
and chieflie the commoners of the poorer sort. For a man might sée infants and children
in stréets and houses, through hunger, howling, crieng, and crauing bread: whose mothers
had it not (God wot) to breake vnto them. But yet there was such plentie and abundance
of manie yeares before, that it was thought and spoken of manie housekéepers and
husbandmen, that if the séed were not sowen in the ground, which was hoorded vp and
stored in barnes, lofts, and garners, there would be inough to find and susteine all the
people by the space of fiue yeares following. But the cause of this penurie, was thought
to be the want of monie in a great manie. For monie in these daies was verie scant,
and
the principall cause hereof was, for that the wooll of the land lay a sléepe and hoong
heauie in some mens hands by the space of two yeares; and in others thrée yeares, without
a chapman. For it was enacted in a certeine parlement, that the merchants of England
should not passe out of the land with wooll and other merchandize, but should bring
the same vnto twelue places within the realme appointed for the same purpose, that the
merchants strangers might haue recourse thither with their commodities and so by exchange
should transport our merchandize for theirs. By meanes whereof the merchants
of England did forbeare to buy wooll and other wares vntil the next parlement insuing,
wherein it was granted them to traffike whither they would with their commodities.
In these daies wooll was dogcheape: for one stone of good wooll of the chosen and piked
sort, was sold for thrée shillings, and in Leicester and Kent at some times for two shillings
or two and twentie pence. This scarsitie of victuals was of greatest force in Leicester
shire, & in the middle parts of the realme. And although it was a great want,
yet was not the price of corne out of reason. For a quarter of wheat, when it was at
the highest, was sold at Leicester for 16 shillings 8 pence at one time, and at other times
for a marke or fourteene shillings: at London and other places of the land a quarter
of wheat was sold for ten shillings, or for litle more or lesse. For there arriued eleuen
ships laden with great plentie of victuals at diuerse places of the land,
for the reliefe of
the people. Besides this, the citizens of London laid out two thousand marks to buy
food out of the common chest of orphans: and the foure and twentie aldermen, euerie
of them put in his twentie pound a péece for necessarie prouision, for feare of famine,
likelie to fall vpon the citie. And they laid vp their store in sundrie of the fittest and
most conuenient places they could choose, that the néedie, and such as were wroong
with want, might come & buy at a certeine price so much as might suffice them and
their familie: and they which had not readie monie to paie downe presentlie in hand,
their word and credit was taken for a yeares space next following, and their turne serued.
Thus was prouision made that people should be relieued, and that none might perish
for hunger.
A dolphin taken at London bridge.
Ambassadors sent to the French king to treat of peace.
On Christmasse day, a dolphin that came foorth of the sea vp the Thames vnto
London-bridge, was espied of the citizens as he plaied in the water, and being followed
& pursued, with much adoo was taken. He was ten foot long, and a monstrous growne
fish, so as the sight of him was strange to manie that beheld him. He was thought by his
comming so farre into the landward, to foreshew such stormes and tempests as within a
wéeke after did raginglie follow.
Ye haue heard how the matter for a treatie of peace
had béene first broched by the French king, by sending ambassadors to the king of England,
to mooue the same.
Which motion being throughlie considered of the estates
assembled in this last parlement, it was decréed, that it should go forward (as before ye
haue heard) and so about Candlemasse, the lord Thomas Persie, sir
Lewes Clifford, and |817|
sir Robert Briquet, with diuerse other in their companie, were sent ouer to the French
king, and comming to Paris, found him lodgd in his house of Loure, where they declared
to him the good affection of the king their maister toward peace. And the better to bring
it to passe, they shewed that king Richards desire was to haue some place and time appointed
for commissioners to méet, with authoritie to treat and conclude vpon articles, as
should be thought expedient. The French king greatlie honored these ambassadors, in
feasting and banketting them for the space of six daies togither, and for answer, concluded
with them, that he himselfe, with his vncles and other of his councell, would be at
Amiens by the middest of March next insuing, there to abide the king of Englands comming,
and his vncles, if it should please them thither to come.
Sir Robert Briquet a Frenchman of king Richard his priuie chamber. The dukes of Lancaster & Yorke, the earls of Derbie and Huntington, the lord Thomas Persie, the bishops of Durham and London were sent ouer, as Froissard saith.
A roiall ambassage.
The duke of Lancaster, a prince of great renowne.
The English ambassadors said there was no doubt, but that either the king himselfe, or
his vncles shuld be there at the day assigned, with full authoritie to conclude anie agréement
that should seeme reasonable, and so those ambassadors returned with great gifts
presented on the kings behalfe to ech of them, sir Robert Briquet excepted, vnto whome
it séemed the French king bare no great good will, for that being a Frenchman borne, he
had euer serued the Nauarrois or Englishmen, and was now one of king Richards priuie
chamber. The king of England (as some write) was once minded to haue passed the
seas himselfe, to haue met the French king at Amiens, at the time appointed, but finallie
the duke of Lancaster, the bishop of Durham, and others, were sent thither with a traine
néere hand of a thousand horsses. At their comming into France, they were roiallie
receiued: for the French king had made no lesse preparation for the duke of Lancasters
comming, than if he had béene emperor. The duke of Lancaster verelie was estéemed
to be a verie mightie prince, and one of the wisest and sagest princes in all christendome,
in those daies; so that it séemed the French king reioised greatlie, that he might come
to haue conference with him. There were with the French king héere at Amiens, his
brother the duke of Thoureigne; his vncles, the dukes of Berrie, Burbon, and Burgognie,
& a great number of earles, lords, and other nobles of the realme of France. Before the
Englishmens comming, for auoiding of strife and debate that might arise betwixt the English
and French, a proclamation was set foorth conteining certeine articles, for the demeanor
which the French men should obserue towards the Englishmen.
The truce prolonged for a yeare. Thom. Wals.
Whilest they there remained, all the Englishmens charges were borne by the French
king, from their setting foorth from Calis, till they came backe thither againe. As touching
their treatie, manie things were proponed, diuerse demands made, and some offers,
though to small purpose, for they tooke not effect, insomuch as they departed without
concluding anie thing, further than that the truse which was to end at Midsummer next,
was prolonged to continue one yéere more, that in the meane time, the lords and estates
of the realme of England might assemble, and with good aduise deliberate, whether it
were more expedient to agrée vnto a determinate peace, or to pursue the doubtfull
chances of warre. And such was the end of that roiall ambassage, to the furnishing
foorth whereof, the king demanded an aid as well of the abbats and priors, as of the cities
and good townes through the whole realme.
A councell at Stamford.
The duke of Gelderland commeth into England.
The duke of Gelderland dissuadeth the king from peace with the French and Scots.
Anon after the returne of the duke of Lancaster, and other the ambassadors that had
béene at Amiens, a councell of the lords and chiefe states of the realme was called at
Stamford, the which (as if it had béene vnto a parlement) there came foorth of euerie
good towne certeine persons appointed to deliberate and take aduise in so weightie a
matter, as either to conclude vpon peace, or else vpon warre. But in the end they
brought little or nothing to passe, sauing that they agréed to haue the truce to indure for
twelue moneths longer: both kings sware to obserue the same, afore such as were
appointed to sée their othes receiued.
About the same time came the duke of Gelderland
into this realme, being the kings cousine, a right valiant and hardie gentleman: he
was honorablie receiued and welcomed of the king, and of his vncles, the dukes of Lancaster
and Glocester.
This duke of Gelderland counselled
the king not to conclude |818|
peace, either with the Frenchmen or Scots, except vpon such conditions as might be
knowne to be both profitable and honorable to him and his realme, promising that if he
had occasion to make warre against either of those two nations, he would be readie to
serue him with a conuenient power of men at armes of his countrie. After he had
béene here a time, and highlie feasted and banketted, aswell by the king as other great
estates of the realme, he returned home, not without diuerse rich gifts.
The Londoners refuse to lend the king a thousand pounds.
The king about this season sent to the Londoners, requesting to borrow of them the
summe of one thousand pounds, which they vncourteouslie refused to lend: and moreouer
they fell vpon an Italian or Lombard (as they termed him) whom they beat and
néere hand slue: bicause he offered to lend the king that monie. Whereof when the
king was aduertised, he was sore mooued against them, and calling togither the most part
of the péeres and noble men of his realme, declared vnto them the froward dealings of
the Londoners, complaining sore of such their presumption. The lords and great men,
séeming not greatlie to fauour the Londoners, gaue counsell that the insolent pride of
those presumptuous persons might with speed be repressed. The citizens of London in
those daies (as should appeare) vsing their authoritie to the vttermost, had deuised and
set foorth diuerse orders and constitutions to abridge the libertie of forreners that came
to the citie to vtter their commodites. Religious men that wrote the dooings of that age,
seemed also to find fault with them, for that they fauored Wicliffes opinions, & therefore
did charge them with infidelitie, and mainteining (I know not how) of Lollards &
heretikes: but howsoeuer the matter, went they fell at this present into the kings heauie
displeasure.
A great fire kindled about a little sparke.
A riot by the Londoners vpon the bishop of Salisburies men.
Some there be that write, how the king piked the first quarell against the maior and
shiriffes, for a riot committed by the vnrulie citizens, against the seruants of the bishop of
Salisburie: for that where one of the same bishops seruants had taken a horsse-lofe frō a
bakers man, as he passed by in Fléetstréet with his basket to serue his masters customers,
and would not deliuer it againe, but brake the bakers mans head, when he was earnest to
haue recouered the lofe, the inhabitants of the stréet rose, and would haue had the
bishops man to prison for breaking the kings peace: but he was rescued by his fellowes,
and escaped into Salisburie house,
that stood there within the allie, and as then belonged
to his master the bishop of Salisburie, being at that time high treasuror of England. The
people being set in a rage for the rescue so made, gathered togither in great multitudes
about the bishops palace gate, and would haue fetched out the offendor by force.
Walter Romane.
To conclude, such a hurling was in the stréet, that the maior, with the shiriffes, &
diuers aldermen came thither with all speed, to take order in the matter, and to sée the
peace kept; but after the cōming thither of the maior, the commons of the citie resorted
to the place in far greater numbers than before; and the more they were the worsse they
were to rule, and would not be persuaded to quiet themselues, except the bishops seruant,
whose name was Walter Romane, might be had out of the house, and committed to prison:
but at length, after manie assaults, lifts, & other indeuours made to haue broken vp
the gates of the house, the maior & aldermen, with other discréet commoners appeased
the people so, as they brought them to quiet, and sent euerie man to his house.
The bishop of Salisburie maketh a gréeuous cōplaint of the Londoners to the king.
The maior & shiriffes of London sent for to Windsore to the king, & there imprisoned.
The bishop was then at Windesor where the court laie, who being informed of this
matter, by a gréeuous report and happilie in worsse manner than the thing had happened
indeed, tooke such indignation therewith, that taking with him Thomas Arundell archbishop
of Yorke, then lord chancellor of England, he went to the king and made an
heinous complaint against the citizens for their misdemeanor, so that his displeasure was
the more kindled against the citizens, in so much that, whether in respect of this last remembered
complaint, or rather for their vncourteous deniall to lend him the thousand
pounds, and misusing the Lombard that offered to lend the same, I cannot saie; but
sure it is, that the maior and shiriffe, and a great sort more of the citizens, were sent for
to come to the court, where diuerse misdemeanors were obiected and
laid to their charge: |819|
and notwithstanding, what excuse they pretended, the maior and shiriffes with diuerse
other of the most substantiall citizens, were arrested. The maior was committed to the
castell of Windesor, and the other, vnto other castels and holds, to be safelie kept, till
the king, by the aduise of his councell, should determine further what should be doone
with them.
The liberties of London seized. A gardian appointed to gouerne the citie of London.
Sir Edward Darlingrug lord warden of London.
Darlingrug remooued, & sir Baldwine Radington made lord warden of London.
The liberties of the citie were seized into the kings hands, and the authoritie of the
maior vtterlie ceassed, the king appointing a warden to gouerne the citie, named sir
Edward Darlingrug knight, that should both rule the citie, and see that euerie man had
iustice ministred, as the case required. This sir Edward Darlingrug began to gouerne
the citie of London by the name of lord warden, the one and twentith of Iune, on which
day the king entered into the 16 yeare of his reigne: by reason it was thought that the
said sir Edward Darlingrug was ouerfauourable to the citizens, he continued in his office
but till the first of Iulie, and being then discharged, one sir Baldwine Radington, a right
circumspect and discréet knight, was put in that roome, who knew how both to content
the kings mind, and to comfort the citizens, and put them in hope of the kings fauour in
time to be obteined, to the reliefe of their sorow and heauinesse.
The liberties of London in part confirmed in part condemned.
At length, the king, through sute and instant labour made by certeine noble men,
speciallie the duke of Glocester, began somewhat to relent and pacifie himselfe, as touching
his rigorous displeasure against the Londoners, calling to mind the great honour he
had diuerse waies receiued at their hands, with the great gifts which they had likewise
bestowed vpon him, wherevpon he purposed to deale the more mildlie with them, and so
sent for diuerse of the chiefe citizens to come vnto Windesor, where he then kept his court,
there to shew foorth the priuileges, liberties, and lawes of their citie, as well the new as
old, that with the aduise of his councell, he might determine which should remaine in
force, and which should be abolished. Herevpon, when the said priuileges, and liberties
were laid foorth, to the view of such persons as had to consider of them, some
were ratified, some permitted by tolleration, and some vtterlie condemned and abrogated.
Neither might they recouer at that present, either the person or dignitie of their maior,
nor obteine the kings entire fauour, till they had satisfied the king of the damages and
iniuries by them doone, either to him or his people. And where he had beene at great
charges, in preparing forces to chastise them, as he was determined, if they had not
submitted themselues vnto him, they were sure that their pursses must answer all that
he had laid foorth about that matter. They therfore with humble submission, in recompense
& satisfaction of their trespasses, offered to giue him ten thousand pounds, but
they were for this time sent home, and appointed to returne againe at a certeine day, not
vnderstanding what they must pay, till the king with the aduise of his councell had taken
further order for them. At length, through such dailie sute as was made for the quieting
of the kings hot displeasure towards the Londoners, he was contented to pardon all
offenses past. But first, the citizens were told, that the king meant to come from his
manor of Shene, to the citie of London, and then vndoubtedlie, vpon knowledge had of
their good meanings, hereafter to beare themselues like louing subiects, they should
obteine his fauour.
A swéet sacrifice.
He was met with procession of the bishop & clergie at S. Georges church in Southwarke.
Gifts presented to the K. by the Londoners to pacifie his displeasure conceiued against them. K. Richard roiallie receiued into London.
The citizens aduertised hereof, did not onelie prepare themselues to meet him and to
present him with gifts in most liberall manner; but also to adorne, decke, and trim their
citie with sumptuous pageants, rich hangings, and other gorgeous furniture, in all points
like as is vsed at anie coronation. At the day appointed, there met him (beside other)
foure hundred of the citizens on horsebacke, clad in one liuerie, presenting themselues in
that order, vpon the heath on this side Shene, and in most humble wise, crauing pardon
for their offenses past, besought him to take his waie to his palace of Westminster,
thorough the citie of London. This sute made by the recorder, in name of all the
citizens, he gratiouslie granted, and so held on his iournie, till he came to London
bridge, where vnto him was presented a passing faire stéed, white,
saddled, bridled, and |820|
trapped in rich cloth of gold, parted with red and white. And likewise to the quéene was
giuen a milke white paltrie, saddled, brideled, and trapped in the same sort, as the other
was. These presents were thankefullie accepted, and so both the king and the queene
passing forward, entered the citie, prepared and hanged with rich clothes (as before you
haue heard) the citizens standing on ech side the stréets in their liueries, crieng; King
Richard, king Richard.
More gifts by the Lōdoners to the king.
Tho. Walsin. The liberties of London ratified by king Richard.
At the standard in Cheape, was a right sumptuous stage ordeined, on which were set
diuerse personages, and an angell that put a rich crowne of gold, garnished with stone
and pearle vpon the kings head, as he passed by, and likewise an other on the queenes
head. This doone, the king rode to Paules, and there offered, and so tooke his horsse
againe, and rode to Westminster, where the maior and his companie taking their leaue,
returned to London. On the morrow, the maior and his brethren went againe to Westminster,
and there presented the king with two basens gilt, & in them two thousand nobles
of gold, beséeching him to be good and gratious lord to the citie; he receiued their present
in courteous manner, and gaue them manie comfortable words. The third daie
after, they receiued a new confirmation of all their old liberties (at the least such as might be
an aid to the citie, and no detriment to forreners) wherefore, by counsell of their freends,
they ordeined a table for an altar of siluer and gilt, ingrauen with imagerie, and inameled
in most curious wise, conteining the storie of saint Edward, it was valued to be worth a
thousand marks. This was presented to the king, the which he shortlie after offered to
the shrine of saint Edward within the abbeie. The Londoners beléeued, that by these
gifts they had beene quite rid of all danger; but yet they were compelled to giue the king
after this, ten thousand pounds, which was collected of the commons in the citie, not without
great offense and grudging in their minds.
Abr. Fl. out of Henrie Knighton canon of Leceister abbeie.
¶ You
haue heard hitherto, what means was made by the maior, aldermen, and whole
bodie of the commonaltie of London to procure the kings maiesties (in whose disfauour
they were deeplie drowned) gratious reconciliation. Wherein though there hath beene
large matter deliuered; yet to set foorth the dignitie thereof the fuller, take heere by the
waie the report of Henrie Knighton. In the yeare (saith he) 1392, the king called a
great councell on the morrow after Trinitie sundaie at Stamford, about certeine affaires
concerning the Frenchmen, in which councell he assembled togither all the old soldiers of
his relme, that by the aduise of the elder sort he might sée what were best for him to doo
in the premisses. The king also held a great councell at Notingham, on the feast of S.
Iohn the Baptist, whereat he caused the maior of London with the foure and twentie
aldermen, the two shiriffes, and foure and twentie of the best commoners of the citie in
the second degrée to be conuented before him. Héere he charged them that they had
forfeited a certeine bond of 9000 pounds to the king, besides the losse of their liberties
and priuileges. Which obligation or bond they had made in former time to the king, their
deserts requiring the same. Now the king, after rehearsall made of their new offenses &
faults, discharged the maior, the two shiriffes, and the rest of his officers of their offices,
and sent the maior and the two shiriffes to certeine places of custodie as his prisoners,
defeating the citie of London of the honour of all their priuileges; in so much that a citizen
or fréeman should haue no more prerogatiue than a forrener or stranger. He appointed
also the lord Edward Balerige to be gouernor therof, to kéepe and see kept the kings
lawes and his liege people within London in due order, vntill such time as the king had
otherwise prouided for them. And he set them a day to answer the king and his councell
to certeine interrogatories on the feast of S. Marie Magdalen then next insuing, at Windsore.
In the meane while, at the mediation of certeine freends and welwillers, the kings
indignation was somewhat mitigated and asswaged towards them; in somuch that at length
he released the maior and the shiriffes, and sent them home to their houses; setting ouer
them notwithstanding a new kéeper or gouernour of the citie, and reseruing in his hand all
the priuileges of the citie. In the meane time, on the sundaie next
after the feast of the |821|
Assumption of the blessed virgin Marie; all the wealthiest and worthiest commoners of
the citie came to the king, and submitted themselues and all their goods to his grace, and
then did he first receiue and take them into his fauour. On the wednesdaie insuing, the
king was purposed to come into London, and the citizens in multitudes innumerable met
him on horssebacke; & they that had no horsses went out on foot to welcome him thither;
women also and infants shewed themselues vnto him; likewise the bishop of London, with
all the clergie, no order, degree, condition, estate, or sex of ecclesiasticall dignitie being
excused, went out in procession to meet the king and the quéene with great reioising. It
was reported how in that procession there were aboue fiue hundred boies in surplisses.
Moreouer, the citizens of London trimmed the outsides of their houses and chambers in
euerie stréet through which the king and the queene were to passe, from S. Georges to
Westminster. As for the houses of the welthier sort, they were brauelie garnished with
cloth of gold, siluer, tissue, veluet, & other sumptuous stuffe whatsoeuer by any possible
means could be gotten. In Cheapside there was a conduit, out of the which two spouts
ran with read wine & white, and vpon the conduit stood a little boie apparelled in white
like an angell, hauing a golden cup in his hand, who presented wine to the king and queene
to drinke as they passed by. In the meane time they offered to the king a golden crowne
of great value, and another golden crowne to the quéene; and a while after passing forwards,
they presented to the king a golden tablet of the Trinitie, to the value of eight hundred
pounds: and to the queene another golden tablet of S. Anne, whome she had in
speciall deuotion and reuerence, bicause hir owne name was Anne. Such, and so great,
and so wonderfull honors did they to the king, as the like in former times was neuer doone
to anie king of this realme: and so going forward, they brought the king and the quéene
to Westminster hall. The king sitting in his seat roiall, & all the people standing before
him; one in the kings behalfe as his speaker, gaue the people thanks for the great honour
and princelie presents which they had bestowed vpon the king; and being bidden to fall
euerie man to his businesse and affaires, it was told them that in the next parlement they
should haue their finall answer.
The duke of Glocester made duke of Ireland.
His iournie into Ireland vnluckilie staied.
Véere, late duke of Ireland, dieth at Louaine.
At the same time, the duke of Glocester, hauing receiued monie to leauie an armie,
which he should haue conueied ouer into Ireland, of which countrie, a good while before
that present, the king had made him duke, was now readie to set forward, when suddenlie
through the malice of some priuie detractours about the king, he was contermanded, and
so his iournie was staied, to the great hinderance and preiudice of both the countries of
England and Ireland: for euen vpon the fame that was bruted of his comming into
Ireland, in manner all the Irish lords determined to submit themselues vnto him, so greatlie
was his name both loued, reuerenced, and feared, euen among those wild and sauage
people. This yeare Robert Véere, late earle of Oxenford, and duke of Ireland, departed
this life at Louaine in Brabant, in great anguish of mind, & miserable necessitie:
which yoong gentleman (doubtlesse) was apt to all commendable exercises and parts fit
for a noble man, if in his youth he had béene well trained and brought vp in necessarie
discipline.
Tho. Walsi. A parlement at Winchester.
The chancerie and kings bench kept at Yorke and frō thence remooued to Londō.
Eures.
The Ile of Man.
This yeare after Christmasse, a parlement was called at Winchester, in which onelie a
grant was made by the cleargie, of halfe a tenth, for the expenses of the duke of Lancaster
& Glocester, that were appointed to go ouer into France, to treat of peace, betwixt the
two kingdomes. The courts of the kings bench and chancerie, which had béene remooued
from Westminster to Yorke, either in disfauour onelie of the Londoners, or in fauour of
the citizens of Yorke, for that the archbishop of that citie, being lord chancellor, wished to
aduance (so farre as in him laie) the commoditie and wealth thereof, were neuerthelesse
about this season brought backe againe to Westminster, after they had remained a small
time at Yorke, to the displeasure of manie. ¶ This yeare, the lord Auberie de Veere,
vncle to the late duke of Ireland, was made earle of Oxenford. ¶The two and twentith
of Februarie, Iohn Eures, constable of Douer castell, & lord steward
of the kings house |822|
departed this life, in whose roome the lord Thomas Persie that before was
vicechamberlaine
was created lord steward; and the lord Thomas Beaumont was made constable
of Douer, and lord warden of the cinque ports: and the lord William Scroope was
made vicechamberlaine, who about the same time, bought of the lord William Montacute
the Ile of Man, with the regalitie therof, for it is a kingdome; as Thomas Walsingham
affirmeth.
The dukes of Lancaster & Glocester sent to Frāce to treat of a peace.
The French comissioners would haue Calis raced to the ground.
The dukes of Lancaster and Glocester went ouer vnto Calis, and downe to Bullongne
came the dukes of Berrie and Burgognie. These noblemen were sufficientlie furnished
with authoritie, to conclude a perfect peace, both by sea and land, betweene the two
realmes of France and England, and all their alies. The place appointed for them to
treat in, was at Balingham, where tents and pauilions were pight vp, for the ease of both
parties. They met there twise or thrise a wéeke, in a faire tent prepared for the purpose,
about nine of the clocke in the forenoone. This was about the beginning of Maie. When
they entered first into communication, and had séene each others authoritie, one of the
first demands that the Frenchmen made, was to haue Calis raced, in such wise, as there
should neuer be anie habitation there after that time. The dukes of Lancaster and Glocester
answered herevnto, how they had no authoritie to conclude so farre, but that England
should hold Calis still, as in demesne, and true inheritance; and therefore, if they
purposed to enter any further in the treatie of peace, they should ceasse from that demand
and speake no more thereof. When the dukes of Berrie and Burgognie heard their two
cousins of England answer so roundlie, they spake no more of that matter.
The demand of the English cōmissioners.
Order taken that the demands on either side should be set downe in writing, the better to be considered of.
The English gentlemen mainteined by the French warres.
The subtiltie of the French men.
The commissioners meet againe.
Then the dukes of Lancaster and Glocester demanded to haue restitution of all such
lands as had béene deliuered, either to king Richard, or to king Edward the third, or to
anie their deputies or commissioners, and also to haue fullie paid the summe of florens
that was left vnpaid, at the time when the warre reuiued betwixt England and France:
and this the English lawiers prooued to stand with equitie and reason. But neuerthelesse,
the lords and chancellor of France argued to the contrarie, and so agrée they could not,
insomuch as the Frenchmen required, that if the Englishmen meant to haue anie conclusion
of peace, they should draw to some neerer points. At length, the foure dukes tooke
order, that all their demands on either side should be set downe in writing, and deliuered
to either partie interchangeablie, that they might be regarded at length, and such as
should be found vnreasonable, to be raced or reformed. After they had communed togither
diuerse times, and remained there fiftéene daies, they appointed to aduertise the two
kings of their whole dooings, and after nine daies space to meet againe. The French
dukes rode to Abbeuile, where the French king then laie: and the English dukes returning
to Calis, wrote to the king of England, of all the whole matter. The duke of Glocester
was harder to deale with in each behalfe, concerning the conclusion of peace, than
was the duke of Lancaster, for he rather desired to haue had warre than any peace, except
such a one as should be greatlie to the aduantage and honour of the realme of England:
and therefore the commons of England vnderstanding his disposition, agreed that he
should be sent, rather than anie other. For where in times past the Englishmen had
greatlie gained by the warres of France, as well the commons, as the knights and esquires,
who had by the same mainteined their estate, they could not giue their willing consents, to
haue anie peace at all with the Frenchmen, in hope by reason of the wars, to profit themselues,
as in times past they had doone. The French king & nobles of France were greatlie
inclined to peace, and so likewise was the king of England, & the duke of Lancaster.
But the Frenchmen were so subtill, and vsed so manie darke and coloured words, that the
Englishmen had much a doo to vnderstand them: which offended much the duke of
Glocester. But neuerthelesse, at the daie prefixed, these foure dukes met againe at
Balingham, and with the French lords came the king of Armenie, newlie returned into
France foorth of Grecia, for into his owne countrie he durst not come, the Turkes hauing
conquered it, the strong towne of Conich, which the Genowaies
held, excepted. |823|
The king of Armenie.
Obscure and doubtfull words to be opened.
A truce for foure yeares betwéene England and France.
The king of Armenie would gladlie that peace might haue béene established betwixt
France and England, in hope to procure the sooner some aid of the kings to recouer his
kingdome. But to conclude after that the dukes, and other with them associat as assistants,
had diligentlie perused and examined the articles of their treatie, they would not
passe nor seale to anie, till all darke and obscure words were cléerelie declared, opened,
and made perfect, so that no generall peace might be concluded. Notwithstanding, as
Froissard saith, a truce for foure yeares space, vpon certeine articles was agreed to be
kept as well by sea as by land. It was thought, that when they were at point to haue
growne to agreement concerning manie articles, if the French king had not newlie fallen
into his former disease of frensie, there had better effect followed of this treatie; but by
occasion of his sicknesse, each man departed, before that anie principall articles could be
fullie ordered and make perfect. The same time, sir Thomas Persie the yoonger was
made lord warden of Burdeaux and Aquitaine.
Great tempests.
Much hurt doone by great flouds in Suffolke.
A great plage in Essex.
Variance betwéene the duke of Lancaster and the earle of Arundell.
In September, much hurt was doone, thorough excéeding great thunder, lightening,
and tempests, which chanced in manie parts of England, but speciallie in Cambridgeshire,
where manie houses were burned, with no small quantitie of corne. Great inundations
and flouds of water followed shortlie after in October, which did much hurt at Burie, and
Newmarket in Suffolke, where it ouerthrew wals of houses, and put men and women in
great danger of drowning. In Essex also in September, great mortalitie fell by pestilence
amongst the people, whereof manie died. ¶ The towne of Chierburgh was restored
againe to the king of Nauarre, who had ingaged it to the king of England, for two thousand
markes. ¶ A parlement was holden at Westminster, which began in the octaues
of Hilarie. ¶ The king purposing to go ouer into Ireland, required a subsidie, the
cleargie granted to him a whole tenth, toward the furnishing foorth of that iournie, if he
went himselfe; if he went not, yet they agréed to giue to him the moitie of a tenth. In
time of this parlement, there appeared great euill will to remaine betwixt the duke of
Lancaster and the earle of Arundell, for the duke imposed to the earle, that about the
Exaltation of the crosse, he laie with a companie of armed men in the castell of Holt
by Chester, the same time that the countrie there rose against the duke, with their
capteine Nicholas Clifton, and his complices, whome he ment (as the duke alledged)
to haue aided against him: but this the earle flatlie denied, and with probable reasons so
excused himselfe, as the quarrell at length was taken vp, and the parties for the time well
quieted.
The death of quéene Anne.
The K. defaceth the house of Shene bicause the quéene died there.
This yeare on Whitsundaie being the seauenth of Iune, quéene Anne departed this
life, to the great greefe of hir husband king Richard, who loued hir intirelie. She
deceassed at Shene, and was buried at Westminster, vpon the south side of saint
Edwards shrine. The king tooke such a conceit with the house of Shene, where she
departed this life, that he caused the buildings to be throwne downe and defaced, whereas
the former kings of this land, being wearie of the citie, vsed customablie thither to resort,
as to a place of pleasure, and seruing highlie to their recreation. Thus the king, the
duke of Lancaster, and his sonne the earle of Derbie, were widowers, all in one season:
for the ladie Constance duchesse of Lancaster daughter to Peter king of Spaine, deceassed
the last yeare, whilest hir husband the duke of Lancaster was at the treatie in France:
at the same time also deceassed the countesse of Derbie, wife to the lord Henrie earle
of Derbie. ¶ Moreouer, in this yeare 1394, Isabell duchesse of Yorke departed this
life, that was halfe sister to the duchesse of Lancaster, being borne of one mother. She
was buried at Langleie.
A proclamation that all Irishmen shuld returne into their countrie.
The English pale in Irelād almost left desolate.
The yearelie reuenues of Ireland in K. Edward the third his daies.
This yeare in August, was a proclamation set foorth, that all Irishmen should auoid
this land, and returne home into their owne countrie, before the feast of the Natiuitie
of our ladie, on paine of death. The occasion of which proclamation was, for that such
multitudes of Irishmen were come ouer into this region, in hope of gaine, that the
countries in Ireland, subiect to England, were in manner left void
of people, so that the |824|
enimies spoiled and wasted those countries at their pleasure, finding few or none to withstand
them. And where king Edward the third had placed in Ireland his bench and
iudges, with his excheker for the good administration of iustice and politike gouernement
to be vsed there, he receiued from thence yearelie in reuenues and profits, comming to
his owne cofers, the sum of thirtie thousand pounds: the king now laid foorth no lesse a
summe to repell the enimies, which by absence of those that were come ouer hither,
could not otherwise be resisted, sith the power of the rebels was so increased, and the
force of the countries subiect, thorough lacke of the former inhabitants, so diminished.
¶ About the feast of the Natiuitie of our ladie, the king set forward to passe into
Ireland, hauing made such preparation for that iournie, as the like for Ireland had not
béene heard of at anie time before. There went out with him the duke of Glocester, the
earles of March, Notingham, and Rutland, the lord Thomas Persie lord steward, and
diuerse other of the English nobilitie.
The duke of Lancaster saileth into Aquitaine with an armie.
The Gascoignes flatlie refuse to accept the duke of Lancaster for their souereigne.
The duke of Lancaster, that in the thirteenth yeare of king Richards reigne had beene
created by authoritie of parlement, duke of Aquitaine, was about this present time sent
thither, with fiue hundred men of armes, & a thousand archers, to take possession of that
duchie, according to the kings grant, by his letters patents thereof had, made, and confirmed
with his seale, in presence of the most part of all the nobles and great lords of
England, to hold all that countrie to the said duke and his heires for euer in as large
manner and forme, as his father king Edward the third, or anie other kings of England,
or dukes of Aquitaine before time had holden, and as king Richard at that season had &
held the same, the homage alwaies yet reserued to the kings of England for euer. But
all this notwithstanding, at his comming thither, so farre were the Gascoignes, and other
people of those marches from receiuing him with ioy and triumph, that they plainelie told
him, they would not atturne to him, nor be vnder his iurisdiction at anie hand, although
he had brought ouer with him commissioners sufficientlie authorised, both to discharge
them of their former allegiance to the king, and to inuest him in possession of that duchie,
in maner and forme as before is said.
K. Richard passeth ouer into Ireland with a mightie armie.
Froissard. Foure Irish kings submit themselues to K. Richard.
A parlement holden in Ireland.
But now to returne to king Richard, ye shall vnderstand, that when all his prouision
and roiall armie was readie, about Michaelmas, he tooke the sea, and landed at Waterford
the second of October, and so remained in Ireland all that winter: his people were
lodged abroad in the countrie, and lay so warilie as they might. For although the Irishmen
durst not attempt anie exploit openlie against the Englishmen, after the kings
arriuall with so puissant an armie, yet they would steale sometimes vpon them, where
they espied anie aduantage, and disquiet them in their lodgings. But when the English
still preuailed, diuerse of the greatest princes among them came in, and submitted themselues.
Amongst other, foure kings are mentioned, as the great Onell king of Meth,
Brine of Thomond king of Thomond, Arthur Macmur king of Lineister, and Conhur king
of Cheueno and Darpe: these kings were courteouslie interteined and much made of
by king Richard, who kept his Christmas this yeare at Dubline. And after that feast
was ended, he held a parlement there, to the which all his subiects of Ireland, vnto
whom it apperteined, resorted, as well those that had continued vnder the English
gouernement aforetime, as those that were latelie yéelded.
A parlement at Westminster, king Richard being in Ireland.
Also at the same time, after the octaues of the Epiphanie, the duke of Yorke, lord
warden of England, now in the kings absence, caused a parlement to be called at Westminster,
to the which was sent foorth of Ireland the duke of Glocester, that he might
declare to the commons the kings necessitie, to haue some grant of monie to supplie his
want, hauing spent no small quantitie of treasure in that iournie made into Ireland.
The dukes words were so well heard and beléeued, that a whole tenth was granted by the
clergie, and a fiftéenth by the laitie; but not without protestation, that those paiements
were granted of a meere good will, for the loue they bare to the king, and to haue his
businesse go forwards, which bicause it required great expenses,
both for that his owne |825|
roiall person was abiding in Ireland about the subduing of the rebels, as also bicause his
retinue and power could not be mainteined without excessiue charges; they seemed to
be no lesse desirous to haue the same ended, than they which were dailie agents in the
same, not without feare of misfortune likelie to befall them, hauing to deale with a people
of such barbarous and rebellious behauiour.
The Wickleuists wrote against the cleargie.
The clergie complaine to the king of the Wickleuists, and their fauorers.
K. Richard knighteth the foure Irish kings, and others. Froissard.
At the same time, those that followed Wickliffes opinions, set vp publikelie on the
church doore of Paules in London, and the church doores of Westminster, certeine
writings, conteining accusations of the clergie, and conclusions, such as had not commonlie
béene heard, against ecclesiasticall persons, and the vse of the sacraments, as the
church then mainteined. They were incouraged thus to doo, as it was said, by some
noble men, and knights of great worship, as sir Richard Sturrie, sir Lewes Clifford, sir
Thomas Latimer, sir Iohn Montacute, & others, who comforted & pricked forward those
kind of men, then called heretikes & Lollards, to the confounding of monks, friers, and
other religious persons, by all waies they might. Herevpon, the archbishop of Yorke,
the bishop of London, and certeine other as messengers from the whole state of the
clergie, passed ouer into Ireland, where, to the king they made a grieuous complaint, as
well against those that had framed and set foorth such writings, as against them that
mainteined them in their dooings, and therefore besought him with spéed to returne home
into England, there to take such order, for the restreining of those misordered persons,
as vnto the reliefe of the church might be thought expedient, being then in great danger
of susteining irrecouerable losse and damage, if good reformation were not the sooner
had. King Richard hearing these things, vpon good deliberation had in the matter, determined
to returne home, but first on the day of the Annuntiation of our ladie, he made
the foure aboue remembred kings, to wit, Onell, Brine of Thomond, Arthur of Mackmur,
and Conhur, knights, in the cathedrall church of Dublin, and one likewise sir Thomas
Orphen, sir Ioatas Pado, and his coosine sir Iohn Pado.
K. Richard returneth out of Ireland.
K. Richards dealings against the fauorers of the Wickleuists.
This doone, and now after that they were set inquiet in that countrie (the rebels not being
so hardie as to stirre, whilest such a mightie armie was there readie at hand to assaile them)
king about Easter came backe into England without anie more adoo, so that the
gaine was thought nothing to counteruaile the charges, which were verie great: for the
king had ouer with him in that iournie, foure thousand men of armes, and thirtie thousand
archers, as Froissard saith he was informed by an English esquier that had béene in that
iournie. The king at his comming ouer, did not forget what complaint the archbishop of
Yorke and the bishop of London had exhibited to him, against those that were called Lollards,
and heretiks, wherevpon immediatlie, he called before him certeine of the noble men,
that were thought and knowne to fauour such kind of men, threatning terriblie, if from
thence foorth they should in anie wise comfort and relieue them. He caused sir Richard
Sturrie to receiue an oth, that he should not mainteine from that day forward anie such
erronious opinions, menacing him, and as it were, couenanting with him by an interchangeable
oth, that if euer he might vnderstand, that he did violate and breake that oth, he
should die for it a most shamefull death.
Abr. Fl. out of Henrie Knighton canon of Leicester abbeie.
¶ By
the report of H. Knighton it should séeme, that this sect (as he calleth them)
mightilie increased, to the no small offense of the lords temporall and spirituall, wherevpon
after sundrie complaints, and serious solicitations for the supplanting of them,
commissions were granted, and the tenure of them (as it should séeme) though not
absolutelie, yet in part executed. Now therefore listen what mine author saith, whose
addition, though by his owne supputation of yeares it require to be placed elsewhere;
yet for the consonancie of the matter, and because writers varie greatlie in their accounts
of time, I haue here inserted the same, as in a verie conuenient place of the historie.
The noblemen and the commons (saith Henrie Knighton) séeing the ship of the church,
with these & other innumerable errors, & verie lewd opinions as it were on all sides from
day to day with ceasselesse violence and force to be shaken;
besought the king in the |826|
parlement, that redresse might be had herof; lest the arke of the faith of all the church
by such violences and inforcements giuen in those daies, should through want of gouernement
be battered without remedie, and the glorious realme of England by corrupting of
faith should by little and little be drawne into a distresse of grace and losse of honor.
Wherefore the king vsing the sound counsell of the whole parlement, commanded the
archbishop of Canturburie, & the rest of the bishops of the realme, to execute their
charge and office, all and euerie of them in his and their diocesse, according to the
canon lawes, more seuerelie and zealouslie; to correct the offendors, to examine their
English books more fullie and substantiallie, to root out errors with all their indeuors, to
bring the people into an vnitie of the right faith, to wéed vp out of the church all netles,
thistles, and brambles wherewith she is disgraced; and to beautifie hir with lillies and
roses; and should cause an establishment of his roiall power more boldlie and stoutlie.
And the king foorthwith commanded, without delaie, that his letters patents should be
sent abroad into all and euerie shire of his kingdome; and appointed in euerie shire
certeine searchers for such books and their fauourers; charging them to applie a spéedie
remedie vnto these disorders, and to lay vp the rebels in the verie next gaoles, till the
king sent vnto them. But verie slow execution or none at all followed, because the
houre of correction was not yet come. [Howbeit, to prepare and make an entrance
to the purposed reformation and correction of those enormities, he gaue out a commission
against the Wickleuists, a copie whereof followeth both in Latine and English.
Whereby the world may see how the springing church of Christ was hated and abhorred
of the antichristian rout.]
RICHARDUS Dei gratia rex Angliæ & Franciæ, & dominus Hiberniæ, dilectis sibi magistro Thomæ Brightwell in theologia doctori, decano collegij noui operis Leicestriæ, & Gulielmo Chesulden præbendario præbendæ eiusdem collegij, ac dilectis & fidelibus nostris Richardo de Barow Chinall, & Roberto Langham, salutem. Quia ex insinuatione credibili certitudinaliter informatur, quòd ex insana doctrina magistrorum Iohannis Wickliffe dum vixit, Nicholai Herford, Iohannis Liston, & suorum sequaciū, quàm plures libri, libelli, schedulæ, & quaterni, hæresibus & erroribus manifestis in fidei catholicæ læsionem, & sanæ doctrinæ derogationem, expressè, & palàm, & notoriè redundantes, frequentiùs compilantur, publicantur, & conscribuntur, tam in Anglico quàm in Latino, ac exinde opiniones nefariæ sanæ doctrinæ contrariantes, oriuntur, crescunt, & manutenentur, ac prædicantur, in fidei orthodoxæ eneruationem, ecclesiæ sanctæ subuersionem, & ex consequenti (quod absit) quàm plurium incredulitatem, eorúmq; animarum periculum manifestum. Nos zelo fidei catholicæ, cuius sumus & esse volumus defensores in omnibus (vt tenemur) moti salubriter & inducti, nolentes huiusmodi hæreses aut errores infra terminos nostræ potestatis, quatenùs poterimus, oriri, seu quomodolibet pullulare: assignamus vos coniunctim & diuisim, ad omnes & singulos libros, libellos schedulas, & quaternos huiusmodi doctrinā dictorū Iohannis, Nicholai, Iohannis, & sociorum sequacium, seu opinionum aliquam minùs sanam continentes, vbicúnq;, & in quorumcúnq; manibus, possessione, seu custodia inueniri poterunt, infra libertates vel extra, inuestigandum, capiendum, & arrestandum, & penes concilium nostrum cum omni celeritate possibili deferri faciendum, vt tunc ibidem de ijsdem ordinare valeamus, prout de auisamento concilij nostri prædicti fore viderimus faciendum: ac etiam ad proclamandum, & ex parte nostra firmiter inhibendum, ne quis cuiuscúnq; status, gradus, seu conditionis fuerit, sub pœna imprisionamenti & forisfacturationum, quæ nobis forisfacere poterit, aliquas huiusmodi prauas & nefarias opiniones manutenere, docere, pertinacitérque defendere, clàm vel palam, seu huiusmodi libros, libellos, schedulas, & quaternos detinere, scribere, vel scribi facere, aut emere vel vendere præsumat quouis modo; sed |827| omnes & singulos huiusmodi libros, libellos, schedulas, & quaternos secum habitos & inuentos, ad mandatum nostrum vobis reddat, seu reddi faciat indilatè. Et ad omnes illos, quos post proclamationem & inhibitionem prædictis contrarium inueneritis facientes, & huiusmodi nefarias opiniones manutentes, coràm vobis præfato Thoma decano & Gulielmo euocandum, & diligenter examinandum: & cùm inde legitimè euicti fuerint, ministris proximísq; prisonis committendum, in ijsdem detinendum, quoúsque à suis erroribus, hæresibus, & prauis opinionibus resipiscant, seu nos pro deliberatione eorundem aliter duxerimus ordinandum. Et ideo vobis mandamus, quòd dicta præmissa cum omni diligentia & efficacia intendatis, & ea faciatis & exequamini in forma prædicta. Damus autem tàm vniuersis & singulis viris ecclesiasticis, quàm vicecomitibus, maioribus, balliuis, ministris, & alijs fidelibus & subditis nostris, tàm infra libertates quàm extra tenore præsentium firmiter in mandatis, quòd vobis, & cuilibet vestrum, in præmissis faciendis assistentes sint, consulentes, & auxiliantes, prout decet. In cuius rei testimonium has literas nostras fieri fecimus patentes. Teste meipso apud Westmonasterium vicesimo tertio die Maij, anno regni nostri vndecimo.
RICHARD by the grace of God king of England and France, and lord of Ireland, to his beloued, maister Thomas Brightwell doctor in diuinitie, deane of the college of the new worke of Leicester, and to William Chesulden prebendarie of the prebend of the same college; and to our beloued and trustie subiects, Richard of Barow Chinall, and Robert Langham; greeting. For so much as we are certeinelie informed by credible report, that by the vnsound doctrine of maister Iohn Wickliffe, whiles he liued, of Nicholas Herford, Iohn Liston, and their followers, many bookes, libels, scheduls, & pamphlets expresselie, euidentlie, and notoriouslie swarming with manifest heresies and errors to the hurt of the catholike faith, & the abolishment of sound doctrine, are commonlie compiled, published, and written, as well in English as in Latine, and therevpon wicked opinions contrarie to sound doctrine, doo spring, grow, and are mainteined and preached to the weakening of the right faith, the ouerthrow of holie church, and consequentlie (which God forbid) the misbeleefe of a great many, & the manifest danger of their soules. We being moued with zeale to the catholike faith, whereof we are, and will be defenders in all things, as we are bound, vnwilling that such heresies or errors within the limits of our iurisdiction, so far as we are able, should grow, or by any meanes spring vp: doo assigne you iointlie and seuerallie, all and singular the books, libels, scheduls, & pamphlets conteining such doctrine of the said Iohn, Nicholas, Iohn, and their fellow-followers, or any of their corrupt opinions, wheresoeuer, & in whose hands, possession, or keeping soeuer they shalbe found within the liberties or without; them to search, take, arrest, and cause to be brought before our councell with all possible speed, that then and there we may take order for the same accordinglie, as by the aduise of our foresaid councell we shall see requisite to be doone. And also to proclaime, and on our behalfe firmelie to forbid all and euerie one, of whatsoeuer state, degree, or condition he be, vnder paine of imprisonment and forfeitures, which to vs he shall forfeit, any of these wicked and lewd opinions to mainteine, teach, obstinatlie to defend, priuilie or openlie, or any of these bookes, libels, scheduls & pamphlets to keepe, write, or cause to be written; but all and euerie such booke and bookes, libels, scheduls, and pamphlets with them had & found, at our commandement vnto you to deliuer, or cause to be deliuered without delaie. And all them, whome after proclamation and inhibition you shall find dooing contrarie to the premisses, and such lewd opinions mainteining, to call foorth before you the said Thomas the deane, & William, and them to examine: & when |828| they shalbe lawfullie conuinced therein, to commit them to the next officers & prisons, there to be kept, till they haue recanted their errors, heresies, and wicked opinions; or till we for their deliuerance shall otherwise thinke order to be taken. And therefore we command, that you intend the said premisses, with all diligence and effect, and the same doo and execute in forme aforesaid. We doo also giue in streict commandement and charge, to all and euerie as well churchman & churchmen, as shiriffes, maiors, bailiffes, officers, and other our trustie subiects, as well within the liberties as without, by the tenor of these presents, to assist, counsell, and helpe you and euerie of you in doing the premisses, as it is conuenient. In witnesse whereof, we haue caused these our letters patents to be made. Witnesse our selues at Westminster the twentie third day of Maie, and the eleuenth yeare of our reigne.
Archbishop of Canturburies visitatiō.
Wickleuists excommunicated.
A ridiculous penance.
¶ About
this time, or (as Henrie Knighton saith) in the yeare 1392, maister William
Courtenie archbishop of Canturburie, brother to the earle of Denshire visited the diocesse
of Lincolne, and on the feast of saint Faith the virgine he visited maister Iohn Bokingham
bishop of Lincolne in the cathedrall church of Lincolne, with the chapter, and an hundred
of the canons, and he came to Leicester abbeie in visitation, the sundaie before the feast
of All saints, where he abode all the tuesdaie, and on the eeue also, of All saints being
mondaie, calling togither all the canons of the said monasterie, with the chaplines of his
owne chappell, euerie of them hauing in their hands burning candels. The same archbishop
confirmed sentence of excommunication against the Lollards or Wickleuists, with
their fauourers, which either now mainteined or caused to be mainteined, or hereafter did
mainteine or should mainteine the errours and opinions of master Iohn Wickliffe, in the
diocesse of Lincolne. On the morrow next after All saints, the same bishop flashed out
his sentence of excommunication like lightning in open sight, with a crosse set vpright,
with candels burning bright, and with bels roong alowd, and namelie against those of
Leicester towne that had too too much defiled and infected the said towne and countrie.
The archbishop departing from thence, went to saint Peters church, to a certeine anchoresse
named Matildis there kept as in a closet, whom he reprouing about the foresaid
errors and opinions of the Lollards, and finding hir answers scarse aduisedlie made, cited
hir that she should appeare before him, on the sundaie next insuing, in saint Iames his
abbeie at Northampton, to answer vnto the foresaid erronious and prophane points.
Now she appeared at the day appointed, and renouncing hir errours, and hauing penance
inioined hir, she went awaie reformed. But till the second day before the feast
of saint Lucie, she kept hir selfe out of hir closet, and then entred into the same againe.
Other Lollards also were cited, and appeared at Oxford, and in other places, as the
archbishop had commanded them: who renouncing their superstitious errours, and forswearing
their prophane opinions, did open penance. Also one William Smith was
made to go about the market place at Leicester, clothed in linnen [or in a white sheet]
holding in his right arme the image of the Crucifix, and in his left the image of saint Katharine,
bicause the said Smith had sometimes cut in peeces and burned an image of saint
Katharine, whereof he made a fire to boile him hearbes
in his hunger.
† For the papists saie that the sacrificing préest is the maker of his maker, namelie God.
Boldnesse of women in ecclesiasticale matters taxed.
In those daies there was a certeine matrone in London, which had
one onelie daughter, whome manie daies she instructed and trained vp
to celebrat the masse, and she set vp an altar in hir priuie or secret
chamber with all the ornaments therevnto belonging, and so she made hir
daughter manie daies to attire hir selfe like a priest, and to come to
the altar, and after hir maner to celebrate the masse. Now when she
came to the words of the sacrament, she cast hir selfe flat on hir
face before the altar, & † made not the sacrament; but rising vp,
dispatched the rest of the masse euen to the verie end, hir mother
helping hir therein, and dooing hir deuotion. This errour a long time
lasted, till at last by a certeine neighbour that was secretlie called
to such a masse, it was told abroad, and came to the bishops eares, who
causing them to appeare before him, talked with them about that |829|
errour, and compelled the yoong woman openlie to shew the priestlie
shauing of hir haire, whose head was found to be all bare and bald. The
bishop sighing and sorrieng that such an errour should happen in the
church in his time, made manie lamentations, and hauing inioined them
penance, dispatched and sent them away. Thus far Henrie Knighton. [It
is not to be doubted, but that in these daies manie of the female sex
be medling in matters impertinent to their degrée, and inconuenient for
their knowledge; debating & scanning in their priuat conuenticles
of such things as wherabout if they kept silence, it were for their
greater commendation; presuming, though not to celebrat a masse, or
to make a sacrament; yet to vndertake some publike peece of seruice
incident to the ministerie: whose ouer-sawcie rashnesse being bolstered
and borne vp with abbettors not a few, whether it be by ecclesiasticall
discipline corrected, I wot not; but of the vniformed presbiterie I am
sure it is lamented.]
A fierie apparition of diuerse likenesses.
A head of wax wrought by necromancie speaketh.
A fierie dragon séene in diuers places.
Abr. Fl. out of Thom. Walsin. in Rich. 2. pag. 341.
A coniunctiō of Iupiter & Saturne.
A certeine thing appeared in the likenesse of fier in manie parts of the realme of England,
now of one fashion, now of another, as it were euerie night, but yet in diuerse
places all Nouember and December. This fierie apparition, oftentimes when any bodie
went alone, it would go with him, and would stand still when he stood still. To some it
appeared in the likenesse of a turning whéele burning; to othersome round in the likenesse
of a barrell, flashing out flames of fier at the head; to othersome in the likenesse of
a long burning lance; and so to diuerse folks at diuerse times and seasons it shewed it
selfe in diuerse formes and fashions a great part of winter, speciallie in Leicestershire and
Northamptonshire: and when manie went togither, it approched not neere them, but
appeared to them as it were a far off. In a parlement time there was a certeine head of
wax made by the art of necromancie (as it was reported) which head at an houre appointed
to speake, vttered these words following at thrée times, and then ceased to speake
any more. These be the words; first, The head shall be cut off; secondlie, The head
shall be lift vp aloft; thirdlie, The feet shall be lift vp aloft aboue the head. This happened
in the time of that parlement which was called the mercilesse parlement, not long
before the parlement that was named the parlement which wrought wonders. In Aprill
there was séene a fierie dragon in manie places of England; which dreadfull sight as it
made manie a one amazed, so it ministred occasion of mistrust to the minds of the maruellors,
that some great mischéefe was imminent, whereof that burning apparition was a
prognostication. In this kings daies (as saith Thomas Walsingham) whose report, bicause
I am here dealing with certeine prodigious accidents importing some strange euents,
I am the more bold to interlace about the troublesome time when discord sprang betwéene
the king and his youthlie companions with the duke of Lancaster, in the moneth
of Maie, there happened a coniunction of the two greatest planets, namelie Iupiter and
Saturne, after the which did follow a verie great commotion of kingdoms, as in the processe
of this historie may appeare.
A schisme betwéene two popes for the dignitie of S. Peters chaire.
The French king about this time summoned a conuocation of the French cleargie, to
decide and search out the power of the two popes, which of them had fuller right and
authoritie in S. Peters chaire, for the schisme and diuision betwéene the two popes was
not yet ended. The French clergie wrote in the behalfe of Clement their pope, & cōfirmed
their script or writing with the vniuersitie seale of Paris. Which writing Charles
the French king sent ouer to Richard king of England, that touching these doubts and
difficulties he with the councell of his cleargie might deliberat. Wherefore king Richard
summoned a conuocation at Oxford of the lerneder diuines as well regents as not regents
of the whole realme; who wrote for and in the behalfe of Vrbane their pope of Rome,
and confirmed their writing with the vniuersitie seale of Oxford, & sent it ouer sea to
Paris vnto the French king. But nothing was doone further in the premisses, both
popes, vnder the shrowd or shelter of schisme preuailing betwéene them, iustifieng their
title & interest. [This is the last record found in Henrie Knighton, who for that which
he hath doone touching chronographie, hath written (the blindnesse
of the time wherein |830|
he liued, and his order considered) though not so well as the best, yet not so ill as the
woorst: and whose collections, if they were laid togither, would afford a large augmentation
to maters of chronicle: but O spite that so abruptlie he breaketh off, and continueth
his annales no further than this yeare, 1395.]
The Danes rob the English merchāts on the seas.
Great prises woone by the Danish pirats of the Englishmen.
This yeere, the Danes that laie rouing on the seas did much hurt to the English merchants,
taking and robbing manie English ships, and when the hauen townes alongst the
coasts of Northfolke, made foorth a number of ships, and ventured to fight with those
pirats, they were vanquished by the Danes, so that manie were slaine, and manie taken
prisoners, which were constreined to paie great ransoms. The enimies also found in
ransacking the English ships, twentie thousand pounds, which the English merchants had
aboord with them to buy wares with, in place whither they were bound to go. ¶ In the
same yeare, William Courtneie archbishop of Canturburie, hauing more regard to his
owne priuat commoditie, than to the discommoditie of others, purchased a bull of the
pope, whereby he was authorised to leauie through his whole prouince foure pence of the
pound of ecclesiasticall promotions, as well in places exempt, as not exempt, no true nor
lawfull cause being shewed or pretended, why he ought so to doo; and to see the execution
of this bull put in practise, the archbishop of Yorke, and the bishop of London, were
named and appointed.
Waltham bishop of Salisburie buried at Westminster amongst the kings.
The duke of Irelāds corps conueied from Louaine into England, and there roiallie interred.
Manie that feared the censures of such high executions, chose rather to paie the monie
foorthwith, than to go to the law, and be compelled happilie, mauger their good willes.
Some there were that appealed to the sée of Rome, meaning to defend their cause and to
procure that so vnlawfull an exaction might be reuoked. Speciallie, the prebendaries of
Lincolne stood most stiffelie against those bishops, but the death of the archbishop that
chanced shortlie after, made an end of those so passing great troubles. This yeare, Iohn
Waltham bishop of Salisburie, and lord treasuror of England departed this life, and by
king Richard his appointment had the honor to haue his bodie interred at Westminster
amongst the kings. After this decease, Roger Walden that before was secretarie to the
king, and treasuror of Calis, was now made lord treasuror.
Yée haue heard, that in the yeare 1392, Robert Véer duke of Ireland departed this life
in Louaine in Brabant. King Richard therefore this yeare in Nouember, caused his
corps being imbalmed, to be conueied into England, and so to the priorie of Colnie in
Essex, appointing him to be laid in a coffine of cypresse, and to be adorned with princelie
garments, hauing a chaine of gold about his necke, and rich rings on his fingers. And to
shew what loue and affection he bare vnto him in his life time, the king caused the coffine
to be opened, that he might behold his face bared, and touch him with his hands: he
honored his funerall exequies with his presence, accompanied with the countesse of Oxenford,
mother to the said duke, the archbishop of Canturburie, and manie other bishops,
abbats, and priors: but of noble men there were verie few, for they had not yet digested
the enuie and hatred which they had conceiued against him.
Froissard.
The Gascoignes send vnto K. Rich. signifieng vnto him, that they ought not to be diuided from the crowne.
In this meane while, the duke of Lancaster was in Gascoigne, treating with the lords of
the countrie, and the inhabitants of the good townes, which vtterlie refused to receiue him
otherwise than as a lieutenant or substitute to the king of England, and in the end addressed
messengers into England, to signifie to the king, that they had beene accustomed to be
gouerned by kings, and meant not now to become subiects to anie other, contrarie to all
reason, sith the king could not (sauing his oth) alien them from the crowne. The duke of
Lancaster vsed all waies he might deuise, how to win their good wils, and had sent
also certeine of his trustie councellors, ouer hither into England, as sir William Perreer,
sir Peter Clifton, and two clearkes learned in the lawe, the one called maister Iohn
Huech, and the other maister Iohn Richards a canon of Leicester, to plead and sollicit
his cause.
The grant of the duchie of Aquitaine to the duke of Lancaster reuoked.
But to be breefe, such reasons were shewed, and such matter vnfolded by the Gascoignes,
whie they ought not be separated from the crowne of England,
that finallie |831|
(notwithstanding the duke of Glocester, and certeine other were against them) it was decréed,
that the countrie and duchie of Aquitaine should remaine still in demesne of the crowne of
England, least that by this transporting thereof, it might fortune in time, that the heritage
thereof should fall into the hands of some stranger, and enimie to the English nation, so
that then the homage and souereigntie might perhaps be lost for euer. Indeed, the duke
of Glocester, being a prince of an high mind, & loth to haue the duke of Lancaster at
home, being so highlie in the kings fauor, could haue béene well pleased, that he should
haue enioied his gift, for that he thought thereby to haue borne all the rule about the
king, for the duke of Yorke was a man rather coueting to liue in pleasure, than to deale
with much businesse, and the weightie affaires of the realme.
Ambassadors sent into France to treat a marriage betwéene king Richard & the French K. daughter.
About the same time, or somewhat before, the king sent an ambassage to the French
king, the archbishop of Dublin, the earle of Rutland, the earle Marshall, the lord Beaumont,
the lord Spenser, the lord Clifford named Lewes, and twentie knights with fortie
esquiers. The cause of their going ouer, was to intreat of a marriage to be had betwixt
him, and the ladie Isabell, daughter to the French king, she being as then not past eight
yeares of age, which before had beene promised vnto the duke of Britaines sonne: but in
consideration of the great benefit that was likelie to insue by this communication and
aliance with England, there was a meane found to vndoo that knot, though not presentlie.
These English lords, at their comming to Paris, were ioifullie receiued, and so courteouslie
interteined, banketted, feasted, and cherished, and that in most honorable sort, as nothing
could be more: all their charges and expenses were borne by the French king, and when
they should depart, they receiued for answer of their message, verie comfortable words,
and so with hope to haue their matter sped, they returned.
Thom. Wals.
The duke of Lancaster marieth a ladie of a meane estate, whome he had kept as his concubine.
But now when the duke of Lancaster had, by laieng foorth an inestimable masse of
treasure purchased in a manner the good wils of them of Aquitaine, and compassed his
whole desire, he was suddenlie countermanded home by the king, and so to satisfie the
kings pleasure, he returned into England, and comming to the king at Langleie, where he
held his Christmasse, was receiued with more honor than loue, as was thought; wherevpon
he rode in all hast that might be to Lincolne, where Katharine Swinford as then laie,
whom shortlie after the Epiphanie, he tooke to wife. This woman was borne in Heinault,
daughter to a knight of that countrie, called sir Paou de Ruet: she was brought vp in hir
youth, in the duke of Lancasters house, and attended on his first wife the duchesse
Blanch of Lancaster, and in the daies of his second wife the duchesse Constance, he kept
the foresaid Katharine as his concubine, who afterwards was married to a knight of England,
named Swinford, that was now deceassed. Before she was married, the duke had by
hir three children, two sonnes and a daughter; one of the sons was named Thomas de
Beaufort, & the other Henrie, who was brought vp at Aken in Almaine, prooued a good
lawyer, and was after bishop of Winchester.
Wickleuists increase.
For the loue that the duke had to these his children, he married their mother the said
Katharine Swinford, being now a widow, whereof men maruelled much, considering hir
meane estate was farre vnmeet to match with his highnesse, and nothing comparable in
honor to his other two former wiues. And indeed, the great ladies of England, as the
duches of Glocester, the countesses of Derbie, Arundell and others, descended of the
blood roiall, greatlie disdeined, that she should be matched with the duke of Lancaster,
and by that means be accompted second person in the realme, and preferred in roome
before them, and therefore they said, that they would not come in anie place where she
should be present, for it should be a shame to them that a woman of so base birth, and
concubine to the duke in his other wiues daies, should go and haue place before them.
The duke of Glocester also, being a man of an high mind and stout stomach, misliked his
brothers matching so meanlie, but the duke of Yorke bare it well inough, and verelie, the
ladie hir selfe was a woman of such bringing vp, and honorable demeanor, that enuie could
not in the end but giue place to well deseruing. About this
season, the doctrine of |832|
Iohn Wickliffe still mightilie spred abroad héere in England. ¶ The schisme also
still continued in the church, betwixt the two factions of cardinals French and Romane;
for one of their popes could no sooner be dead, but that they ordeined an other in his
place.
The earle marshall affieth ye French kings daughter, in ye name of king Richard.
A truce for 30 yeares betwéene England and France. Tho. Walsin.
In this eighteenth yeare also was a woonderfull tempest of wind in the months of Iulie
and August, and also more speciallie in September, by violence whereof, in sundrie
places of this realme, great and woonderfull hurt was doone, both in churches and houses.
¶ The ambassadors that had béene latelie in France, about the treatie of the marriage
(as before yée haue heard) went thither againe, and so after that the two kings by sending
to and fro were growne to certaine points and couenants of agreement, the earle marshall,
by letters of procuration, married the ladie Isabell, in name of king Richard, so that from
thencefoorth she was called quéene of England.
Amongst other couenants and articles
of this marriage, there was a truce accorded, to indure betwixt the two realms of England
and France, for tearme of thirtie yeares. The pope wrote to king Richard, beseeching
him to assist the prelats against the Lollards (as they tearmed them) whom he pronounced
to be traitors, both to the church and kingdome, and therefore he besought
him to take order for the punishment of them, whom the prelats should denounce to be
heretikes.
The popes letters to K. Rich. against ye Wickleuists.
K. Richard goeth ouer to Calis.
At the same time, he sent a bull reuocatorie concerning religious men, that had either
at his hands or at the hands of his legats or nuncios purchased to be his chapleins, and
accompting themselues thereby exempt from their order; so that now they were by this
reuocatorie bull, appointed to returne to their order, and to obserue all rules thereto belonging.
This liked the friers well, namelie the minors, that sought by all means they
might deuise, how to bring their brethren home againe, which by such exemptions in
being the popes chapleins, were segregated and diuided from the residue of their fraternitie
or brotherhood. The king in this twentith yeare of his reigne, went ouer to Calis with
his vncles the dukes of Yorke and Glocester, and a great manie of other lords and ladies
of honour, and thither came to him the duke of Burgognie, and so they communed of the
peace. There was no enimie to the conclusion thereof but the duke of Glocester, who
shewed well by his words that he wished rather war than peace, in somuch as the king
stood in doubt of him, least he would procure some rebellion against him by his subiects,
whome he knew not to fauour greatlie this new aliance with France.
The maner of the interview betwéene king Richard and the French king. Fabian.
The king after the duke of Burgognie had talked with him throughlie of all things, and
was departed from him, returned into England (leauing the ladies still at Calis) to open
the couenants of the marriage and peace vnto his subiects, and after he had finished with
that businesse, and vnderstood their minds, he went againe to Calis, and with him his two
vncles, of Lancaster and Glocester, and diuerse prelats and lords of the realme; and
shortlie after came the French king to the bastide of Arde, accompanied with the dukes of
Burgognie, Berrie, Britaine and Burbon. There was set vp for the king of England a
right faire and rich pauilion a little beyond Guisnes within the English pale; and another
the like pauilion was pight vp also for the French king on this side Arde, within the French
dominion; so that betwéene the said pauilions was the distance of thréescore & ten pases,
and in the midwaie betwixt them both, was ordeined the third pauilion, at the which both
kings comming from either of their tents sundrie times should méet and haue communication
togither.
Froissard.
Fabian.
The oth of the two kings.
The distance betwixt the two tents was beset on either side in time of the interview with
knights armed with their swords in their hands; that is to say, on the one side stood foure
hundred French knights in armor with swords in their hands, and on the other side
foure hundred English knights armed with swords in their hands, making as it were a lane
betwixt them through the which the two kings came and met, with such noble men as were
appointed to attend them.
And a certeine distance from the two first pauilions, were
appointed to stand such companies of men as either of them by
appointment had |833|
couenanted to bring with them. The two kings before their méeting, receiued a solemne oth
for assurance of their faithfull and true meaning, to obserue the sacred lawes of amitie
one toward an other, in that their interview, so as no damage, violence, molestation, arrest,
disturbance, or other inconuenience should be practised by them, or their friends and
subiects: and that if anie disorder rose through anie mishappe, arrogancie, or strife
mooued by anie person, the same should be reformed, promising in the words of princes
to assist one an other in suppressing, the malice of such as should presume to doo or attempt
anie thing that might sound to the breach of friendlie amitie, during the time of that
assemblie eight daies before, and seuen daies after.
The chapell of our ladie of peace.
On the six and twentith of October, the king of England remooued from Calis toward
the castell of Guisnes, and with him the duke of Berrie, who was sent to take his oth.
The morow after, being the euen of Simon and Iude, the kings met, and the lords of
France, to wit, the duke of Berrie, Burgogne, Orleans, and Burbon, the earle of Sauoie,
the vicount of Meaux, and others conueied the king of England; and from him were
sent to conduct the French king diuerse of the English lords, as the two dukes of Lancaster
and Glocester, foure earles; to wit, of Derbie, Rutland, Notingham, and Northumberland.
After the two kings were come togither into the tent for that purpose prepared,
it was first accorded betwixt them, that in the same place where they thus met, should be
builded of both their costs a chapell for a perpetuall memorie, which should be called The
chapell of our ladie of peace. On saturdaie being the feast daie of the apostles Simon
and Iude, the kings talked togither of certeine articles touching the treatie of peace, and
hauing concluded vpon the same, they receiued either of them an oth vpon the holie
Euangelists, to obserue and kéepe all the couenants accorded vpon.
The French K. giueth his daughter to king Richard in marriage.
The order of the French kings seruice at table.
On the mondaie the French king came to the king of England his pauillion, and the
same time was brought thither the yoong queene Isabell daughter to the French king, who
there deliuered hir vnto king Richard, who taking hir by the hand kissed hir, & gaue to
hir father great thanks for that so honorable and gratious a gift, openlie protesting, that
vpon the conditions concluded betwixt them, he did receiue hir, that by such affinitie both
the realmes might continue in quietnesse, and come to a good end and perfect conclusion
of a perpetuall peace. The quéene was committed to the duchesses of Lancaster &
Glocester, to the countesses of Huntington and Stafford, to the marchionesse of Dublin
daughter to the lord Coucie, to the ladies of Namure, Poinings, and others: which with
a noble traine of men and horsses, conueied hir to Calis: for there were twelue charrets
full of ladies & gentlewomen. This doone, the kings came togither into the king of Englands
pauillion to dinner. The French king sate on the right side of the hall, and was
roiallie serued after the maner of his countrie, that is to saie, of all maner of meats
appointed to be serued at the first course in one mightie large dish or platter, and likewise
after the same sort at the second course. But the king of England was serued after
the English manner. When the tables were taken vp, and that they had made an end of
dinner, the kings kissed ech other, and tooke their horsses. The K. of England brought
the French king on his waie, and at length they tooke leaue either of other, in shaking
hands and imbracing on horssebacke. The French king rode to Arde, and the king of
England returned to Calis.
The expenses of king Richard at this interview.
The mariage solemnized at Calis.
¶ We
haue omitted (as things superfluous to speake of) all the honorable demenor
and courteous interteinement vsed and shewed betwixt these princes and noble men on
both parts, their sundrie feastings and banketings, what rich apparell, plate and other
furniture of cupboords and tables, the princelie gifts and rich iewels which were presented
from one to an other, striuing (as it might séeme) who should shew himselfe most bounteous
and liberall: beside the gifts which the king of England gaue vnto the French
king, and to the nobles of his realme (which amounted aboue the summe of ten thousand
marks) the K. of England spending at this time (as the fame went) aboue thrée hundred
thousand marks. After the kings returne to Calis on wednesdaie
next insuing, being All |834|
hallowes daie, in solemne wise he married the said ladie Isabell in the church of saint
Nicholas, the archbishop of Canturburie dooing the office of the minister.
The maior of London and the citizens meete the K. & the quéene on Blackeheath.
The thursdaie after, the dukes of Orleance and Burbon, came to Calis to sée the king
& the quéene: and on the fridaie they tooke their leaue and departed, and rode to saint
Omers to the French king. On the same daie in the morning the king and the queene
tooke their ship, and had faire passage: for within thrée houres they arriued at Douer,
from whence they sped them towards London, whereof the citizens being warned, made
out certeine horssemen, well appointed in one liuerie of colour, with a deuise imbrodered
on their sléeues, that euerie companie might be knowne from other, the which with the
maior and his brethren, clothed in skarlet, met the king and quéene on Blackeheath, and
there dooing their duties with humble reuerence attended vpon their maiesties till they
came to Newington: where the king comanded the maior with his companie to returne,
for that he was appointed to lodge that night at Kennington.
Certaine thrust to death in the prease on London bridge. Iohn Stow.
The quéens coronation.
The duke of Lancaster his bastards made legitimate by parlement.
The iustices reuoked out of exile.
Shortlie after, to wit, the thirteenth of Nouember, the yoong quéene was conueied from
thence with great pompe vnto the Tower, at which time there was such prease on London
bridge, that by reason thereof, certeine persons were thrust to death: among the which
the prior of Tiptrie, a place in Essex was one, and a worshipfull matrone in Cornehill an
other. The morrow after she was conueied to Westminster with all the honor that might
be deuised, and finallie there crowned queene vpon sundaie being then the seauenth of
Ianuarie. On the two and twentith of Ianuarie was a parlement begun at Westminster,
in which the duke of Lancaster caused to be legitimated the issue which he had begot
of Katharine Swinfort, before she was his wife. ¶ At the same time Thomas Beaufort
sonne to the said duke, by the said Katharine, was created earle of Summerset. ¶ There
was an ordinance made in the same parlement, that iustices should not haue anie to sit
with them as assistants. ¶ Moreouer there was a tenth granted by the clergie to be paied
to the kings vse at two seuerall termes in that present yeare. In this yeare the king
contrarie to his oth reuoked the iustices foorth of Ireland, whom by constraint (as before
ye haue heard) he was inforced to banish, thereby to satisfie the noble men that
would haue it so.
Brest yéelded vp to the duke of Britaine.
Priuie grudge betwixt the king and the duke of Glocester.
The talke betwixt the king and the duke of Glocester.
Out of a French pamphlet.
In this twentith yeare of his reigne king Richard receiuing the summes of monie (for
the which the strong towne of Brest was ingaged to him) by euill counsell (as manie
thought) deliuered it vnto the duke of Britaine, by reason whereof no small sparke of
displeasure arose betwixt the king and the duke of Glocester, which kindled vp such a
flame (as it was easie to doo) finding matter inough to féed vpon in both their brests,
that finallie it could no longer be kept downe, nor by any meanes quenched. In the
moneth of Februarie, the king holding a sumptuous feast at Westminster, many of the
soldiors that were newlie come from Brest preased into the hall, and kept a roome togither.
Whom as the duke of Glocester beheld, and vnderstood what they were, to
remember how that towne was giuen vp contrarie to his mind and pleasure, it grieued
him not a little: and therefore as the king was entred into his chamber, and few about
him, he could not forbeare, but brake foorth, and said to the king: “Sir, saw ye not
those felowes that sate in such number this daie in the hall, at such a table?” The king
answered that “he saw them,” and asked the duke what they were? To whom the
duke made this answer: “Sir, these be the soldiors that came from Brest, and haue
nothing now to take to, nor yet know how to shift for their liuings, and the worse, for
that (as I am informed) they haue béene euill paied.” Then said the king; “That is
against my will, for I would that they should haue their due wages; and if anie haue
cause to complaine, let them shew the matter to the treasuror, and they shall be reasonablie
answered:” and herewith he commanded that they should be appointed to foure
certeine villages about London, there to remaine, and to haue meate, drinke, and lodging
vpon his charges till they were paied.
Thus as they fell into reasoning of this matter, the duke said
to the king: “Sir, your |835|
grace ought to put your bodie in paine to win a strong hold or towne by feats of war,
yer you take vpon you to sell or deliuer anie towne or strong hold gotten with great
aduenture by the manhood and policie of your noble progenitours.” To this the king
with changed countenance answered and said: “Vncle, how say you that?” And the
duke boldlie without feare recited the same againe, not changing one word in anie better
sort. Wherevpon the king being more chafed, replied; “Sir, thinke you that I am a
merchant, or a verie foole, to sell my land? By saint Iohn Baptist no: but truth it is,
that our coosine the duke of Britaine hath satisfied vs in all such summes of monie as our
progenitors lent vnto him, and to his ancestors, vpon gage of the said towne of Brest, for
the which reason and conscience will no lesse but that the towne should therevpon be to
him restored.” Vpon this multiplieng of woords in such presumptuous maner by the
duke against the king, there kindeled such displeasure betwixt them, that it neuer ceassed
to increase into flames, till the duke was brought to his end.
The earle of saint Paule his counsell to K. Richard.
Polydor.
The earle of saint Paule at his last comming into England to receiue king Richards oth
for obseruing the truce, had conference with the king of diuerse matters. The king by
waie of complaint, shewed vnto him how stiffe the duke of Glocester was in hindering all
such matters as he would haue go forward, not onlie séeking to haue the peace broken
betwixt the realmes of England & France, but also procuring trouble at home, by stirring
the people to rebellion. The earle of saint Paule hearing of this stout demeanor of the
duke, told the king that it should be best to prouide in time against such mischéefs as
might insue thereof, and that it was not to be suffered, that a subiect should behaue himselfe
in such sort toward his prince. The king marking his woords, thought that he gaue
him good and faithfull counsell, and therevpon determined to suppresse both the duke
and other of his complices, and tooke more diligent regard to the saiengs & dooings of
the duke than before he had doone. And as it commeth to passe that those which suspect
anie euill, doo euer déeme the woorst; so he tooke euerie thing in euill part, insomuch
that he complained of the duke vnto his brethren the dukes of Lancaster and Yorke, in
that he should stand against him in all things and seeke his destruction, the death of his
counsellors, and ouerthrow of his realme.
The dukes of Lancaster & Yorke excuse the duke of Glocester to the king.
The two dukes of Lancaster and Yorke to deliuer the kings mind of suspicion, made
answer, that they were not ignorant, how their brother of Glocester, as a man sometime
rash in woords, would speake oftentimes more than he could or would bring to effect, and
the same proceeded of a faithfull hart, which he bare towards the king, for that it grieued
him to vnderstand, that the confines of the English dominions should in anie wise be
diminished: therefore his grace ought not to regard his woords, sith he should take no
hurt thereby. These persuasions quieted the king for a time, till he was informed of the
practise which the duke of Glocester had contriued (as the fame went amongst diuerse
persons) to imprison the king. For then the duke of Lancaster and Yorke, first reprouing
the duke of Glocester for his too liberall talking, vttering vnaduisedlie woords that
became not his person, and which to haue concealed had tended more to the opinion of
vertue, than to lash out whatsoeuer his vnstaied mind affoorded, which is a great fault
(as in effect the poet noteth:
Eximia est virtus præstare silentia rebus,
At contra grauis est culpa tacenda loqui)
and perceuing that he set nothing by their woords, were in doubt least if they should
remaine in the court still, he would vpon a presumptuous mind, in trust to be borne
out by them, attempt some outragious enterprise. Wherefore they thought best to depart
for a time into their countries, that by their absence he might the sooner learne to staie
himselfe for doubt of further displeasure. But it came to passe, that their departing
from the court was the casting awaie of the duke of Glocester. For after that they were
gone, there ceassed not such as bare him euill will, to procure the K. to dispatch him out
of the way. |836|
A conspiracie betwéene the duke of Glocester, and the abbat of saint Albons.
Out of an old French pamphlet belonging to Iohn Stow.
The duke in déed sore stomached the matter, that his counsell might not be followed
in all things, and speciallie for that he saw (as he tooke it) that the king was misled by
some persons that were about him, otherwise than stood with his honor: for reformation
whereof, he conferred with the abbat of saint Albons, and the prior of Westminster.
The abbat was both his coosine and godfather: and hauing on a daie both the duke and
the prior at his house in saint Albons, after dinner he fell in talke with the duke and prior,
and amongst other communication required of the prior to tell truth, whether he had
anie vision the night before or not. The prior séemed loth to make a direct answer;
but at length being earnestlie requested as well by the abbat as the duke, he declared
that he had a vision in déed, which was “that the realme of England should be destroied
through the misgouernement of king Richard.” “By the virgine Marie,” said the abbat,
“I had the verie same vision.” The duke herevpon disclosed vnto them all the secrets
of his mind, and by their deuises presentlie contriued an assemblie of diuerse great lords
of the realme at Arundell castell that daie fortnight, at what time he himselfe appointed
to be there, with the earles of Derbie, Arundell, Marshall, and Warwike: also the archbishop
of Canturburie, the abbat of saint Albons, the prior of Westminster, with diuerse
others.
The purpose of the conspirators.
The earle marshall discloseth the conspiracie.
These estates being come to Arundell castell at the daie appointed, about the verie
beginning of the one and twentith yeare of king Richards reigne, they sware ech to other
to be assistant in all such matters as they should determine, and therewith receiued the
sacrament at the hands of the archbishop of Canturburie, who celebrated masse before
them the morow after. Which doone, they withdrew into a chamber, and fell in
counsell togither, where in the end they light vpon this point; to take king Richard, the
dukes of Lancaster & Yorke, and commit them to prison, and all the other lords of the
kings counsell they determined shuld be drawne and hanged. Such was their purpose
which they ment to haue accomplished in August following. But the earle marshall that
was lord deputie of Calis, and had married the earle of Arundels daughter, discouered
all their counsell to the king, and the verie daie in which they should begin their enterprise.
The king bad the earle marshall take héed what he had said, for if it prooued not
true, he should repent it: but the earle constantlie herevnto answered, that if the matter
might be prooued otherwise, he was contented to be drawne and quartered.
The earle of Rutland saith R. Grafton.
The king herevpon went to London, where he dined at the house of his brother the
earle of Huntington in the stréet behind All hallowes church vpon the banke of the riuer
of Thames, which was a right faire and statelie house. After dinner, he gaue his
councell to vnderstand all the matter; by whose aduise it was agreed, that the king
should assemble foorthwith what power he might conuenientlie make of men of armes &
archers, and streightwaies take horsse, accompanied with his brother the earle of Huntington,
& the earle marshall. Herevpon at six of the clocke in the afternoone, the iust
houre when they vsed to go to supper, the king mounted on horssebacke, and rode his
waie; whereof the Londoners had great maruell. After that the king began to approch
the dukes house at Plashie in Essex, where he then laie, he commanded his brother the
earle of Huntington to ride afore, to know if the duke were at home, and if he were, then
to tell him that the king was comming at hand to speake with him.
The duke of Glocester arrested.
The earle with ten persons in his companie amending his pase (for the king had made
no great hast all the night before, as should appeare by his iournie) came to the house,
and entering into the court, asked if the duke were at home, and vnderstanding by a gentlewoman
that made him answer, that both the duke and duchesse were yet in bed, he
besought hir to go to the duke, and to shew him that the king was comming at hand to
speake with him, and foorthwith came the king with a competent number of men of
armes, and a great companie of archers, riding into the base court, his trumpets sounding
before him. The duke herewith came downe into the base court, where the king was,
hauing none other apparell vpon him, but his shirt, and a cloke
or a mantell cast about |837|
his shoulders, and with humble reuerence said that his grace was welcome, asking of the
lords how it chanced they came so earlie, and sent him no word of their comming? The
king herewith courteouslie requested him to go and make him readie, and appoint his
horsse to be sadled, for that he must needs ride with him a little waie, and conferre with
him of businesse. The duke went vp againe into his chamber to put vpon him his clothes,
and the king alighting from his horsse, fell in talke with the duchesse and hir ladies. The
earle of Huntington and diuerse other followed the duke into the hall, and there staied
for him, till he had put on his raiment. And within a while they came foorth againe all
togither into the base court, where the king was deliting with the duchesse in pleasant talke,
whom he willed now to returne to hir lodging againe, for he might staie no longer, and
so tooke his horsse againe, and the duke likewise. But shortlie after that the king and
all his companie were gone foorth of the gate of the base court, he commanded the earle
marshall to apprehend the duke, which incontinentlie was doone according to the kings
appointment.
Out of an old French pamphlet.
¶ Here
we find some variance in writers. For as by an old French pamphlet (which
I haue séene) it should appeare, the king commanded first, that this duke should be
conueied vnto the tower, where he ment to commen with him, & not in any other place:
but neuerthelesse, the king shortlie after appointed, that he should be sent to Calis, as
in the same pamphlet is also conteined. Other write, that immediatlie vpon his apprehension,
the earle marshall conueied him vnto the Thames, and there being set aboord
in a ship prepared of purpose, he was brought to Calis, where he was at length dispatched
out of life, either strangled or smoothered with pillowes (as some doo write.) For the
king thinking it not good, that the duke of Glocester should stand to his answer openlie,
because the people bare him so much good will, sent one of his iustices called William
Kikill, an Irishman borne, ouer vnto Calis, there to inquire of the duke of Glocester,
whether he had committed any such treasons as were alledged against him, and the earles
of Arundell and Warwike, as after shall be specified. Iustice Kikill hearing what he
confessed vpon his examination, wrote the same as he was commanded to doo, and
therewith spéedilie returned to the king, and as it hath beene reported, he informed the
king (whether trulie or not, I haue not to say) that the duke franklie confessed euerie
thing, wherewith he was charged. Wherevpon the king sent vnto Thomas Mowbraie
earle marshall and of Notingham, to make the duke secretlie awaie.
† For he was son to a king, and vncle to a king.
The earle prolonged time for the executing of the kings commandement, though the
king would haue had it doone with all expedition, wherby the king conceiued no small
displeasure, and sware that it should cost the earle his life if he quickly obeied not his
commandement. The earle thus as it séemed in maner inforced, called out the duke at
midnight, as if he should haue taken ship to passe ouer into England, and there in the
lodging called the princes In, he caused his seruants to cast featherbeds vpon him, and so
smoother him to death, or otherwise to strangle him with towels (as some write.) This
was the end of that † nobleman, fierce of nature, hastie, wilfull, and giuen more to war
than to peace: and in this greatlie to be discommended, that he was euer repining against
the king in all things, whatsoeuer he wished to haue forward. He was thus made awaie
not so soone as the brute ran of his death. But (as it should appeare by some authors)
he remained aliue till the parlement that next insued, and then about the same time that
the earle of Arundell suffered, he was dispatched (as before ye haue heard.) His bodie
was afterwards with all funerall pompe conueied into England, and buried at his owne
manor of Plashie within the church there, in a sepulchre which he in his life time had
caused to be made, and there erected.
The earle of Arundell apprehended.
The same euening that the king departed from London towards Plashie, to apprehend
the duke of Glocester, the earle of Rutland and the earle of Kent were sent with a great
number of men of armes and archers to arrest the erle of Arundell; which was doone
easilie inough, by reason that the said earle was trained with faire words at
the kings |838|
hands, till he was within his danger: where otherwise he might haue béene able to haue
saued himselfe, and deliuered his fréends. The earle of Warwike was taken, and committed
to the tower the same day that the king had willed him to dinner, and shewed him
verie good countenance. There were also apprehended and committed to the tower the
same time, the lord Iohn Cobham, and sir Iohn Cheinie knights. The earle of Arundell
was sent to the Ile of Wight, there to remaine as prisoner, till the next parlement, in the
which he determined so to prouide, that they should be all condemned, and put to death.
And for doubt of some commotion that might arise amongst the commons, he caused it
by open proclamation to be signified, that these noblemen were not apprehended for any
offense committed long agone, but for new trespasses against the king, as in the next parlement
should be manifestlie declared and prooued.
The names of the appellants.
A gard of Cheshire men about the king.
Shortlie after, he procured them to be indicted at Notingham, suborning such as should
appeale them in parlement, to wit, Edward earle of Rutland, Thomas Mowbraie earle
marshall, Thomas Holland earle of Kent, Iohn Holland earle of Huntington, Thomas
Beaufort erle of Summerset, Iohn Montacute earle of Salisburie, Thomas lord Spenser,
and the lord William Scroope lord chamberleine. In the meane time, the king fearing
what might be attempted against him by those that fauoured these noblemen that were in
durance, sent for a power of Cheshire men, that might day and night keepe watch and
ward about his person. They were about two thousand archers, paid wéekelie, as by
the annales of Britaine it appeareth. The king had little trust in any of the nobilitie, except
in his brother the earle of Huntington, and the earle of Rutland sonne to the duke
of Yorke, and in the earle of Salisburie: in these onelie he reposed a confidence, and
not in any other, except in certeine knights and gentlemen of his priuie chamber.
The lords appointed to come in warlike manner to the parlemēt.
Polydor.
The dukes of Lancaster & Yorke assemble their powers to resist the kings dealings.
In the meane time, whiles things were thus in broile, before the beginning of the parlement,
diuers other, beside them of whom we haue spoken, were apprehended and put
in sundrie prisons. The parlement was summoned to begin at Westminster the 17 of September,
and writs therevpon directed to euerie of the lords to appeare, and to bring with
them a sufficient number of armed men and archers in their best arraie: for it was not
knowen how the dukes of Lancaster and Yorke would take the death of their brother,
nor how other péeres of the realme would take the apprehension and imprisonment of
their kinsemen, the earls of Arundell and Warwike, and of the other prisoners. Suerlie
the two dukes when they heard that their brother was so suddenlie made awaie, they wist
not what to saie to the matter, and began both to be sorowfull for his death, and doubtfull
of their owne states: for sith they saw how the king (abused by the counsell of euill
men) abstained not from such an heinous act, they thought he would afterwards attempt
greater misorders from time to time. Therefore they assembled in all hast, great numbers
of their seruants, fréends, and tenants, and comming to London, were receiued into
the citie. For the Londoners were right sorie for the death of the duke of Glocester, who
had euer sought their fauour, in somuch that now they would haue béene contented to
haue ioined with the dukes in seeking reuenge of so noble a mans death, procured and
brought to passe without law or reason, as the common brute then walked; although
peraduenture he was not as yet made awaie.
Caxton. Fabian. Polydor.
Here the dukes and other fell in counsell, and manie things were proponed. Some
would that they shuld by force reuenge the duke of Glocesters death, other thought it
méet that the earles Marshall and Huntington, and certeine others, as chéefe authours
of all the mischeefe should be pursued and punished for their demerites, hauing trained
vp the king in vice and euill customes, euen from his youth. But the dukes (after their
displeasure was somewhat asswaged) determined to couer the stings of their griefes for
a time, and if the king would amend his maners, to forget also the iniuries past. In the
meane time the king laie at Eltham, and had got about him a great power (namelie of
those archers, which he had sent for out of Cheshire, in whome he put a singular trust
more than in any other.) |839|
The king and the dukes reconciled.
There went messengers betwixt him and the dukes, which being men of honour did
their indeuour to appease both parties. The king discharged himselfe of blame for the
duke of Glocesters death, considering that he had gone about to breake the truce, which
he had taken with France, and also stirred the people of the realme to rebellion, and
further had sought the destruction and losse of his life, that was his souereigne lord and
lawfull king. Contrarilie, the dukes affirmed, that their brother was wrongfullie put to
death, hauing doone nothing worthie of death. At length, by the intercession and meanes
of those noble men that went to and fro betwixt them, they were accorded, & the king
promised from thencefoorth to doo nothing but by the assent of the dukes: but he kept
small promise in this behalfe, as after well appeared.
Caxton.
The great parlement.
When the time came, that the parlement should be holden at Westminster, according
to the tenour of the summons, the lords repaired thither, furnished with great retinues
both of armed men and archers, as the earle of Derbie, the earle Marshall, the earle of
Rutland, the lord Spenser, the earle of Northumberland, with his sonne the lord Henrie
Persie, and the lord Thomas Persie the said earles brother, also the lord Scroope treasuror
of England, & diuerse other. All the which earles and lords brought with them
a great & strong power, euerie of them in their best araie, as it were to strengthen the
king against his enimies. The dukes of Lancaster and Yorke were likewise there, giuing
their attendance on the king with like furniture of men of armes & archers. There was
not halfe lodging sufficient within the citie & suburbes of London for such cōpanies of men
as the lords brought with them to this parlement, called the great parlement: in somuch
that they were constreined to lie in villages abroad ten or twelue miles on ech side the
citie.
The kings gréeuances opened in this parlement.
Tho. Walsing. Iohn Bushie, William Bagot, Thomas Gréene.
A new house made within the palace of Westminster for the areignment of the lords indicted. Additions to Polychron.
Sir Iohn Bushie speaker.
In the beginning of this parlement, the king greatlie complained of the misdemeanour
of the péeres and lords of his realme, as well for the things doone against his will and
pleasure, whiles he was yoong, as for the streit dealing, which they had shewed towards
the quéene, who was thrée houres at one time on hir knees before the earle of Arundell,
for one of hir esquiers, named Iohn Caluerlie, who neuerthelesse had his head smit frō
his shoulders, & all the answer that she could get, was this: “Madame, praie for yourselfe,
and your husband, for that is best, and let this sute alone.” Those that set foorth
the kings greeuances, as prolocutors in this parlement were these: Iohn Bushie, William
Bagot and Thomas Gréene. The king had caused a large house of timber to be made
within the palace at Westminster, which he was called an hall, couered aboue head with
tiles, and was open at the ends, that all men might see through it. This house was of so
great a compasse, that scarse it might stand within the roome of the palace. In this house
was made an high throne for the king, and a large place for all estates besides to sit in.
There were places also made for the appellants to stand on the one side, and the defendants
on the other, and a like roome was made behind for the knights and burgesses
of the parlement. There was a place deuised for the speaker, named sir Iohn Bushie,
a knight of Lincolnshire, accompted to be an exceeding cruell man, ambitious, and
couetous beyond measure.
The archbishop of Canturburie sitting in parlement is accused of treason by the speaker.
Immediatlie after, ech man being placed in his roome, the cause of assembling that
parlement was shewed, as that the king had called it for reformation of diuerse transgressions
and oppressions committed against the peace of his land by the duke of Glocester,
the earles of Arundell, Warwike, and others. Then sir Iohn Bushie stept foorth,
and made request on the behalfe of the communaltie, that it might please the kings highnesse
for their heinous acts attempted against his lawes and roiall maiestie, to appoint
them punishment according to their deseruings, and speciallie to the archbishop of Canturburie
(who then sat next the king) whome he accused of high treason, for that he had
euill counselled his maiestie, inducing him to grant his letters of pardon to his brother the
earle of Arundell, being a ranke traitor.
Impudent flatterie.
When the archbishop began to answer in his owne defense, the
king willed him to sit |840|
downe againe and to hold his peace, for all should be well. Herewith sir Iohn Bushie
besought the king, that the archbishop should not be admitted to make his answer, which
if he did, by reason of his great wit and good vtterance, he feared least he should lead
men awaie to beléeue him: so the archbishop might be heard no further. Sir Iohn
Bushie in all his talke, when he proponed any matter vnto the king, did not attribute to
him titles of honour, due and accustomed, but inuented vnused termes and such strange
names, as were rather agreeable to the diuine maiestie of God, than to any earthlie potentate.
The prince being desirous inough of all honour, and more ambitious than was
requisite, seemed to like well of his speech, and gaue good eare to his talke.
Tho. Walsi.
Thus when the archbishop was constreined to keepe silence, sir Iohn Bushie procéeded
in his purpose, requiring on the behalfe of the commons, that the charters of pardons
granted vnto the traitors, to wit, the duke of Glocester, and the earles of Arundell and
Warwike, should be reuoked by consent of all the estates now in parlement assembled.
The king also for his part protested, that those pardons were not voluntarilie granted by
him, but rather extorted by compulsion, and therefore he besought them that euerie
man would shew foorth their opinions what they thought thereof. There were two other
persons of great credit with the king, besides sir Iohn Bushie, that were, as before yee haue
heard, verie earnest to haue those charters of pardon reuoked and made void, to wit, sir
William Bagot, and sir Thomas Gréene.
But bicause this matter séemed to require good deliberation, it was first put to the
bishops, who with small adoo gaue sentence, that the said charters were reuocable, and
might well inough be called in: yet the archbishop of Canturburie in his answer herevnto
said, that the king from whome those pardons came, was so high an estate, that he durst
not saie, that anie such charters by him granted, might be reuoked: notwithstanding,
his brethren the bishops thought otherwise: not considering (saith Thomas Walsingham)
that such reuoking of the kings charters of pardon should sound highlie to the kings dishonor:
forsomuch as mercie and pardoning transgressions is accompted to be the confirmation
and establishing of the kings seat and roiall estate.
The charters of pardō granted to ye lords made void by parlement.
The temporall lords perceiuing what the bishops had doone, did likewise giue their
consents, to reuoke the same pardons: but the iudges with those that were toward the
law, were not of this opinion, but finallie the bishops pretending a scrupulositie, as if
they might not with safe consciences be present where iudgement of bloud should passe,
they appointed a laie man to be their prolocutor to serue that turne. To conclude, at
length all maner of charters of pardon were made void, for that the same séemed to impeach
the suertie of the kings person. When sir Iohn Bushie and his associats had obteined
that reuocation, it was further by them declared, that the earle of Arundell had
yet an other speciall charter of pardon for his owne person, which he had obteined after
the first. And therefore sir Iohn Bushie earnestlie requested in name of the communaltie
that the same might likewise be reuoked.
Thom. Wals.
The archb. of Canturburie condemned to perpetuall banishment.
Six daies saith Grafton.
The question then was asked of the bishops, who declared themselues to be of the like
opinion, touching that charter, as they were of the other. At that selfe time the archbishop
of Canturburie absented himselfe from the parlement, in hope that the king would
be his fréend, and stand his verie good lord, for that he had promised nothing should be
doone against him in the parlement whilest he was absent. But neuerthelesse, at the importunate
sute of the said sir Iohn Bushie and others, the archbishop was condemned vnto
perpetuall exile, and appointed to auoid the realme within six wéekes. And therewith the
king sent secretlie to the pope for order that the archbishop might be remooued from his
sée to some other, which sute was obteined, and Roger Walden lord treasuror was ordeined
archbishop in his place, as after shall appeare.
The earle of Arundell areigned.
The duke of Lācaster high Steward of England at this areignement.
On the feast daie of saint Matthew, Richard fitz Aleine, earle of Arundell, was
brought foorth to sweare before the king and whole parlement to such articles as he was
to be charged with. And as he stood at the bar, the lord Neuill
was commanded by the |841|
duke of Lancaster, which sat that daie as high steward of England, to take the hood from
his necke, and the girdle from his waste. Then the duke of Lancaster declared vnto him,
that for his manifold rebellions and treasons against the kings maiestie he had béene
arrested, and hitherto kept in ward, and now at the petition of the lords and commons,
he was called to answer such crimes as were there to be obiected against him, and so to
purge himselfe, or else to suffer for his offenses, such punishment as law appointed.
The earle of Arundell his answers to the points of his indictmēt.
First, he charged him, for that he had traitorouslie rid in armour against the king in
companie of the duke of Glocester, and of the earle of Warwike, to the breach of peace
and disquieting of the realme. His answer herevnto was, that he did not this vpon anie
euill meaning towards the kings person, but rather for the benefit of the king and relme,
if it were interpreted aright, and taken as it ought to be. It was further demanded of
him, whie he procured letters of pardon from the K. if he knew himselfe giltlesse? He
answered, that he did not purchase them for anie feare he had of faults committed by him,
but to staie the malicious speach of them that neither loued the king nor him. He was
againe asked, whether he would denie that he had made anie such rode with the persons
before named, and that in companie of them he entred not armed vnto the kings presence
against the kings will and pleasure? To this he answered, that he could not denie it,
but that he so did.
The earle of Arundell condemned.
Then the speaker sir Iohn Bushie, with open mouth, besought that iudgement might be
had against such a traitour: “and your faithfull commons (said he to the king) aske and
require that so it may be doone.” The earle turning his head aside, quietlie said to him;
“Not the kings faithfull cōmons require this, but thou, and what thou art I know.”
Then the eight appellants standing on the other side, cast their gloues to him, and in
prosecuting their appeale (which alreadie had béene read) offered to fight with him man
to man to iustifie the same. Then said the earle, “If I were at libertie, and that it might
so stand with the pleasure of my souereigne, I would not refuse to prooue you all liers in
this behalfe.” Then spake the duke of Lancaster, saieng to him; “What haue you further
to saie to the points before laid against you?” He answered, “that of the kings
grace he had his letters of generall pardon, which he required to haue allowed.” Then
the duke told him, “that the pardon was reuoked by the prelates and noble men in the
parlement, and therefore willed him to make some other answer.” The earle told him againe
“that he had an other pardon vnder the kings great seale, granted him long after of the
kings owne motion, which also he required to haue allowed.” The duke told him, “that the
same was likewise reuoked.” After this, when the earle had nothing more to saie for
himselfe, the duke pronounced iudgement against him, as in cases of treason is
vsed.
But after he had made an end, and paused a little, he said: “The king our souereigne lord of his mercie and grace, bicause thou art of his bloud, and one of the peeres of the realme, hath remitted all the other paines, sauing the last, that is to saie, the beheading, and so thou shalt onelie lose thy head;” and forthwith he was had awaie, & led through London vnto the Tower hill. There went with him to sée the execution doone six great lords, of whome there were thrée earles, Notingham (that had married his daughter) Kent (that was his daughters son) and Huntington, being mounted on great horsses, with a great companie of armed men, and the fierce bands of the Cheshire-men, furnished with axes, swords, bowes and arrowes, marching before and behind him, who onelie in this parlement had licence to beare weapon, as some haue written. When he should depart the palace, he desired that his hands might be losed to dispose such monie as he had in his pursse, betwixt that place and Charingcrosse. This was permitted, and so he gaue such monie as he had in almes with his owne hands, but his armes were still bound behind him.
The executiō of the earle of Arundell.
When he came to the Tower hill, the noble men that were about him, mooued him
right earnestlie to acknowledge his treason against the king.
But he in no wise would |842|
so doo, but mainteined that he was neuer traitour in word or deed: and herewith perceiuing
the earles of Notingham and Kent, that stood by with other noble men busie to
further the execution (being as yée haue heard) of kin and alied to him, he spake to
them, and said: “Trulie it would haue beséemed you rather to haue béene absent than
here at this businesse. But the time will come yer it be long, when as manie shall
meruell at your misfortune as doo now at mine.” After this, forgiuing the executioner, he
besought him not to torment him long, but to strike off his head at one blowe, and féeling
the edge of the sword, whether it was sharpe inough or not, he said; “It is verie well,
doo that thou hast to doo quicklie,” and so knéeling downe, the executioner with one
stroke, strake off his head: his bodie was buried togither with his head in the church of
the Augustine friers in Breadstréet within the citie of London.
Ouid.
The death of this earle was much lamented among the people, considering his sudden
fall and miserable end, where as not long before among all the noblemen of this land
(within the which was such a number, as no countrie in the world had greater store at that
present) there was none more esteemed: so noble and valiant he was, that all men spake
honour of him. After his death, as the fame went, the king was sore vexed in his sléepe
with horrible dreames, imagining that he saw this earle appeare vnto him threatning
him, & putting him in horrible feare, as if he had said with the
poet to king Richard;
Nunc quóq; factorum venio memor vmbra tuorum,
Insequor & vultus ossea forma tuos.
With which visions being sore troubled in sleepe, he curssed the daie that euer he knew
the earle. And he was the more vnquiet, bicause he heard it reported, that the common
people tooke the erle for a martyr, insomuch that some came to visit the place of his
sepulture, for the opinion they had conceiued of his holinesse. And where it was bruted
abroad as for a miracle, that his head should be growne to his bodie againe, the tenth daie
after his buriall, the king sent about ten of the clocke in the night, certeine of the nobilitie
to sée his bodie taken vp, that he might be certified of the truth. Which doone, and perceiuing
it was a fable, he commanded the friers to take downe his armes that were set vp about the
place of his buriall, and to couer the graue, so as it should not be perceiued where he was buried.
The earle of Warwike arreigned of treason.
But now to returne to the parlement. After the death of this earle, the lord Thomas
Beauchampe earle of Warwike was brought forth to abide his triall by parlement, and
when his accusers charged him in like points of treason, such as before were imposed to
the earle of Arundell; he answered that he neuer meant euill to the kings person, nor
thought that those rodes and assemblies that were made in companie of the duke of
Glocester, the earle of Arundell, and others, might not be accompted treason. But when
the iudges had shewed him, that they could not be otherwise taken than for treason, he humbly
besought the king of mercy and grace. The king then asked of him whether he had rid with the
duke of Glocester, and the earle of Arundell, as had beene alledged? He answered that he
could not denie it, and wished that he had neuer seene them. Then said the king, Doo yee
not know that you are guiltie of treason? He answered againe, I acknowledge it; and with
sobbing teares besought all them that were present, to make intercession to the kings
maiestie for him.
Then the king and the duke of Lancaster communed, and after the king had a while
with silence considered of the matter, he said to the earle; By saint Iohn Baptist,
Thomas of Warwike, this confession that thou hast made, is vnto me more auailable
than all the duke of Glocesters and the earle of Warwikes lands. Herewith the earle
making still intercession for pardon, the lords humblie besought the king to grant it.
Finallie the king pardoned him of life, but banished him into the Ile of Man, which then
was the lord Scroopes, promising that both he, and his wife, and children, should haue
good enterteinment. Which promise notwithstanding was but slenderlie kept, for both
the earle and the countesse liued in great penurie (as some write) and yet the lord
Scroope, that was lord chamberleine, had allowed for the earles diet foure thousand nobles
yéerelie paid out of the kings coffers. |843|
The parlemēt adiourned to Shrewsburie.
On the mondaie next after the arreignement of the earle of Warwike, to wit, the foure
and twentie of September, was the lord Iohn Cobham, and sir Iohn Cheinie arreigned,
and found guiltie of like treasons for which the other had beene condemned before: but
at the earnest instance and sute of the nobles, they were pardoned of life, and banished,
or (as Fabian saith) condemned to perpetuall prison. ¶ The king desirous to see the
force of the Londoners, caused them (during the time of this parlement) to muster before
him on Blacke heath, where a man might haue seene a great number of able personages.
And now after that the parlement had continued almost till Christmasse, it was adiourned
vntill the quinden of S. Hilarie, then to begin againe at Shrewesburie.
The king keepeth his Christmasse at Lichfield.
Cheshire made a principalitie.
K. Richard prince of Chester.
Creation of dukes and earles.
The king then came downe to Lichfield, and there held a roiall Christmasse, which
being ended, he tooke his iournie towards Shrewesburie, where the parlement was appointed
to begin in the quinden of saint Hilarie, as before yée haue heard. In which
parlement there holden vpon prorogation, for the loue that the king bare to the gentlemen
commons of the shire of Chester, he caused it to be ordeined that from thencefoorth
it should be called and knowne by the name of the principalitie of Chester: and herewith
he intituled himselfe prince of Chester. He held also a roiall feast, kéeping open houshold
for all honest commers, during the which feast, he created fiue dukes and a duchesse, a
marquesse, and foure earles. The earle of Derbie was created duke of Hereford, the
earle of Notingham that was also earle marshall duke of Norfolke, the earle of Rutland
duke of Aubemarle, the earle of Kent duke of Surrie, and the earle of Huntington duke of
Excester; the ladie Margaret marshall countesse of Norfolke, was created duchesse of
Norfolke; the earle of Summerset marques Dorset, the lord Spenser earle of Glocester,
the lord Neuill surnamed Daurabie earle of Westmerland, the lord William Scroope lord
chamberleine earle of Wiltshire, and the lord Thomas Persie lord steward of the kings
house earle of Worcester.
K. Richard beareth saint Edward his armes.
And for the better maintenance of the estate of these noble men, whome he had thus
aduanced to higher degrees of honour, he gaue vnto them a great part of those lands that
belonged to the duke of Glocester, the earles of Warwike, and Arundell. And now he
was in good hope, that he had rooted vp all plants of treason, and therefore cared lesse
who might be his freend or his fo, than before he had doone, estéeming himselfe higher in
degrée than anie prince liuing, and so presumed further than euer his grandfather did,
and tooke vpon him to beare the armes of saint Edward, ioining them vnto his owne armes.
To conclude, whatsoeuer he then did, none durst speake a word contrarie therevnto.
And yet such as were cheefe of his councell, were estéemed of the commons to be the
woorst creatures that might be, as the dukes of Aumarle, Norfolke and Excester, the
earle of Wiltshire, sir Iohn Bushie, sir William Bagot, and sir Thomas Gréene: which
thrée last remembred were knights of the Bath, against whom the commons vndoubtedlie
bare great and priuie hatred.
The L. Reginald Cobham condemned.
The authoritie of both houses in parlement granted to certaine persons.
Thom. Wals.
But now to proceed. In this parlement holden at Shrewsburie, the lord Reginald Cobham,
being a verie aged man, simple and vpright in all his dealings, was condemned for
none other cause, but for that in the eleuenth yéere of the kings reigne he was appointed
with other to be attendant about the king as one of his gouernours. The acts and ordinances
also deuised and established in the parlement holden in the eleuenth yeare were
likewise repealed. Moreouer, in this parlement at Shrewesburie, it was decréed, that the
lord Iohn Cobham should be sent into the Ile of Gernesie, there to remains in exile, hauing
a small portion assigned him to liue vpon. The king so wrought & brought things
about, that he obteined the whole power of both houses to be granted to certeine persons,
as to Iohn duke of Lancaster, Edmund duke of Yorke, Edmund duke of Aumarle, Thomas
duke of Surrie, Iohn duke of Excester, Iohn marquesse Dorset, Roger earle of
March, Iohn earle of Salisburie, and Henrie earle of Northumberland, Thomas earle of
Glocester, and William earle of Wiltshire, Iohn Hussie, Henrie Cheimeswike, Robert
Teie, and Iohn Goulofer knights, or to seauen or eight of them. These were appointed
to heare and determine certeine petitions and matters yet depending
and not ended: but |844|
by vertue of this grant, they procéeded to conclude vpon other things, which generallie
touched the knowledge of the whole parlement, in derogation of the states therof, to the
disaduantage of the king, and perillous example in time to come.
The K. procureth the popes buls against the breakers of his statute.
When the king had spent much monie in time of this parlement, he demanded a disme
and a halfe of the cleargie, and a fiftéenth of the temporaltie. Finallie, a generall pardon
was granted for all offenses to all the kings subiects (fiftie onelie excepted) whose names
he would not by anie meanes expresse, but reserued them to his owne knowledge, that
when anie of the nobilitie offended him, he might at his plesure name him to be one of the
number excepted, and so kéepe them still within his danger. To the end that the ordinances,
iudgements, and acts made, pronounced and established in this parlement, might
be and abide in perpetuall strength and force, the king purchased the popes buls, in which
were conteined greeuous censures and cursses, pronounced against all such as did by anie
means go about to breake and violate the statutes in the same parlement ordeined. These
buls were openlie published & read at Paules crosse in London, and in other the most
publike places of the realme.
Rightfull heires disherited.
Polydor.
K. Richard his euill gouernment.
Manie other things were doone in this parlement, to the displeasure of no small number
of people; namelie, for that diuerse rightfull heires were disherited of their lands and
liuings, by authoritie of the same parlement: with which wrongfull dooings the people
were much offended, so that the king and those that were about him, and chéefe in councell,
came into great infamie and slander. In déed the king after he had dispatched the
duke of Glocester, and the other noblemen, was not a little glad, for that he knew them
still readie to disappoint him in all his purposes; and therefore being now as it were carelesse,
did not behaue himselfe (as some haue written) in such discréet order, as manie
wished: but rather (as in time of prosperitie it often happeneth) he forgot himselfe, and
began to rule by will more than by reason, threatning death to each one that obeied not his
inordinate desires. By means whereof, the lords of the realme began to feare their
owne estates, being in danger of his furious outrage, whome they tooke for a man destitute
of sobrietie and wisedome, and therefore could not like of him, that so abused his
authoritie.
The duke of Hereford appealeth the duke of Norfolk of treson. Thom. Wals.
Herevpon there were sundrie of the nobles, that lamented these mischéefes, and speciallie
shewed their greefes vnto such, by whose naughtie counsell they vnderstood the king
to be misled; and this they did, to the end that they being about him, might either turne
their copies, and giue him better counsell; or else he hauing knowledge what euill report
went of him, might mend his maners misliked of his nobles. But all was in vaine, for
so it fell out, that in this parlement holden at Shrewsburie, Henrie duke of Hereford
accused Thomas Mowbraie duke of Norfolke, of certeine words which he should vtter in
talke had betwixt them, as they rode togither latelie before betwixt London and Brainford,
sounding highlie to the kings dishonor. And for further proofe thereof, he presented a
supplication to the king, wherein he appealed the duke of Norfolke in field of battell, for
a traitor, false and disloiall to the king, and enimie vnto the realme. This supplication
was red before both the dukes, in presence of the king: which doone, the duke of Norfolke
tooke vpon him to answer it, declaring that whatsoeuer the duke of Hereford had
said against him other than well, he lied falselie like an vntrue knight as he was. And
when the king asked of the duke of Hereford what he said to it: he taking his hood off
his head, said; “My souereigne lord, euen as the supplication which I tooke you
importeth, right so I saie for truth, that Thomas Mowbraie duke of Norfolke is a traitour,
false and disloiall to your roiall maiestie, your crowne, and to all the states of your
realme.”
The duke of Surrie marshall and the duke of Aumarle constable of England.
Then the duke of Norfolke being asked what he said to this, he answered: “Right
déere lord, with your fauour that I make answer vnto your coosine here, I saie (your
reuerence saued) that Henrie of Lancaster duke of Hereford, like a false and disloiall
traitor as he is, dooth lie, in that he hath or shall say of me otherwise
than well.” No |845|
more said the king, we haue heard inough: and herewith commanded the duke of Surrie
for that turne marshall of England, to arrest in his name the two dukes: the duke of
Lancaster father to the duke of Hereford, the duke of Yorke the duke of Aumarle constable
of England: and the duke of Surrie marshall of the realme vndertooke as pledges
bodie for bodie for the duke of Hereford: but the duke of Northfolke was not suffered to
put in pledges, and so vnder arrest was led vnto Windsor castell, and there garded with
kéepers that were appointed to sée him safelie kept.
The order of the procéeding in this appeale.
Now after the dissoluing of the parlement at Shrewsburie, there was a daie appointed
about six wéeks after, for the king to come vnto Windsor, to heare and to take some order
betwixt the two dukes, which had thus appealed ech other. There was a great scaffold
erected within the castell of Windsor for the king to sit with the lords and prelats of his
realme: and so at the daie appointed, he with the said lords & prelats being come thither
and set in their places, the duke of Hereford appellant, and the duke of Norfolke defendant,
were sent for to come & appeare before the king, sitting there in his seat of iustice.
And then began sir Iohn Bushie to speake for the king, declaring to the lords how they
should vnderstand, that where the duke of Hereford had presented a supplication to the
king, who was there set to minister iustice to all men that would demand the same, as
apperteined to his roiall maiestie, he therefore would now heare what the parties could say
one against an other, and withall the king commanded the dukes of Aumarle and Surrie,
the one being constable, and the other marshall, to go vnto the two dukes, appellant and
defendant, requiring them on his behalfe, to grow to some agréement: and for his part, he
would be readie to pardon all that had beene said or doone amisse betwixt them, touching
anie harme or dishonor to him or his realme: but they answered both assuredlie, that it
was not possible to haue anie peace or agréement made betwixt them.
When he heard what they had answered, he commanded that they should be brought foorthwith before his presence, to heare what they would say. Herewith an herald in the kings name with lowd voice commanded the dukes to come before the king, either of them to shew his reason, or else to make peace togither without more delaie. When they were come before the king and lords, the king spake himselfe to them, willing them to agree, and make peace togither: “for it is (said he) the best waie ye can take.” The duke of Norfolke with due reuerence herevnto answered it could not be so brought to passe, his honor saued. Then the king asked of the duke of Hereford, “what it was that he demanded of the duke of Norfolke, and what is the matter that ye can not make peace togither and become friends?”
The obiection against the duke of Norfolke.
Then stood foorth a knight; who asking and obteining licence to speake for the duke of
Hereford, said; “Right deare and souereigne lord, here is Henrie of Lancaster duke of
Hereford and earle of Derbie, who saith, and I for him likewise say, that Thomas Mowbraie
duke of Norfolke is a false and disloiall traitor to you and your roiall maiestie, and
to your whole realme: and likewise the duke of Hereford saith and I for him, that
Thomas Mowbraie duke of Norfolke hath receiued eight thousand nobles to pay the souldiers
that keepe your towne of Calis, which he hath not doone as he ought: and furthermore
the said duke of Norfolke hath béene the occasion of all the treason that hath beene
contriued in your realme for the space of these eighteene yeares, & by his false suggestions
and malicious counsell, he hath caused to die and to be murthered your right déere vncle,
the duke of Glocester, sonne to king Edward. Moreouer, the duke of Hereford saith, and
I for him, that he will proue this with his bodie against the bodie of the said duke of Norfolke
within lists.” The king herewith waxed angrie, and asked the duke of Hereford, if
these were his words, who answered: “Right déere lord, they are my woords; and hereof
I require right, and the battell against him.”
There was a knight also that asked licence to speake for the duke of Norfolke, and obteining, it began to answer thus: “Right déere souereigne lord, here is Thomas Mowbraie duke of Norfolke, who answereth and saith, and I for him, that all which Henrie |846| of Lancaster hath said and declared (sauing the reuerence due to the king and his councell) is a lie; and the said Henrie of Lancaster hath falselie and wickedlie lied as a false and disloiall knight, and both hath béene, and is a traitor against you, your crowne, roiall maiestie, & realme. This will I proue and defend as becommeth a loiall knight to doo with my bodie against his: right déere lord, I beséech you therefore, and your councell, that it maie please you in your roiall discretion, to consider and marke, what Henrie of Lancaster duke of Hereford, such a one as he is, hath said.”
The duke of Norfolke his answer for himselfe.
The king then demanded of the duke of Norfolke, if these were his woords, and whether
he had anie more to saie. The duke of Norfolke then answered for himselfe: “Right
déere sir, true it is, that I haue receiued so much gold to paie your people of the towne of
Calis; which I haue doone, and I doo auouch that your towne of Calis is as well kept at
your commandement as euer it was at anie time before, and that there neuer hath béene by
anie of Calis anie complaint made vnto you of me. Right deere and my souereigne lord,
for the voiage that I made into France, about your marriage, I neuer receiued either gold
or siluer of you, nor yet for the voiage that the duke of Aumarle & I made into Almane,
where we spent great treasure: Marie true it is, that once I laid an ambush to haue slaine
the duke of Lancaster, that there sitteth: but neuerthelesse he hath pardoned me thereof,
and there was good peace made betwixt vs, for the which I yéeld him hartie thankes.
This is that which I haue to answer, and I am readie to defend my selfe against mine
aduersarie; I beseech you therefore of right, and to haue the battell against him in vpright
iudgement.”
The combat appointed to be doone at Couentrie. The French pamphlet. Iohn Stow. Fabian.
After this, when the king had communed with his councell a little, he commanded the
two dukes to stand foorth, that their answers might be heard. The K. then caused them
once againe to be asked, if they would agrée and make peace togither, but they both flatlie
answered that they would not: and withall the duke of Hereford cast downe his gage,
and the duke of Norfolke tooke it vp. The king perceiuing this demeanor betwixt them,
sware by saint Iohn Baptist, that he would neuer séeke to make peace betwixt them againe.
And therfore sir Iohn Bushie in name of the king & his councell declared, that the king
and his councell had commanded and ordeined, that they should haue a daie of battell
appointed them at Couentrie. ¶ Here writers disagrée about the daie that was appointed:
for some saie, it was vpon a mondaie in August; other vpon saint Lamberts
daie, being the seuenteenth of September, other on the eleuenth of September; but true
it is, that the king assigned them not onlie the daie, but also appointed them listes and
place for the combat, and therevpon great preparation was made, as to such a matter
apperteined.
At the time appointed the king came to Couentrie, where the two dukes were readie,
according to the order prescribed therein, comming thither in great arraie, accompanied
with the lords and gentlemen of their linages. The king caused a sumptuous scaffold or
theater, and roiall listes there to be erected and prepared. The sundaie before they
should fight, after dinner the duke of Hereford came to the king (being lodged about a
quarter of a mile without the towne in a tower that belonged to sir William Bagot) to
take his leaue of him. The morow after, being the daie appointed for the combat, about
the spring of the daie, came the duke of Norfolke to the court to take leaue likewise of the
king. The duke of Hereford armed him in his tent, that was set vp néere to the lists, and
the duke of Norfolke put on his armor, betwixt the gate & the barrier of the towne, in a
beautifull house, hauing a faire perclois of wood towards the gate, that none might sée what
was doone within the house.
The order of the combat.
The duke of Aumarle that daie, being high constable of England, and the duke of
Surrie marshall, placed themselues betwixt them, well armed and appointed; and when
they saw their time, they first entered into the listes with a great companie of men apparelled
in silke sendall, imbrodered with siluer, both richlie and curiouslie, euerie man
hauing a tipped staffe to keepe the field in order. About the
houre of prime came to |847|
the barriers of the listes, the duke of Hereford, mounted on a white courser, barded with
gréene & blew veluet imbrodered sumptuouslie with swans and antelops of goldsmiths
woorke, armed at all points. The constable and marshall came to the barriers, demanding
of him what he was, he answered; “I am Henrie of Lancaster duke of Hereford, which
am come hither to doo mine indeuor against Thomas Mowbraie duke of Norfolke, as a
traitor vntrue to God, the king, his realme, and me.” Then incontinentlie he sware vpon
the holie euangelists, that his quarrell was true and iust, and vpon that point he required
to enter the lists. Then he put vp his sword, which before he held naked in his hand,
and putting downe his visor, made a crosse on his horsse, and with speare in hand, entered
into the lists, and descended from his horsse, and set him downe in a chaire of
gréene veluet, at the one end of the lists, and there reposed himselfe, abiding the comming
of his aduersarie.
Soone after him, entred into the field with great triumph, king Richard accompanied with all the péeres of the realme, and in his companie was the earle of saint Paule, which was come out of France in post to see this challenge performed. The king had there aboue ten thousand men in armour, least some fraie or tumult might arise amongst his nobles, by quarelling or partaking. When the king was set in his seat, which was richlie hanged and adorned; a king at armes made open proclamation, prohibiting all men in the name of the king, and of the high constable and marshall, to enterprise or attempt to approch or touch any part of the lists vpon paine of death, except such as were appointed to order or marshall the field. The proclamation ended, an other herald cried; “Behold here Henrie of Lancaster duke of Hereford appellant, which is entred into the lists roiall to doo his deuoir against Thomas Mowbraie duke of Norfolke defendant, vpon paine to be found false and recreant.”
The duke of Norfolke houered on horssebacke at the entrie of the lists, his horse being barded with crimosen veluet, imbrodered richlie with lions of siluer and mulberie trées; and when he had made his oth before the constable and marshall that his quarrell was iust and true, he entred the field manfullie, saieng alowd: “God aid him that hath the right,” and then he departed from his horsse, & sate him downe in his chaire which was of crimosen veluet, courtined about with white and red damaske. The lord marshall viewed their speares, to see that they were of equall length, and deliuered the one speare himselfe to the duke of Hereford, and sent the other vnto the duke of Norfolke by a knight. Then the herald proclamed that the trauerses & chaires of the champions should be remooued, commanding them on the kings behalfe to mount on horssebacke, & addresse themselues to the battell and combat.
The combat staied by the king.
The king his dome betwixt the two dukes.
The duke of Hereford was quicklie horssed, and closed his bauier, and cast his speare
into the rest, and when the trumpet sounded set forward couragiouslie towards his enimie
six or seuen pases. The duke of Norfolke was not fullie set forward, when the king cast
down his warder, and the heralds cried, Ho, ho. Then the king caused their speares
to be taken from them, and commanded them to repaire againe to their chaires, where
they remained two long houres, while the king and his councell deliberatlie consulted
what order was best to be had in so weightie a cause. Finallie, after they had deuised
and fullie determined what should be doone therein, the heralds cried silence and sir
Iohn Bushie the kings secretarie read the sentence and determination of the king and his
councell, in a long roll, the effect wherof was, that Henrie duke of Hereford should
within fifteene daies depart out of the realme, and not to returne before the terme of ten
yeares were expired, except by the king he should be repealed againe, and this vpon
paine of death; and that Thomas Mowbraie duke of Norfolke, bicause he had sowen
sedition in the relme by his words, should likewise auoid the realme, and neuer to returne
againe into England, nor approch the borders or confines thereof vpon paine of
death; and that the king would staie the profits of his lands, till
he had leuied thereof |848|
such summes of monie as the duke had taken vp of the kings treasuror for the wages of
the garrison of Calis, which were still vnpaid.
The duke of Hereford beloued of the people.
When these iudgements were once read, the king called before him both the parties, and
made them to sweare that the one should neuer come in place where the other was,
willinglie; nor kéepe any companie to gither in any forren region; which oth they both
receiued humblie, and so went their waies. The duke of Norfolke departed sorowfullie
out of the realme into Almanie, and at the last came to Venice, where he for thought and
melancholie deceassed: for he was in hope (as writers record) that he should haue béene
borne out in the matter by the king, which when it fell out otherwise, it greeued him not
a little. The duke of Hereford tooke his leaue of the king at Eltham, who there released
foure yeares of his banishment: so he tooke his iornie ouer into Calis, and from thence
went into France, where he remained. ¶ A woonder it was to sée what number of
people ran after him in euerie towne and stréet where he came, before he tooke the sea,
lamenting and bewailing his departure, as who would saie, that when he departed, the
onelie shield, defense and comfort of the commonwealth was vaded and gone.
The duke of Hereford is honorablie interteined
with the French king.
Froissard.
Hor. lib. epist. 1.
At his comming into France, king Charles hearing the cause of his banishment (which
he esteemed to be verie light) receiued him gentlie, and him honorablie interteined, in so
much that he had by fauour obteined in mariage the onelie daughter of the duke of
Berrie, vncle to the French king, if king Richard had not béene a let in that matter, who
being thereof certified, sent the earle of Salisburie with all speed into France, both to
surmize by vntrue suggestion, heinous offenses against him, and also to require the
French king that in no wise he would suffer his cousine to be matched in mariage with
him that was so manifest an offendor. This was a pestilent kind of proceeding against
that nobleman then being in a forren countrie, hauing béene so honorablie receiued as he
was at his entrance into France, and vpon view and good liking of his behauiour there,
so forward in mariage with a ladie of noble linage. So sharpe, so seuere, & so heinous
an accusation, brought to a strange king from a naturall prince, against his subiect,
after punishment inflicted (for he was banished) was inough to haue made the French
king his fatall fo, & vpon suspicion of assaieng the like trecherie against him, to haue
throwne him out of the limits of his land. But what will enuie leaue vnattempted, where
it is once setled? And how are the malicious tormented with egernes of reuenge against
them whom they maligne, wringing themselues in the meane time with inward pangs
gnawing them at the hart? wherevnto serueth the poets
allusion,
Inuidia Siculi non inuenêre tyranni
Maius tormentum.
On Newyeares day this yeare, the riuer that passeth betwixt Suelleston or Snelston, and
Harewood, two villages not far from Bedford, sudenlie ceassed his course, so as the
chanell remained drie by the space of thrée miles, that any man might enter into, and
passe the same drie foot at his pleasure. This diuision, which the water made in that
place, the one part séeming as it were not to come néere to the other, was iudged to
signifie the reuolting of the subiects of this land from their naturall prince. It may be,
that the water of that riuer sanke into the ground, and by some secret passage or chanell
tooke course till it came to the place where it might rise againe as in other places is likewise
séene.
Fabian.
Blanke charters.
Ye haue heard before, how the archbishop of Canturburie Thomas Arundell, was banisht
the relme, and Roger Walden was made archbishop of that sée, who was a great
fauourer of the citie of London, the which was eftsoones about this season fallen into the
kings displeasure: but by the diligent labour of this archbishop, and of Robert Braibrooke
then bishop of London, vpon the humble supplication of the citizens, the kings wrath was
pacified. But yet to content the kings mind, manie blanke charters were deuised, and
brought into the citie, which manie of the substantiall and wealthie
citizens were faine to |849|
seale, to their great charge, as in the end appeared. And the like charters were sent
abroad into all shires within the realme, whereby great grudge and murmuring arose
among the people: for when they were so sealed, the kings officers wrote in the same
what liked them, as well for charging the parties with paiment of monie, as otherwise.
The death of the duke of Lancaster.
Tho. Walsi.
In this meane time, the duke of Lancaster departed out of this life at the bishop of
Elies place in Holborne, and lieth buried in the cathedrall church of saint Paule in London,
on the northside of the high altar, by the ladie Blanch his first wife. The death of
this duke gaue occasion of increasing more hatred in the people of this realme toward the
king, for he seized into his hands all the goods that belonged to him, and also receiued
all the rents and reuenues of his lands which ought to haue descended vnto the duke of
Hereford by lawfull inheritance, in reuoking his letters patents, which he had granted to
him before, by vertue wherof he might make his attorneis generall to sue liuerie for him,
of any maner of inheritances or possessions that might from thencefoorth fall vnto him,
and that his homage might be respited, with making reasonable fine: whereby it was euident,
that the king meant his vtter vndooing.
This hard dealing was much misliked of all the nobilitie, and cried out against of the meaner sort: but namelie the duke of Yorke was therewith sore mooued, who before this time, had borne things with so patient a mind as he could, though the same touched him verie néere, as the death of his brother the duke of Glocester, the banishment of his nephew the said duke of Hereford, and other mo iniuries in great number, which for the slipperie youth of the king, he passed ouer for the time, and did forget aswell as he might. But now perceiuing that neither law, iustice nor equitie could take place, where the kings wilfull will was bent vpon any wrongfull purpose, he considered that the glorie of the publike wealth of his countrie must néeds decaie, by reason of the king his lacke of wit, and want of such as would (without flatterie) admonish him of his dutie; and therefore he thought it the part of a wise man to get him in time to a resting place and to leaue the following of such an vnaduised capteine, as with a leden sword would cut his owne throat.
The duke of Yorke misliketh the court & goeth home.
The realme let to farme by the king.
Tho. Walsi.
Herevpon he with the duke of Aumarle his sonne went to his house at Langlie, reioising
that nothing had mishappened in the common-wealth through his deuise or consent.
The common brute ran, that the king had set to farme the realme of England,
vnto sir William Scroope earle of Wiltshire, and then treasuror of England, to sir Iohn
Bushie, sir Iohn Bagot, and sir Henrie Gréene knights. ¶ About the same time, the
earle of Arundels sonne, named Thomas, which was kept in the duke of Exeters house,
escaped out of the realme, by meanes of one William Scot mercer, and went to his vncle
Thomas Arundell late archbishop of Canturburie, as then soiourning at Cullen. ¶ King
Richard being destitute of treasure to furnish such a princelie port as he mainteined,
borrowed great summes of monie of manie of the great lords and peeres of his realme,
both spirituall and temporall, and likewise of other meane persons, promising them in
good earnest, by deliuering to them his letters patents for assurance, that he would
repaie the monie so borrowed at a daie appointed: which notwithstanding he neuer
paid.
New exactions.
The paiment of these fines was called a plesanse as it were
to please the K. withall, but ye same displeased manie that were thus
constreined to paie against their willes.
The people confirme the oth of allegiance by writing sealed.
Moreouer, this yeare he caused seuenteene shires of the realme by waie of putting
them to their fines to paie no small summes of monie, for redéeming their offenses, that
they had aided the duke of Glocester, the earles of Arundell, and Warwike, when they
rose in armor against him. The nobles, gentlemen, and commons of those shires were
inforced also to receiue a new oth to assure the king of their fidelitie in time to come;
and withall certeine prelats and other honorable personages, were sent into the same
shires to persuade men to this paiment, and to sée things ordered at the pleasure of the
prince: and suerlie the fines which the nobles, and other the meaner estates of those
shires were constreined to paie, were not small, but excéeding
great, to the offense of |850|
manie. Moreouer, the kings letters patents were sent into euerie shire within this land,
by vertue whereof, an oth was demanded of all the kings liege people for a further assurance
of their due obedience, and they were constreined to ratifie the same in writing vnder
their hands and seales.
Indirect dealings.
Moreouer they were compelled to put their hands and seales to certeine blankes, wherof
ye haue heard before, in the which, when it pleased him he might write what he thought
good. There was also a new oth deuised for the shiriffes of euerie countie through the
realme to receiue: finallie, manie of the kings liege people were through spite, enuie,
and malice, accused, apprehended, & put in prison, and after brought before the constable
and marshall of England, in the court of chiualrie, and might not otherwise be
deliuered, except they could iustifie themselues by combat and fighting in lists against
their accusers hand to hand, although the accusers for the most part were lustie, yoong
and valiant, where the parties accused were perchance old, impotent, maimed and
sicklie. Wherevpon not onelie the great destruction of the realme in generall, but also
of euerie singular person in particular, was to be feared and looked for.
Abr. Fl. out of Thom. Wals. pag. 395.
¶ About
this time the bishop of Calcedon came into England, with letters apostolicall
of admonition, that the faithfull and loiall of the land should of their goods disbursse
somewhat to the emperour of Constantinople, who was extremelie vexed and troubled by
the Tartars, and their capteine called Morect. And to the intent that the peeres of the
land might be made the more willing and toward to bestow their contribution in this
behalfe, the pope granted vnto all benefactors (trulie contrite and confessed) full remission,
and wrapped in his bitter censures all such as hindered those that were willing to bestow
their beneuolence in this case; considering, that although the emperour was a schismatike,
yet was he a christian, and if by the infidels he should be oppressed, all christendome
was in danger of ruine; hauing in his mind that saieng of the poet full fit for his
purpose,
Tunc tua res agitur paries cùm proximus ardet.
Abr. Fl. out of Thom. Wals. pag. 395.
Polydor.
A iusts at Windesor.
The king saileth ouer into Ireland with a great armie. Fabian.
Caxton.
The duke of Yorke lieutenant generall of England, the king being in Ireland. Hen. Marl.
¶ In
this yeare in a manner throughout all the realme of England, old baie trées
withered, and afterwards, contrarie to all mens thinking, grew gréene againe, a strange
sight, and supposed to import some vnknowne euent. ¶ In this meane time the king
being aduertised that the wild Irish dailie wasted and destroied the townes and villages
within the English pale, and had slaine manie of the souldiers which laie there in garison
for defense of that countrie, determined to make eftsoones a voiage thither, & prepared
all things necessarie for his passage now against the spring. A little before his setting
foorth, he caused a iusts to be holden at Windesor of fourtie knights and fortie esquiers,
against all commers, & they to be apparelled in gréene, with a white falcon, and the
queene to be there well accompanied with ladies and damsels. When these iusts were
finished, the king departed toward Bristow, from thence to passe into Ireland, leauing
the queene with hir traine still at Windesor: he appointed for his lieutenant generall in
his absence his vncle the duke of Yorke: and so in the moneth of Aprill, as diuerse
authors write, he set forward from Windesor, and finallie tooke shipping at Milford,
and from thence with two hundred ships, and a puissant power of men of armes and archers
he sailed into Ireland. The fridaie next after his arriuall, there were slaine two
hundred Irishmen at Fourd in Kenlis within the countie of Kildare, by that valiant gentleman
Ienico Dartois, and such Englishmen as he had there with him: and on the
morrow next insuing the citizens of Dublin inuaded the countrie of Obrin, and slue thirtie
and thrée Irishmen.
Out of a French pamphlet that belongeth to master Iohn Dee.
Macmur.
The king also after he had remained about seuen daies at Waterford, marched from
thence towards Kilkennie, and comming thither, staied thereabout fourteene daies, looking
for the duke of Aumarle that was appointed to haue met him, but he failed and came
not, where vpon the king on Midsummer euen set forward againe, marching streight towards
the countrie of Macmur the principall rebell in that season
within Ireland, who |851|
kéeping himselfe among woods with three thousand right hardie men, seemed to passe
little for any power that might be brought against him. Yet the king approching to the
skirts of the woods, commanded his soldiers to fier the houses and villages: which was
executed with great forwardnesse of the men of war. And here for some valiant act that
he did, or some other fauourable respect, which the king bare to the lord Henrie sonne
to the duke of Hereford, he made him knight. ¶ This Henrie was after king of England,
succeeding his father, and called by the name of Henrie the fift. There were nine
or ten others made knights also at the same time.
Pioners set a worke to cut downe woods.
Moreouer, there were two thousand & fiue hundred pioners set a worke to cut downe
the woods, and to make passages through, and so then the Englishmen entred, and by
force got through: for the Irishmen sore feared the English bowes, but yet now and then
they espieng their aduantage, assailed oftentimes Englishmen with their darts, and slue
diuerse that went abroad to fetch in forrage. The vncle of Macmur hauing a withie or
with about his necke, came in and submitted himselfe, and likewise manie other naked
and bare legged; so that the king seeming to pitie their miserable state, pardoned them,
and afterward he also sent vnto Macmur, promising that if he would come in and require
pardon as his vncle had doone, he would receiue him to mercie: but Macmur vnderstanding
that for want of vittels, the king must néeds retire within a short time, he refused
the kings offer. The king with his armie remaining in those parts eleuen daies, was in
the end constreined to come backe, when all their vittels were spent: for more than they
brought with them they could not get. They lost manie horsses in this iournie for want
of prouision and forrage.
Macmur sendeth to the K. offering a parlee.
The earle of Glocester.
As the king was withdrawne towards Dublin, marching through the countrie, in despite
of his enimies, that houered still about his armie, Macmur sent to the king, offering
to talke of an agreement, if it should please him to send any noble man to méet him
at a place appointed. The king herevpon commanded the earle of Glocester to take with
him two hundred lances, and a thousand archers, and to go to trie if he might by persuasion
cause him to come in and submit himselfe. The earle went, and comming to
talke with him, found him so obstinate, that their parlée streightwaies brake off: so taking
leaue each of other, they departed, and the earle returned to the king, to aduertise him
what he had doone and perceiued by the communication which he had had with Macmur.
He came to Dublin the 28 of Iune as Henrie Marl. saith.
The king was sore offended with the obstinatnes of the rebell, that would not agree
otherwise: but so as he might remaine still at libertie, without danger to suffer anie
maner of punishment for his passed offenses. Wherevpon the king after his comming to
Dublin, and that the armie had rested there, and in the countrie neere to the citie, for the
space of fiftéene daies, he diuided his people into three parts, and sent them abroad into
the countrie to pursue the enimies and withall made proclamation, that who so euer could
bring Macmur vnto his presence, should haue for his recompense a great reward: for
he determined not to depart the countrie, till he had him either dead or aliue. But he
knew full little then what incidents to hinder his purposed intention would after follow.
The duke of Aumarle.
In Angl. prælije sub Rich. 2.
The same daie that he sent abroad his armie thus into three seuerall parts, the duke
of Aumarle with an hundred saile arriued, of whose coming the king was right ioifull;
and although he had vsed no small negligence in that he came no sooner according to
order before appointed, yet the king (as he was of a gentle nature) courteouslie accepted
his excuse: whether he was in fault or not, I haue not to saie; but verelie he was greatlie
suspected, that he dealt not well in tarieng so long after his time assigned. But now
whilest the king rested at Dublin, his people so demeaned themselues, that the most part
of the rebels, what by manhood and policie were subdued, and brought vnder subiection,
and (as is to be thought) if no trouble had risen in England to haue called him backe, he
meant to haue rid vp the woods, and made some notable conquest at that time vpon the
rebels that yet held out. Neuerthelesse, during the time of his abode there, such was
the prowesse of him and his, that the Irish were well tamed, and
forced to submit |852|
themselues: and yet the kings power made no great slaughter of them, if it be true that
Christ. Okl. saith, speaking hereof in few words as after
followeth:
Pergit ad indomitos princeps Richardus Hibernos,
Inq; potestatem multo sine sanguine, sæuo
Marte reluctantes.
The duke of Lancaster solicited to expel king Richard, and to take vpon him the regiment.
Now whilest he was thus occupied in deuising how to reduce them into subiection,
and taking orders for the good staie and quiet gouernment of the countrie, diuerse of the
nobilitie, aswell prelats as other, and likewise manie of the magistrats and rulers of the
cities, townes, and communaltie, here in England, perceiuing dailie how the realme
drew to vtter ruine, not like to be recouered to the former state of wealth, whilest king
Richard liued and reigned (as they tooke it) deuised with great deliberation, and considerate
aduise, to send and signifie by letters vnto duke Henrie, whome they now called
(as he was in déed) duke of Lancaster and Hereford, requiring him with all conuenient
spéed to conueie himselfe into England, promising him all their aid, power and assistance,
if he expelling K. Richard, as a man not meet for the office he bare, would take vpon
him the scepter, rule, and diademe of his natiue land and region.
The duke of Britaine a great friend to the duke of Lancaster.
The duke of Lancaster & his adherents saile into England. Additions to Polychron.
Thom. Wals.
Chron. Brit.
Froissard.
Tho. Walsing.
He therefore being thus called vpon by messengers and letters from his fréends, and
chéeflie through the earnest persuasion of Thomas Arundell, late archbishop of Canturburie,
who (as before yée haue heard) had béene remooued from his sée, and banished
the realme by king Richards means, got him downe to Britaine, togither with the said
archbishop, where he was ioifullie receiued of the duke and duchesse, and found such
fréendship at the dukes hands, that there were certeine ships rigged, and made readie
for him, at a place in base Britaine, called Le port blanc, as we find in the chronicles of
Britaine: and when all his prouision was made readie, he tooke the sea, togither with the
said archbishop of Canturburie, and his nephue Thomas Arundell, sonne and heire to the
late earle of Arundell, beheaded at the Tower hill, as you haue heard. There were also
with him, Reginald lord Cobham, sir Thomas Erpingham, and sir Thomas Ramston
knights, Iohn Norburie, Robert Waterton, & Francis Coint esquires: few else were there,
for (as some write) he had not past fifteene lances, as they tearmed them in those daies,
that is to saie, men of armes, furnished and appointed as the vse then was. ¶ Yet other
write, that the duke of Britaine deliuered vnto him three thousand men of warre, to attend
him, and that he had eight ships well furnished for the warre, where Froissard yet speaketh
but of three. Moreouer, where Froissard and also the chronicles of Britaine auouch,
that he should land at Plimmouth, by our English writers it séemeth otherwise: for it appeareth
by their assured report, that he approching to the shore, did not streight take
land, but lay houering aloofe, and shewed himselfe now in this place, and now in that, to
sée what countenance was made by the people, whether they meant enuiouslie to resist
him, or fréendlie to receiue him.
The commōs denie to resist the duke of Lancaster.
When the lord gouernor Edmund duke of Yorke was aduertised, that the duke of Lancaster
kept still the sea, and was readie to arriue (but where he ment first to set foot on
land, there was not any that vnderstood the certeintie) he sent for the lord chancellor Edmund
Stafford bishop of Excester, and for the lord treasuror William Scroope earle of
Wiltshire, and other of the kings priuie councell, as Iohn Bushie, William Bagot, Henrie
Greene, and Iohn Russell knights: of these he required to knew what they thought good
to be doone in this matter, concerning the duke of Lancaster, being on the seas. Their
aduise was, to depart from London, vnto S. Albons, and there to gather an armie to
resist the duke in his landing, but to how small purpose their counsell serued, the conclusion
thereof plainlie declared, for the most part that were called, when they came
thither, boldlie protested, that they would not fight against the duke of Lancaster, whome
they knew to be euill dealt withall.
The duke of Lancaster lādeth in Yorkshire.
Additions to Polychron.
The lord treasuror, Bushie, Bagot, and Gréene, perceiuing that the commons would
cleaue vnto, and take part with the duke, slipped awaie, leauing
the lord gouernour of |853|
the realme, and the lord chancellor to make what shift they could for themselues: Bagot
got him to Chester, and so escaped into Ireland; the other fled to the castell of Bristow,
in hope there to be in safetie. The duke of Lancaster, after that he had coasted alongst
the shore a certeine time, & had got some intelligence how the peoples minds were affected
towards him, landed about the beginning of Iulie in Yorkshire, at a place sometime called
Rauenspur, betwixt Hull and Bridlington, and with him not past thréescore persons, as
some write: but he was so ioifullie receiued of the lords, knights, and gentlemen of those
parts, that he found means (by their helpe) foorthwith to assemble a great number of
people, that were willing to take his part. The first that came to him, were the lords of
Lincolneshire, and other countries adioining, as the lords Willoughbie, Ros, Darcie, and
Beaumont.
The duke of Lācasters oth to the lords that aided him.
At his comming vnto Doncaster, the earle of Northumberland, and his sonne sir Henrie
Persie, wardens of the marches against Scotland, with the earle of Westmerland, came
vnto him, where he sware vnto those lords, that he would demand no more, but the lands
that were to him descended by inheritance from his father, and in right of his wife. Moreouer,
he vndertooke to cause the paiment of taxes and tallages to be laid downe, & to
bring the king to good gouernment, & to remooue from him the Cheshire men, which
were enuied of manie; for that the king estéemed of them more than of anie other;
happilie, bicause they were more faithfull to him than other, readie in all respects to obeie
his commandements and pleasure. From Doncaster hauing now got a mightie armie
about him, he marched foorth with all spéed through the countries, coming by Euesham
vnto Berkelie: within the space of thrée daies, all the kings castels in those parts were
surrendred vnto him.
The harts of the commons wholie bent to the duke of Lancaster.
The duke of Yorke, whome king Richard had left as gouernour of the realme in his
absence, hearing that his nephue the duke of Lancaster was thus arriued, and had gathered
an armie, he also assembled a puissant power of men of armes and archers (as
before yée haue heard) but all was in vaine, for there was not a man that willinglie would
thrust out one arrow against the duke of Lancaster, or his partakers, or in anie wise offend
him or his fréends. The duke of Yorke therefore passing foorth towards Wales to méet
the king, at his comming foorth of Ireland, was receiued into the castell of Berkelie, and
there remained, till the comming thither of the duke of Lancaster (whom when he perceiued
that he was not able to resist) on the sundaie, after the feast of saint Iames, which
as that yeare came about, fell vpon the fridaie, he came foorth into the church that stood
without the castell, and there communed with the duke of Lancaster. With the duke of
Yorke were the bishops of Norwich, the lord Berkelie, the lord Seimour, and other:
with the duke of Lancaster were these, Thomas Arundell archbishop of Canturburie that
had béene banished, the abbat of Leicester, the earles of Northumberland and Westmerland,
Thomas Arundell sonne to Richard late earle of Arundell, the baron of Greistoke,
the lords Willoughbie and Ros, with diuerse other lords, knights, and other
people, which dailie came to him from euerie part of the realme: those that came not,
were spoiled of all they had, so as they were neuer able to recouer themselues againe,
for their goods being then taken awaie, were neuer restored. And thus what for loue,
and what for feare of losse, they came flocking vnto him from euerie part.
The duke of Lancaster marcheth to Bristow.
Scroope lord treasuror.
Bushie and Gréene executed.
At the same present there was arrested, and
committed to safe custodie, the bishop of
Norwich, sir William Elmam, and sir Walter Burlie, knights, Laurence Drew, and
Iohn Golofer esquiers. On the morow after, the forsaid dukes with their power, went
towards Bristow, where (at their comming) they shewed themselues before the towne &
castell, being an huge multitude of people. There were inclosed within the castell, the
lord William Scroope earle of Wiltshire and treasuror of England, sir Henrie Greene,
and sir Iohn Bushie knights, who prepared to make resistance: but when it would not
preuaile, they were taken and brought foorth bound as prisoners into the campe, before
the duke of Lancaster. On the morow next insuing, they were arraigned
before the |854|
constable and marshall, and found giltie of treason, for misgouerning the king and realme,
and foorthwith had their heads smit off. Sir Iohn Russell was also taken there, who
feining himselfe to be out of his wits, escaped their hands for a
time.
A politike madnesse.
Out of master Dees French booke.
In this meane time, king Richard aduertised, how the duke of Lancaster was landed in
England, and that the lords, gentlemen, and commons assembled themselues to take his
part, he forthwith caused the lord Henrie, sonne to the said duke of Lancaster, and the
lord Humfrie, sonne to the duke of Glocester, to be shut vp fast in the castell of Trimme,
and with all spéed made hast to returne into England, in hope with an armie to incounter
the duke, before he should haue time to assemble his fréends togither. But here you shall
note, that it fortuned at the same time, in which the duke of Hereford or Lancaster, whether
ye list to call him, arriued thus in England, the seas were so troubled by tempests, and
the winds blew so contrarie for anie passage, to come ouer foorth of England to the king,
remaining still in Ireland, that for the space of six wéeks, he receiued no
aduertisements
from thence: yet at length, when the seas became calme, and the wind once turned anie
thing fauourable, there came ouer a ship, whereby the king vnderstood the manner of the
dukes arriuall, and all his procéedings till that daie, in which the ship departed from the
coast of England, wherevpon he meant foorthwith to haue returned ouer into England, to
make resistance against the duke: but through persuasion of the duke of Aumarle (as was
thought) he staied, till he might haue all his ships, and other prouision, fullie readie for
his passage.
In the meane time, he sent the earle of Salisburie ouer into England, to gather a power togither, by helpe of the kings freends in Wales, and Cheshire, with all spéed possible, that they might be readie to assist him against the duke, vpon his arriuall, for he meant himselfe to follow the earle, within six daies after. The earle passing ouer into Wales, landed at Conwaie, and sent foorth letters to the kings freends, both in Wales and Cheshire, to leauie their people, & to come with all spéed to assist the K. whose request, with great desire, & very willing minds they fulfilled, hoping to haue found the king himselfe at Conwaie, insomuch that within foure daies space, there were to the number of fortie thousand men assembled, readie to march with the king against his enimies, if he had béene there himselfe in person.
But when they missed the king, there was a brute spred amongst them, that the king was suerlie dead, which wrought such an impression, and euill disposition in the minds of the Welshmen and others, that for anie persuasion which the earle of Salisburie might vse, they would not go foorth with him, till they saw the king: onelie they were contented to staie fouretéene daies to sée if he should come or not; but when he came not within that tearme, they would no longer abide, but scaled & departed awaie; wheras if the king had come before their breaking vp, no doubt, but they would haue put the duke of Hereford in aduenture of a field: so that the kings lingering of time before his comming ouer, gaue opportunitie to the duke to bring things to passe as he could haue wished, and tooke from the king all occasion to recouer afterwards anie forces sufficient to resist him.
K. Richard returneth out of Ireland and landeth in Wales. Thom. Wals.
At length, about eighteene daies after that the king had sent from him the earle of Salisburie, he tooke the sea, togither with the dukes of Aumarle, Excester, Surrie, and diuerse others of the nobilitie, with the bishops of London, Lincolne, and Carleill. They landed néere the castell of Barclowlie in Wales, about the feast of saint Iames the apostle, and staied a while in the same castell, being aduertised of the great forces which the duke of Lancaster had got togither against him, wherewith he was maruellouslie amazed, knowing certeinelie that those which were thus in armes with the duke of Lancaster against him, would rather die than giue place, as well for the hatred as feare which they had conceiued at him. Neuerthelesse he departing from Barclowlie, hasted with all speed towards Conwaie, where he vnderstood the earle of Salisburie to be still remaining.
Additions to Polychron.
K. Richard in vtter despaire.
He therefore taking with him such Cheshire men as he had with him at that present (in
whom all his trust was reposed) he doubted not to reuenge himselfe
of his aduersaries, & |855|
so at the first he passed with a good courage: but when he vnderstood as he went thus
forward, that all the castels, euen from the borders of Scotland vnto Bristow were deliuered
vnto the duke of Lancaster, and that likewise the nobles and commons, as well of
the south parts, as the north, were fullie bent to take part with the same duke against him;
and further, hearing how his trustie councellors had lost their heads at Bristow, he became
so greatlie discomforted, that sorowfullie lamenting his miserable state, he vtterlie despaired
of his owne safetie, and calling his armie togither, which was not small, licenced
euerie man to depart to his home.
K. Richard stealeth awaie from his armie, and taketh the castell of Flint.
The souldiers being well bent to fight in his defense, besought him to be of good chéere,
promising with an oth to stand with him against the duke, and all his partakers vnto
death: but this could not incourage him at all, so that in the night next insuing, he stole
from his armie, and with the dukes of Excester and Surrie, the bishop of Carleill, and sir
Stephan Scroope, and about halfe a score others, he got him to the castell of Conwaie,
where he found the earle of Salisburie, determining there to hold himselfe, till he might sée
the world at some better staie; for what counsell to take to remedie the mischéefe thus
pressing vpon him he wist not. On the one part he knew his title iust, true, and infallible;
and his conscience cleane, pure and without spot of enuie or malice: he had also no
small affiance in the Welshmen, and Cheshire men. On the other side, he saw the puissance
of his aduersaries, the sudden departing of them whom he most trusted, and all things
turned vpside downe: he euidentlie saw, and manifestlie perceiued, that he was forsaken
of them, by whom in time he might haue béene aided and relieued, where now it was too
late, and too farre ouer passed.
A speciall note woorthie to be well weied.
Hor. lib. car. 3. ode. 1.
¶ This
suerlie is a verie notable example, and not vnwoorthie of all princes to be well
weied, and diligentlie marked, that this Henrie duke of Lancaster should be thus called
to the kingdome, and haue the helpe and assistance (almost) of all the whole realme, which
perchance neuer thereof thought or yet dreamed; and that king Richard should thus be
left desolate, void, and in despaire of all hope and comfort, in whom if there were anie
offense, it ought rather to be imputed to the frailtie of wanton youth, than to the malice of
his hart: but such is the deceiuable iudgement of man, which not regarding things present
with due consideration, thinketh euer that things to come shall haue good successe,
with a pleasant & delitefull end. But in this deiecting of the one, & aduancing of the
other, the prouidence of God is to be respected, & his secret will to be woondered at. For
as in his hands standeth the donation of kingdoms, so likewise the disposing of them consisteth
in his pleasure, which the verie pagans vnderstood right well; otherwise, one of
them would neuer haue said,
Regum timendorum in proprios greges,
Reges in ipsos imperium est Iouis
Cuncta supercilio mouentis.
The earle of Worcester leaueth the K. and fléeth to the duke.
Where fortune fauoureth, thither the peoples fauour fléeth.
Sir Thomas Persie earle of Worcester, lord steward of the kings house, either being so
commanded by the king, or else vpon displeasure (as some write) for that the king had
proclaimed his brother the earle of Northumberland traitor, brake his white staffe, which
is the representing signe and token of his office, and without delaie went to duke Henrie.
When the kings seruants of houshold saw this (for it was doone before them all) they dispersed
themselues, some into one countrie, and some into an other. When the duke of
Lancaster vnderstood that king Richard was returned foorth of Ireland, he left the duke
of Yorke still at Bristow, and came backe with his power vnto Berkleie; the second daie
he came to Glocester, and so to Roos, after to Hereford, where came to him the bishop of
Hereford, and sir Edmund Mortimer knight. On the sundaie following, he went to Limster,
and there the lord Charleton came to him. From thence he went to Ludlow, and the
next daie to Shrewsburie, where he rested one daie, and thither came to him sir Robert
Leigh, and sir Iohn Leigh, and manie other being sent from Chester,
to treat with the duke |856|
of Lancaster, for the citie and countie of Chester, that were now readie to submit themselues
vnto him in all things.
The duke of Lancaster comming to Chester.
There came hither vnto him the lord Scales, and the lord Berdolfe, foorth of Ireland,
hauing béene spoiled of all they had about them in Wales, as they came through the countrie.
From Shrewsburie, he kept on his iournie towards Chester, and lodging one night
by the waie, in a towne there in the borders of Wales, he came the second night to Chester,
and staied there certeine daies togither, making a iollie muster of his armie there in
sight of the citie. The clergie met, & receiued him with procession: he sent foorthwith
for his sonne & heire, & likewise for the duke of Glocesters sonne & heire, that were as
yet remaining in Ireland, commanding them with all spéed to returne home into England.
But the duke of Glocesters sonne, through mischance perished, as he was on the seas to
come ouer, for whose losse his mother tooke such greefe, that shortlie after through immoderate
sorow she likewise passed out of this transitorie life.
Pérkin a Lee.
In this meane time, king Richard being in the castell of Conwaie sore discomfited, and
fearing lest he could not remaine there long in safetie, vpon knowledge had by his trustie
fréends Iohn Paulet, and Richard Seimour, of the dealings and approch of his aduersaries,
sent the duke of Excester to talke with the duke of Lancaster, who in this meane while
had caused one of king Richards faithfull and trustie freends, sir Piers a Leigh, commonlie
called Perkin a Lée, to lose his head, & commanded the same to be set vp, vpon one of
the highest turrets about all the citie; and so that true and faithfull gentleman, for his
stedfast faith, and assured loialtie to his louing souereigne, thus lost his life. There
came to him about the same time, or somewhat before, the dukes of Aumarle and
Surrie, the lord Louell, and sir Iohn Stanleie, beséeching him to receiue him into his
fauour.
Out of master Dees booke.
Holt castell deliuered to the duke. Some write that the archbishop of Cāturburie and the earle of Westmerland wēt also with the earle of Northumberland to Conwaie.
¶ By
some writers it should seeme, not onelie the duke of Excester, but also the duke
of Surrie were sent vnto duke Henrie from king Richard, and that duke Henrie staied them
both, and would not suffer them to returne to the king againe, kéeping the duke of Excester
still about him, and committing the duke of Surrie to prison, within the castell of
Chester. The king herewith went to Beaumaris, & after to Carnaruan: but finding no
prouision either of vittels or other things in those castels, no not so much as a bed to lie
in, he came backe againe to Conwaie, and in the meane time was the castell of Holt deliuered
to the duke of Hereford, by those that had it in kéeping wherein was great store of
iewels, to the value of two hundred thousand marks, besides an hundred thousand marks
in readie coine. After this, the duke, with aduise of his councell, sent the earle of Northumberland
vnto the king, accompanied with foure hundred lances, & a thousand archers,
who comming to the castell of Flint, had it deliuered vnto him; and from thence he hasted
foorth towards Conwaie. But before he approched néere the place, he left his power
behind him, hid closelie in two ambushes, behind a craggie mounteine, beside the high
waie that leadeth from Flint to Conwaie.
The earle of Northumberlands message to the king.
The king leaueth Conwaie castell, and betaketh himselfe to his enimies.
This doone, taking not past foure or fiue with him, he passed foorth, till he came before
the towne, and then sending an herald to the king, requested a safe conduct from the king,
that he might come and talke with him, which the king granted, and so the earle of Northumberland
passing the water, entred the castell, and comming to the king, declared to
him, that if it might please his grace to vndertake, that there should be a parlement assembled,
in the which iustice might be had, against such as were enimies to the commonwealth,
and had procured the destruction of the duke of Glocester, and other noblemen,
and herewith pardon the duke of Hereford of all things wherin he had offended him, the
duke would be readie to come to him on his knées, to craue of him forgiuenesse, and as an
humble subiect, to obeie him in all dutifull seruices. The king taking aduise vpon these
offers, and other made by the earle of Northumberland on the behalfe of the duke of
Hereford; vpon the earles oth, for assurance that the same should be performed in ech
condition, agréed to go with the earle to méete the duke, and
herevpon taking their |857|
horsses, they rode foorth, but the earle rode before, as it were, to prepare dinner for
the king at Rutland, but comming to the place where he had left his people, he staied
there with them.
A constant seruant.
The king kéeping on his waie, had not ridden past foure miles, when he came to the
place where the ambushes were lodged, and being entred within danger of them, before
he was aware, shewed himselfe to be sore abashed. But now there was no remedie: for
the earle being there with his men, would not suffer him to returne, as he gladlie would
haue doone if he might; but being inclosed with the sea on the one side, and the rocks
on the other, hauing his aduersaries so néere at hand before him, he could not shift awaie
by any meanes, for if he should haue fled backe, they might easilie haue ouertaken him,
yer he could haue got out of their danger. And thus of force he was then constrained to
go with the earle, who brought him to Rutland, where they dined, and from thence they
rode vnto Flint to bed. The king had verie few about him of his freends, except onelie
the earle of Salisburie, the bishop of Carleill, the lord Stephan Scroope, sir Nicholas
Ferebie, a sonne also of the countesse of Salisburie, and Ienico Dartois a Gascoigne
that still ware the cognisance or deuise of his maister king Richard, that is to saie, a white
hart, and would not put it from him, neither for persuasions nor threats; by reason
whereof, when the duke of Hereford vnderstood it, he caused him to be committed to
prison within the castell of Chester. This man was the last (as saieth mine author) which
ware that deuise, and shewed well thereby his constant hart toward his maister, for the
which it was thought he should haue lost his life, but yet he was pardoned, and at length
reconciled to the dukes fauour, after he was king.
But now to our purpose. King Richard being thus come vnto the castell of Flint, on the mondaie, the eightéenth of August, and the duke of Hereford being still aduertised from houre to houre by posts, how the earle of Northumberland sped, the morow following being tuesdaie, and the ninetéenth of August, he came thither, & mustered his armie before the kings presence, which vndoubtedlie made a passing faire shew, being verie well ordered by the lord Henrie Persie, that was appointed generall, or rather (as we maie call him) master of the campe, vnder the duke, of the whole armie. There were come alreadie to the castell, before the approching of the maine armie, the archbishop of Canturburie, the duke of Aumarle, the earle of Worcester, and diuerse other. The archbishop entred first, and then followed the other, comming into the first ward.
The king that was walking aloft on the braies of the wals, to behold the comming of the duke a farre off, might sée, that the archbishop and the other were come, and (as he tooke it) to talke with him: wherevpon he foorthwith came downe vnto them, and beholding that they did their due reuerence to him on their knées, he tooke them vp, and drawing the archbishop aside from the residue, talked with him a good while, and as it was reported, the archbishop willed him to be of good comfort, for he should be assured, not to haue anie hurt, as touching his person; but he prophesied not as a prelat, but as a Pilat. For, was it no hurt (thinke you) to his person, to be spoiled of his roialtie, to be deposed from his crowne, to be translated from principalitie to prison, & to fall from honor into horror. All which befell him to his extreame hart greefe (no doubt:) which to increase, meanes alas there were manie; but to diminish, helps (God wot) but a few. So that he might haue said with the forlorne man in the mercilesse seas of his miseries,
Vt fera nimboso tumüerunt æquora vento,
In medijs lacera naue relinquor aquis.
¶ Some
write (as before in a marginall note I haue quoted) that the archbishop of
Canturburie went with the earle of Northumberland vnto Conwaie, and there talked with
him: and further, that euen then the king offered, in consideration of his insufficiencie to
gouerne, freelie to resigne the crowne, and his kinglie title to the
same, vnto the duke of |858|
Hereford. But forsomuch as those that were continuallie attendant about the king,
during the whole time of his abode at Conwaie, and till his comming to Flint, doo
plainelie affirme, that the archbishop came not to him, till this tuesdaie before his remoouing
from Flint vnto Chester, it maie be thought (the circumstances well considered)
that he rather made that promise here at Flint, than at Conwaie, although by the tenour
of an instrument, conteining the declaration of the archbishop of Yorke, and other commissioners
sent from the estates assembled in the next parlement, vnto the said king, it is
recorded to be at Conwaie, as after ye maie read. But there maie be some default in the
copie, as taking the one place for the other.
But wheresoeuer this offer was made, after that the archbishop had now here at Flint communed with the king, he departed, and taking his horsse againe, rode backe to meet the duke, who began at that present to approch the castell, and compassed it round about, euen downe to the sea, with his people ranged in good and séemelie order, at the foot of the mounteins: and then the earle of Northumberland passing foorth of the castell to the duke, talked with him a while in sight of the king, being againe got vp to the walles, to take better view of the armie, being now aduanced within two bowe shootes of the castell, to the small reioising (ye may be sure) of the sorowfull king. The earle of Northumberland returning to the castell, appointed the king to be set to dinner (for he was fasting till then) and after he had dined, the duke came downe to the castell himselfe, and entred the same all armed, his bassenet onelie excepted, and being within the first gate, he staied there, till the king came foorth of the inner part of the castell vnto him.
The dukes behauiour to the king at their méeting.
The dukes demand.
The king accompanied with the bishop of Carleill, the earle of Salisburie, and sir
Stephan Scroope knight, who bare the sword before him, and a few other, came foorth
into the vtter ward, and sate downe in a place prepared for him. Forthwith as the duke
got sight of the king, he shewed a reuerend dutie as became him, in bowing his knée,
and comming forward, did so likewise the second and third time, till the king tooke him
by the hand, and lift him vp, saieng; “Déere cousine, ye are welcome.” The duke
humblie thanking him said; “My souereigne lord and king, the cause of my comming at
this present, is (your honor saued) to haue againe restitution of my person, my lands
and heritage, through your fauourable licence.” The king hervnto answered; “Déere
cousine, I am readie to accomplish your will, so that you may inioy all that is yours,
without exception.”
The king and the duke iournie togither towards London.
K. Richard sumptuous in apparell.
Méeting thus togither, they came foorth of the castell, and the king there called for
wine and after they had dronke, they mounted on horssebacke, and rode that night to
Flint, and the next daie vnto Chester, the third vnto Nantwich, the fourth to Newcastell.
Here, with glad countenance, the lord Thomas Beauchampe earle of Warwike met them,
that had beene confined into the Ile of Man, as before ye haue heard; but now was reuoked
home by the duke of Lancaster. From Newcastell they rode to Stafford, and the
sixt daie vnto Lichfield, and there rested sundaie all daie. After this, they rode foorth
and lodged at these places insuing, Couentrie, Dantrée, Northhampton, Dunstable, S.
Albons, & so came to London: neither was the king permitted all this while to change
his apparell, but rode still through all these townes simplie clothed in one sute of raiment,
and yet he was in his time excéeding sumptuous in apparell, in so much as he had one
cote, which he caused to be made for him of gold and stone, valued at 30000 marks: &
so he was brought the next waie to Westminster.
The dukes receiuing into London.
As for the duke, he was receiued with all the ioy and pompe that might be of the Londoners,
and was lodged in the bishops palace, by Paules church. It was a woonder to
sée what great concursse of people, & what number of horsses came to him on the waie
as he thus passed the countries, till his comming to London, where (vpon his approch to
the citie) the maior rode foorth to receiue him, and a great number of other citizens.
Also the cleargie met him with procession, and such ioy appeared in the countenances of
the people, vttering the same also with words, as the like not lightlie
béene séene. For in |859|
euerie towne and village where he passed, children reioised, women clapped their hands,
and men cried out for ioy. But to speake of the great numbers of people that flocked
togither in the fields and stréets of London at his comming, I here omit; neither will I
speake of the presents, welcommings, lauds, and gratifications made to him by the citizens
and communaltie.
The king cōmitted to the tower.
But now to the purpose. The next day after his comming to London, the king from
Westminster was had to the Tower, and there committed to safe custodie. Manie euil
disposed persons, assembling themselues togither in great numbers, intended to haue met
with him, and to haue taken him from such as had the conueieng of him, that they might
haue slaine him. But the maior and aldermen gathered to them the worshipful commoners
and graue citizens, by whose policie, and not without much adoo, the other were reuoked
from their euill purpose: albeit, before they might be pacified, they cōming to Westminster,
tooke maister Iohn Sclake deane of the kings chappell, and from thence brought
him to Newgate, and there laid him fast in irons.
A parlement in the kings name.
After this was a parlement called by the duke of Lancaster, vsing the name of king
Richard in the writs directed foorth to the lords, and other states for their summons.
This parlement began the thirtéenth daie of September, in the which manie heinous points
of misgouernance and iniurious dealings in the administration of his kinglie office, were
laid to the charge of this noble prince king Richard, the which (to the end the commons
might be persuaded, that he was an vnprofitable prince to the common-wealth, and
worthie to be deposed) were ingrossed vp in 33 solemne articles, heinous to the eares of
all men, and to some almost incredible, the verie effect of which articles here insue, according
to the copie which I haue séene, and is abridged by maister Hall as followeth.
1 FIRST, that king Richard wastfullie spent the treasure of the realme, and had giuen the possessions of the crowne to men vnworthie, by reason whereof, new charges more and more were laid on the poore cōmunaltie. And where diuerse lords, as well spirituall as temporall, were appointed by the high court of parlement, to commune and treat of diuerse matters concerning the common-wealth of the realme, which being busie about the same commission, he with other of his affinitie went about to impeach, and by force and menacing compelled the iustices of the realme at Shrewesburie to condescend to his opinion, for the destruction of the said lords, in so much that he began to raise warre against Iohn duke of Lancaster, Richard earle of Arundell, Thomas earle of Warwike, and other lords, contrarie to his honor and promise.
2 Item, that he caused his vncle the duke of Glocester to be arrested without law and sent him to Calis, and there without iudgement murthered him, and although the earle of Arundell vpon his arreignment pleaded his charter of pardon, he could not be heard, but was in most vile and shamefull manner suddenlie put to death.
3 Item, he assembled certeine Lancashire and Cheshire men, to the intent to make warre on the same lords, and suffered them to rob and pill, without correction or repréeue.
4 Item, although the king flateringlie, and with great dissimulation, made proclamation through out the realme, that the lords before named were not attached of anie crime of treason, but onlie for extortions and oppressions doone in this realme; yet he laid to them in the parlement, rebellion and manifest treason.
5 Item, he hath compelled diuers of the said lords seruants and friends, by menaces & extreme pains, to make great fines to their vtter vndooing; and notwithstanding his pardon, yet he made them fine anew. |860|
6 Item, where diuerse were appointed to commune of the state of the realme, and the commonwealth thereof, the same king caused all the rols and records to be kept from them, contrarie to promise made in the parlement, to his open dishonor.
7 Item, he vncharitablie commanded, that no man vpon paine of losse of life, and goods, should once intreat him for the returne of Henrie now duke of Lancaster.
8 Item, where this realme is holden of God, and not of the pope or other prince, the said king Richard, after he had obteined diuerse acts of parlement, for his owne peculiar profit and pleasure, then he obteined bulles and extreame censures from Rome, to compell all men streightlie to kéepe the same, contrarie to the honour and ancient priuileges of this realme.
9 Item, although the duke of Lancaster had doone his deuoire against Thomas duke of Norfolke in proofe of his quarrell; yet the said king, without reason or ground, banished him the realme for ten yeers, contrarie to all equitie.
10 Item, before the dukes departure, he vnder his broad seale licenced him to make atturnies to prosecute and defend his causes: the said king after his departure, would suffer none atturnie to appeare for him, but did with his at his pleasure.
11 Item, the same king put out diuerse shiriffes lawfullie elected, and put in their roomes diuerse other of his owne, subuerting the law, contrarie to his oth and honor.
12 Item, he borowed great summes of monie, and bound him vnder his letters patents, for the repaiment of the same, and yet not one penie paid.
13 Item, he taxed men at the will of him and his vnhappie councell, and the same treasure spent in follie, not paieng poore men for their vittels and viands.
14 Item, he said, that the lawes of the realme were in his head, and sometimes in his brest, by reason of which fantasticall opinion, he destroied noble men, and impouerished the poore commons.
15 Item, the parlement setting and enacting diuerse notable statutes, for the profit and aduancement of the common-wealth, he by his priuie fréends and solicitors caused to be enacted, that no act then enacted, should be more preiudiciall to him, than it was to anie of his predecessors: through which prouiso he did often as he listed, and not as the law did meane.
16 Item, for to serue his purpose, he would suffer the shiriffes of the shire to remaine aboue one yeare or two.
17 Item, at the summons of the parlement, when knights and burgesses should be elected, that the election had béene full procéeded, he put out diuerse persons elect, and put other in their places, to serue his will and appetite.
18 Item, he had priuie espials in euerie shire, to heare who had of him anie communication; and if he communed of his lasciuious liuing, or outragious dooings, he straightwaies was apprehended, and put to a gréeuous fine.
19 Item, the spiritualtie alledged against him, that he at his going into Ireland, exacted manie notable summes of monie, beside plate and iewels, without law or custome, contrarie to his oth taken at his coronation.
20 Item, where diuerse lords and iustices were sworne to saie the truth of diuerse things to them committed in charge, both for the honor of the relme, and profit of the king, the said king so menaced them with sore threatenings, that no man would or durst saie the right.
21 Item, that without the assent of the nobilitie, he carried the iewels, plate, and treasure, ouer into Ireland, to the great impouerishment of the realme: and all the good records for the common wealth, and against his extortions, he caused priuilie to be imbessled, and conueied awaie.
22 Item, in all leagues and letters to be concluded or sent to the sée of Rome, or other regions, his writing was so subtill and darke, that none other prince once beléeued him, nor yet his owne subiects. |861|
23 Item, he most tyrannouslie and vnprincelie said, that the liues and goods of all his subiects were in his hands, and at his disposition.
24 Item, that contrarie to the great charter of England, he caused diuerse lustie men to appeale diuerse old men, vpon matters determinable at the common law in the court Martiall, bicause that there is no triall, but onelie by battell: wherevpon, the said aged persons, fearing the sequele of the matter, submitted themselues to his mercie, whome he fined and ransomed vnreasonablie at his will and pleasure.
25 Item, he craftilie deuised certeine priuie othes, contrarie to the law, and caused diuerse of his subiects first to be sworne to obserue the same, and after bound them in bonds for kéeping of the same, to the great vndooing of manie honest men.
26 Item, where the chancellor, according to the law, would in no wise grant a prohibition to a certeine person, the king granted it vnto the same, vnder his priuie seale, with great threatenings, if it should be disobeied.
27 Item, he banished the bishop of Canturburie without cause or iudgement, and kept him in the parlement chamber with men of armes.
28 Item, the bishops goods he granted to his successor, vpon condition, that he should mainteine all his statutes made at Shrewesburie anno 21, and the statutes made anno 22 at Couentrie.
29 Item, vpon the accusation of the said bishop, the king craftilie persuaded him to make no answer for he would be his warrant, and advised him not to come to the parlement, and so without answer he was condemned and exiled, and his goods seized.
These be all the articles of anie effect, which were laid against him, sauing foure other, which touched onelie the archbishops matter, whose working wroong king Richard at length from his crowne. Then for so much as these articles, and other heinous and detestable accusations were laid against him in open parlement, it was thought by the most part, that he was worthie to be deposed from all kinglie honor and princelie gouernement: and to bring the matter without slander the better to passe, diuerse of the kings seruants, which by licence had accesse to his person, comforted him (being with sorrow almost consumed, and in manner halfe dead) in the best wise they could, exhorting him to regard his health, and saue his life.
The king is persuaded to resigne the crowne to the duke.
Fabian.
And first, they aduised him willinglie to suffer himselfe to be
deposed, and to resigne his right of his owne accord, so that the duke
of Lancaster might without murther or battell obteine the scepter
and diademe, after which (they well perceiued) he gaped: by meane
whereof they thought he might be in perfect assurance of his life
long to continue. Whether this their persuasion procéeded by the
suborning of the duke of Lancaster and his fauourers, or of a sincere
affection which they bare to the king, as supposing it most sure in
an extremitie, it is vncerteine; but yet the effect followed not,
howsoeuer their meaning was: notwithstanding, the king being now in
the hands of his enimies, and vtterlie despairing of all comfort, was
easilie persuaded to renounce his crowne and princelie preheminence,
so that in hope of life onelie, he agreed to all things that were of
him demanded. And so (as it should seeme by the copie of an instrument
hereafter following) he renounced and voluntarilie was deposed from
his roiall crowne and kinglie dignitie, the mondaie being the nine and
twentith daie of September, and feast of S. Michaell the archangell in
the yeare of our Lord 1399, and in the thrée and twentith yeare of his
reigne. The copie of which instrument here insueth.
This promise he made at Flint rather than at Conwaie, as by that which goeth before it may be partlie coniectured.
THIS present indenture made the nine and twentith daie of September, and feast of saint Michaell, in the yeare of our Lord 1399, and the three and twentith yeare of king |862| Richard the second. Witnesseth, that where by the authoritie of the lords spirituall and temporall of this present parlement, and commons of the same, the right honorable and discreet persons heere vnder named, were by the said authoritie assigned to go to the Tower of London, there to heare and testifie such questions and answers as then and there should be by the said honourable and discreet persons hard. Know all men, to whome these present letters shall come, that we, sir Richard Scroope archbishop of Yorke, Iohn bishop of Hereford, Henrie earle of Northumberland, Rafe earle of Westmerland, Thomas lord Berkeleie, William abbat of Westminster, Iohn prior of Canturburie, William Thirning and Hugh Burnell knights, Iohn Markham iustice, Thomas Stow and Iohn Burbadge doctors of the ciuill law, Thomas Erpingham and Thomas Grey knights, Thomas Ferebie and Denis Lopeham notaries publike, the daie and yeere aboue said, betweene the houres of eight and nine of the clocke before noone, were present in the cheefe chamber of the kings lodging, within the said place of the Tower, where was rehearsed vnto the king by the mouth of the foresaid earle of Northumberland, that before time at Conwaie in Northwales, the king being there at his pleasure and libertie, promised vnto the archbishop of Canturburie then Thomas Arundell, and vnto the said earle of Northumberland, that he for insufficiencie which he knew himselfe to be of, to occupie so great a charge, as to gouerne the realme of England, he would gladlie leaue of and renounce his right and title, as well of that as of his title to the crowne of France, and his maiestie roiall, vnto Henrie duke of Hereford, and that to doo in such conuenient wise, as by the learned men of this land it should most sufficientlie be deuised & ordeined. To the which rehearsall, the king in our said presences answered benignlie and said, that such promise he made, and so to do the same he was at that houre in full purpose to performe and fulfill; sauing that he desired first to haue personall speach with the said duke, and with the archbishop of Canturburie his cousins. And further, he desired to haue a bill drawne of the said resignation, that he might be perfect in the rehearsall thereof.
After which bill drawne, and a copie thereof to him by me the said earle deliuered, we the said lords and other departed: and vpon the same afternoone the king looking for the comming of the duke of Lancaster, at the last the said duke, with the archbishop of Canturburie and the persons afore recited, entered the foresaid chamber, bringing with them the lords Roos, Aburgenie, and Willoughbie, with diuerse other. Where after due obeisance doone by them vnto the king, he familiarlie and with a glad countenance (as to them and vs appeered) talked with the said archbishop and duke a good season; and that communication finished, the king with glad countenance in presence of vs and the other aboue rehearsed, said openlie that he was readie to renounce and resigne all his kinglie maiestie in maner and forme as he before had promised. And although he had and might sufficientlie haue declared his renouncement by the reading of an other meane person; yet for the more suertie of the matter, and for that the said resignation should haue his full force and strength, himselfe therefore read the scroll of resignation, in maner and forme as followeth.
IN the name of God Amen: I Richard by the grace of God, king of England and of France, &c: lord of Ireland, acquit and assoile all archbishops, bishops, and other prelats, secular or religious, of what dignitie, degree, state, or condition so euer they be; and also all dukes, marquesses, earles, barons, lords, and all my liege men, both spirituall and secular, of what manner or degree they be, from their oth of fealtie and homage, and all other deeds and priuileges made vnto me, and from all manner bonds of allegiance, |863| regalitie and lordship, in which they were or be bounden to me, or anie otherwise constreined; and them, their heires, and successors for euermore, from the same bonds and oths I release, deliuer, and acquit, and set them for free, dissolued and acquit, and to be harmelesse, for as much as longeth to my person by anie manner waie or title of right, that to me might follow of the foresaid things, or anie of them. And also I resigne all my kinglie dignitie, maiestie and crowne, with all the lordships, power, and priuileges to the foresaid kinglie dignitie and crowne belonging, and all other lordships and possessions to me in anie maner of wise perteining, of what name, title, qualitie, or condition soeuer they be, except the lands and possessions for me and mine obits purchased and bought. And I renounce all right, and all maner of title of possession, which I euer had or haue in the same lordships and possessions, or anie of them, with anie manner of rights belonging or apperteining vnto anie part of them. And also the rule and gouernance of the same kingdome and lordships, with all ministrations of the same, and all things and euerie each of them, that to the whole empire and iurisdictions of the same belongeth of right, or in anie wise may belong.
And also I renounce the name, worship, and regaltie and kinglie highnesse, clearelie, freelie, singularlie and wholie, in the most best maner and forme that I may, and with deed and word I leaue off and resigne them, and go from them for euermore; sauing alwaies to my successors kings of England, all the rights, priuileges and appurtenances to the said kingdome and lordships abouesaid belonging and apperteining. For well I wote and knowledge, and deeme my selfe to be, and haue beene insufficient and vnable, and also vnprofitable, and for my open deserts not vnworthie to be put downe. And I sweare vpon the holie euangelists here presentlie with my hands touched, that I shall neuer repugne to this resignation, demission or yeelding vp, nor neuer impugne them in anie maner by word or deed, by my selfe nor none other: nor I shall not suffer it to be impugned, in as much as in me is, priuilie or apertlie. But I shall haue, hold, and keepe this renouncing, demission, and giuing vp for firme and stable for euermore in all and euerie part thereof, so God me helpe and all saints, and by this holie euangelist, by me bodilie touched and kissed. And for more record of the same, here openlie I subscribe and signe this present resignation with mine owne hand.
Now foorthwith in our presences and others, he subscribed the same, and after deliuered it vnto the archbishop of Canturburie, saieng that if it were in his power, or at his assignement, he would that the duke of Lancaster there present should be his successour, and king after him. And in token heereof, he tooke a ring of gold from his finger being his signet, and put it vpon the said dukes finger, desiring and requiring the archbishop of Yorke, & the bishop of Hereford, to shew and make report vnto the lords of the parlement of his voluntarie resignation, and also of his intent and good mind that he bare towards his cousin the duke of Lancaster, to haue him his successour and their king after him. ¶ All this doone euerie man tooke their leaue and returned to their owne.
K. Richards resignation confirmed by parlement.
Vpon the morrow after being tuesdaie, and the last daie of September, all the lords
spirituall and temporall, with the commons of the said parlement, assembled at Westminster,
where, in the presence of them, the archbishop of Yorke, and the bishop of
Hereford, according to the kings request, shewed vnto them the voluntarie renouncing
of the king, with the fauour also which he bare to his cousine of Lancaster to haue him
his successour. And moreouer shewed them the schedule or bill of renouncement, signed
with king Richards owne hand, which they caused to be read first in Latine, as it
was written, and after in English. This doone, the question was first asked of the lords,
if they would admit and allow that renouncement: the which when it was of them
granted and confirmed, the like question was asked of the
commons, and of them in |864|
like manner confirmed. After this, it was then declared, that notwithstanding the foresaid
renouncing, so by the lords and commons admitted and confirmed, it were necessarie in
auoiding of all suspicions and surmises of euill disposed persons, to haue in writing and
registred the manifold crimes and defaults before doone by king Richard, to the end that
they might first be openlie declared to the people, and after to remaine of record amongst
other of the kings records for euer.
All this was doone accordinglie, for the articles which before yee haue heard, were drawne and ingrossed vp, and there shewed readie to be read; but for other causes more néedfull as then to be preferred, the reading of those articles at that season was deferred. Then forsomuch as the lords of the parlement had well considered the voluntarie resignation (of king Richard, and that it was behoouefull and as they thought) necessarie for the weale of the realme, to proceed vnto the sentence of his deposing, there were appointed by the authoritie of all the estates there in parlement assembled, the bishop of saint Asaph, the abbat of Glastenburie, the earle of Glocester, the lord Berkleie, William Thirning iustice, and Thomas Erpingham, with Thomas Graie, knights, that they should giue and pronounce the open sentence of the deposing of king Richard. Whervpon the said commissioners taking counsell togither, by good and deliberate aduise therein had, with one assent agréed, that the bishop of S. Asaph should publish the sentence for them and in their names, as followeth.
IN the name of God Amen. We Iohn bishop of S. Asaph, Iohn abbat of Glastenburie, Thomas earle of Glocester, Thomas lord Berkeleie, William Thirning iustice, Thomas Erpingham & Thomas Graie knights, chosen and deputed speciall commissaries by the three states of this present parlement, representing the whole bodie of the realme, for all such matters by the said estates to vs committed: we vnderstanding and considering the manifold crimes, hurts, and harmes doone by Richard king of England, and misgouernance of the same by a long time, to the great decaie of the said land, and vtter ruine of the same shortlie to haue beene, had not the speciall grace of our God therevnto put the sooner remedie: and also furthermore aduerting, that the said king Richard by acknowledging his owne insufficiencie, hath of his owne meere voluntee and free will, renounced and giuen ouer the rule & gouernance of this land, with all rights and honours vnto the same belonging, and vtterlie for his merits hath iudged himselfe not vnwoorthilie to be deposed of all kinglie maiestie and estate roiall. We the premisses well considering by good and diligent deliberation, by the power, name, and authoritie to vs (as aboue is said) committed, pronounce, decerne, and declare the same king Richard, before this to haue beene, and to be vnprofitable, vnable, vnsufficient, and vnwoorthie of the rule and gouernance of the foresaid realms and lordships, and of all rights and other the appurtenances to the same belonging. And for the same causes we depriue him of all kinglie dignitie and worship, and of any kinglie worship in himselfe. And we depose him by our sentence definitiue, forbidding expresselie to all archbishops, and bishops, and all other prelats, dukes, marquesses, erles, barons and knights, and all other men of the foresaid kingdome and lordships, subiects, and lieges whatsoeuer they be, that none of them from this daie forward, to the foresaid Richard as king and lord of the foresaid realmes and lordships, be neither obedient nor attendant.
After which sentence thus openlie declared, the said estates admitted foorthwith the forenamed commissioners for their procurators, to resigne and yeeld vp vnto king Richard, all their homage and fealtie, which in times past they had made and owght vnto him, and also for to declare vnto him (if need were) all things before doone that concerned the |865| purpose and cause of his deposing: the which resignation was respited till the morow following. Immediatlie as the sentence was in this wise passed, and that by reason thereof the realme stood void without head or gouernour for the time, the duke of Lancaster rising from the place where before he sate, and standing where all those in the house might behold him, in reuerend manner made a signe of the crosse on his forhead, and likewise on his brest, and after silence by an officer commanded, said vnto the people there being present, these words following.
IN the name of the Father, and of the Sonne, & of the Holie-ghost. I Henrie of Lancaster claime the realme of England and the crowne, with all the appurtenances, as I that am descended by right line of the blood comming from that good lord king Henrie the third, and through the right that God of his grace hath sent me, with the helpe of my kin, and of my freends, to recouer the same, which was in point to be vndoone for default of good gouernance and due iustice.
The demand of the archbishop of Canturburie to the commons.
Thom. Wals.
The duke of Hereford placed in the regall throne.
The archbishop preached.
After these words thus by him vttered, he returned and sate him downe in the place
where before he had sitten. Then the lords hauing heard and well perceiued this claime
thus made by this noble man, ech of them asked of other what they thought therein. At
length, after a little pausing or staie made, the archbishop of Canturburie hauing notice of
the minds of the lords, stood vp & asked the commons if they would assent to the lords,
which in their minds thought the claime of the duke made, to be rightfull and necessarie
for the wealth of the realme and them all: whereto the commons with one voice cried,
Yea, yea, yea. After which answer, the said archbishop going to the duke, and knéeling
downe before him on his knee, addressed to him all his purpose in few words. The which
when he had ended, he rose, & taking the duke by the right hand, led him vnto the kings
seate, the archbishop of Yorke assisting him, and with great reuerence set him therein,
after that the duke had first vpon his knées made his praier in deuout manner vnto
almightie God. When he was thus placed in his throne to the great reioising of the people,
the archbishop of Canturburie began a breefe collation, taking for his theme these
words, written in the first booke of kings the ninth chapter; Vir dominabitur in populo,
&c: handling the same, & the whole tenour of his tale to the praise of the king, whose
setled iudgement, grounded wisedome, perfect reason, and ripe discretion was such (said
he) as declared him to be no child, neither in yeares, nor in light conditions, but a man
able and méete for the gouernement of a realme: so that there was no small cause of comfort
ministred to them through the fauourable goodnesse of almightie God, which had
prouided them of such a gouernor, as like a discréet iudge shall déeme in causes by
skilfull doomes, and rule his subiects in vpright equitie, setting apart all wilfull pleasures,
and childish inconstancie. This is a summarie of his oration. But because the qualitie
of this volume is such, as that it hath set foorth matters at large: I will laie downe
the archbishops words, as they are recorded by Fabian in ample manner as followeth.
Abr. Fl. out of Fabian, pag. 351.
THESE be the words of the high, and most mightie king, speaking to Samuel his prophet, teaching him how he should choose and ordaine a gouernor of his people of Israell, when the said people asked of him a king, to rule them. And not without cause may these woords be said here of our lord the king that is. For, if they be inwardlie conceiued, |866| they shall giue vnto vs matter of consolation and comfort, when it is said that a man shall haue lordship and rule of the people, and not a child. For God threatneth not vs as he sometime threatned the people by Esaie, saieng: Esa. 3. Et dabo pueros principes eorum, & effeminati dominabuntur eis, I shall (saith our Lord) giue children to be their rulers & princes, and weake or fearefull shall haue dominion ouer them. But of his great mercie he hath visited vs, I trust his peculiar people, and sent vs a man to haue the rule of vs, & put by children that before time ruled this land, after childish conditions, as by the woorkes of them it hath rightlie appeared, to the disturbance of all this realme; and for want and lacke of a man. For, as saith the apostle Paule ad Corinthos, 1. capite 14. Cùm essem paruulus, loquebar vt paruulus, &c: quando autem factus sum vir, euacuaui quæ erant paruuli, that is to say, When I was a child, I sauored and spake as a child, but at the time when I came vnto the estate of a man, then I put by all my childish conditions.
The apostle saith, he sauored and spake as a child, in whome is no stedfastnesse, or constancie. For a child will lightlie promise, and lightlie he will breake his promise, and doo all things that his appetite giueth him vnto, and forgetteth lightlie what he hath doone. By which reason it followeth, that needilie great inconuenience must fall to that people, that a child is ruler and gouernour of: nor it is not possible for that kingdome to stand in felicitie, where such conditions reigne in the head and ruler of the same. But now we ought all to reioise, that all such defaults be expelled, and that a man, and not a child, shall haue lordship ouer vs. To whom it belongeth to haue a sure rane vpon his toong, that he maie be knowne from a child, or a man vsing childish conditions: of whom I trust I maie say, as the wise man saith in his prouerbs, Prouerb. 3. cap. Beatus homo qui inuenit sapientiam, & qui affluit prudentia, that is to say; Blessed be the man that hath sapience or wisdome, and that aboundeth in prudence. For that man that is ruled by sapience, must needs loue & dred our Lord God, and who so loueth & dreadeth him, it must consequentlie follow that he must keepe his commandements. By force whereof he shall minister true iustice vnto his subiects, and doo no wrong nor iniurie to any man.
So that then shall follow the words of the wise man the which be rehearsed, Prouerb. 10. Benedictio Domini super caput iusti, os autem impiorum operit iniquitatem, that is to saie, The blessing of our Lord God shall light vpon the head of our king, being a iust and righteous man, for the toong of him worketh equitie and iustice; but the toong of the wicked & of sinners couereth iniquitie. And who so worketh or ministreth iustice in due order, he not onlie safegardeth himself, but also holdeth people in a suertie of restfulnes, of the which insueth peace and plentie. And therefore it is said of the wise king Salomon, Eccles. 10. Beata terra cuius rex nobilis est, vel cuius principes vescuntur in tempore suo, wich is to be vnderstanded, that blessed & happie is that land, of the which the king or ruler is noble and wise, and the princes be blessed that liue in his time. As who would say, they may take example of him to rule and guide their subiects. For by the discretion of a noble and wise man being in authoritie, manie euils be sequestred and set apart, all dissemblers put to silence. For the wise man considereth and noteth well the great inconueniences which dailie now growe of it, where the child or insipient drinketh the sweet and delicious words vnaduisedlie, and perceiueth not intoxication which they be mingled or mixt with, till he be inuironed and wrapped in all danger, as latelie the experience thereof hath beene apparent to all our sights and knowledges, & not without the great danger of all this realme. And all was for lacke of wisedome in the ruler, which deemed & taught as a child, giuing sentence of wilfulnesse and not of reason. So that while a child reigned, selfe-will & lust reigned, and reason with good conscience were outlawed, with iustice, stedfastnesse, and manie other vertues.
But of this perill and danger we be deliuered by the especiall helpe and grace of God, Quia vir dominabitur in populo, that is to saie, He that is not a child but perfect in reason. |867| For he commeth not to execute his owne will, but his will that sent him, that is to wit, Gods will, as a man vnto whome God of his abundant grace hath giuen perfect reason and discretion, to discerne & deeme as a perfect man. Wherfore not all onlie of this man we shall saie that he shall dwell in wisedome, but as a perfect man and not a child, he shall thinke, and deeme, & haue such a circumspection with him, that he shall diligentlie forelooke and see that Gods will be doone, & not his. And therfore now I trust the words of the wise man, Ecclesiast. 10. shall be verified in our king: saieng, Iudex sapiens iudicabit populum suum & principatus sensati stabilis erit; that is (as saith the wiseman) A wise and discreet iudge shall now deeme his people, and the dominion or lordship of a discreet wiseman shall stand stedfast. Wherevpon shall then follow the second verse of the same chapter, saieng, Secundum iudicem populi, sic & ministri eius, that is, Like as the head & sovereigne is replenished with all sapience and vertue, in guiding of his people, administring to them law, with due and conuenient iustice, so shall the subiects againward be garnished with awe and louing dread, and beare vnto him next God all honour, truth and allegiance.
So that then it may be concluded with the residue of the foresaid verses; Qualis rector est ciuitatis, tales & inhabitantes in ea, which is to saie, Such as the ruler of the citie is, such then be the inhabitants of the same. So that consequentlie it followeth, a good master maketh a good disciple. And likewise an euill king or ruler shall lose his people, & the cities of his kingdome shall be left desolate and vnhabited. Wherefore thus I make an end. In sted of a child wilfullie doing his lust and pleasure without reason, now shall a man be lord and ruler, that is replenished with sapience and reason, and shall gouerne the people by skilfull doome, setting apart all wilfulnesse and pleasure of himselfe. So that the word that I began with may be verified of him, Ecce quia vir dominabitur in populo. The which our lord grant, & that he may prosperouslie reigne vnto the pleasure of God and wealth of his realme, Amen.
The words of the elected king.
After the archbishop had ended, wishing that it might so come to passe, and the people
answered, Amen; the king standing on his féet, said unto the lords and commons there
present: “I thanke you my lords both spirituall and temporall, and all the states of this
land, and doo you to wit, that it is not my will that any man thinke, that I by the waie
of conquest would disherit any man of his heritage, franches, or other rights, that him
ought to haue of right, nor to put him out of that which he now inioieth, and hath had
before time by custome or good law of this realme, except such priuat persons as haue
béene against the good purpose, and the common profit of the realme.” When he had
thus ended, all the shiriffes and other officers were put in their authorities againe, to exercise
the same as before, which they could not doo whilest the kings roiall throne was void.
Thom. Wals.
The coronation proclaimed.
The parlemēt.
Moreouer, a proclamation was made, that the states should assemble againe in parlement
on mondaie then next insuing, being the feast daie of saith Faith, which is the
sixt of October; and that the monday then next following, being the 13 of the same
moneth, and the feast day of saint Edward the king and confessor, the coronation should
be solemnized, and that all such as had to claime any seruice to be doone by them at the
same by any tenure, they should come to the White-hall in the kings palace, before the
steward and constable of England, on saturdaie next before the same day of the parlement,
and presenting their petitions that were due & rightfull, they should obteine that
to them apperteined. Excuse was also made on the kings behalfe, for calling of a parlement
vpon so short a warning, so as the knights and burgesses were not changed, but
onelie appointed to assemble againe, as if the other parlement had rather beene continued
than dissolued. The cause was alledged to be for easing of the charges that would
haue risen, if ech man had béene sent home, and new knights and burgesses called.
King Henrie ye fourth proclamed.
T. Wats. Amintas querula 5.
These things doone, the king rose from his place, and with a chéerefull and right courteous
countenance regarding the people, went to White-hall, where
the same day he held |868|
a great feast. In the after noone were proclamations made in the accustomed places of
the citie, in the name of king Henrie the fourth. On the morrow following, being wednesdaie
the first of October, the procurators aboue named repaired to the tower of London,
and thare signified vnto king Richard the admission of king Henrie. And the aforesaid
iustice William Thirning, in name of the other, and for all the states of the land, renounced
vnto the said Richard late king, all homage and fealtie vnto him before time due,
in maner and forme as apperteined. Which renuntiation to the deposed king, was a redoubling
of his greefe, in so much as thereby it came to his mind, how in former times
he was acknowledged & taken for their liege lord and souereigne, who now (whether
in contempt or in malice, God knoweth) to his face forsware him to be their king. So
that in his heuines he might verie well haue said with a gréeued
plaintife,
Heu quantæ sortes miseris mortalibus instant!
Ah chari quoties obliuia nominis opto!
O qui me fluctus, quis me telluris hiatus
Pertæsum tetricæ vitæ deglutiat ore
Chasmatico?
K. Richard depriued.
Hall.
His personage.
Thus was king Richard depriued of all kinglie honour and princelie dignitie, by reason
he was so giuen to follow euill counsell, and vsed such inconuenient waies and meanes,
through insolent misgouernance, and youthfull outrage, though otherwise a right noble
and woorthie prince. He reigned two and twentie yeares, three moneths and eight daies.
He deliuered to king Henrie now that he was thus deposed, all the goods that he had, to
the summe of three hundred thousand pounds in coine, besides plate and iewels, as a
pledge and satisfaction of the iniuries by him committed and doone, in hope to be in
more suertie of life for the deliuerie thereof: but whatsoeuer was promised, he was deceiued
therein. For shortlie after his resignation, he was conueied to the castell of Leeds
in Kent, & frō thence to Pomfret, where he departed out of this miserable life (as after
you shall heare.) He was séemelie of shape and fauor, & of nature good inough, if the
wickednesse & naughtie demeanor of such as were about him had not altered it.
Harding.
The noble house-kéeping of king Richard.
Excesse in apparell.
His chance verelie was greatlie infortunate, which fell into such calamitie, that he
tooke it for the best waie he could deuise to renounce his kingdome, for the which mortall
men are accustomed to hazard all they haue to atteine therevnto. But such misfortune
(or the like) oftentimes falleth vnto those princes, which when they are aloft, cast
no doubt for perils that maie follow. He was prodigall, ambitious, and much giuen to
the pleasure of the bodie. He kept the greatest port, and mainteined the most plentifull
house that euer any king in England did either before his time or since. For there resorted
dailie to his court aboue ten thousand persons that had meat and drinke there
allowed them. In his kitchen there were thrée hundred seruitors, and euerie other office
was furnished after the like rate. Of ladies, chamberers, and landerers, there were aboue
thrée hundred at the least. And in gorgious and costlie apparell they exceeded all measure,
not one of them that kept within the bounds of his degrée. Yeomen and groomes
were clothed in silkes, with cloth of graine and skarlet, ouer sumptuous ye may be sure
for their estates. And this vanitie was not onelie vsed in the court in those daies, but
also other people abroad in the towns and countries, had their garments cut far otherwise
than had beene accustomed before his daies, with imbroderies, rich furres, and goldsmiths
worke, and euerie daie there was deuising of new fashions, to the great hinderance and
decaie of the common-welth.
Ignorant prelats.
Moreouer, such were preferred to bishoprikes, and other ecclesiasticall liuings, as
neither could teach nor preach, nor knew any thing of the scripture of God, but onelie
to call for their tithes and duties; so that they were most vnworthie the name of bishops,
being lewd and most vaine persons disguised in bishops apparell. Furthermore, there
reigned abundantlie the filthie sinne of leacherie and fornication, with abhominable adulterie,
speciallie in the king, but most chéefelie in the prelacie, whereby
the whole realme by |869|
such their euill example, was so infected, that the wrath of God was dailie prouoked to
vengeance for the sins of the prince and his people. How then could it continue prosperouslie
with this king? against whom for the fowle enormities wherewith his life was
defamed, the wrath of God was whetted and tooke so sharpe an edge, that the same did
shred him off from the scepter of his kingdome, and gaue him a full cup of affliction to
drinke; as he had doone to other kings his predecessors, by whose example he might
haue taken warning. For it is an heauie case when God thundereth out his reall arguments
either vpon prince or people.
Thus haue ye heard what writers doo report touching the state of the time and doings of this king. But if I may boldlie saie what I thinke: he was a prince the most vnthankfullie vsed of his subiects, of any one of whom ye shall lightlie read. For although (thorough the frailtie of youth) he demeaned himed himselfe more dissolutelie than séemed conuenient for his roiall estate, & made choise of such councellors as were not fauoured of the people, whereby he was the lesse fauoured himselfe: yet in no kings daies were the commons in greater wealth, if they could haue perceiued their happie state: neither in any other time were the nobles and gentlemen more cherished, nor churchmen lesse wronged. But such was their ingratitude towards their bountifull and louing souereigne, that those whom he had chéeflie aduanced, were readiest to controll him; for that they might not rule all things at their will, and remooue from him such as they misliked, and place in their roomes whom they thought good, and that rather by strong hand, than by gentle and courteous meanes, which stirred such malice betwixt him and them, till at length it could not be asswaged without perill of destruction to them both.
The duke of Glocester chéefe instrument of this mischéefe, to what end he came ye haue heard. And although his nephue the duke of Hereford tooke vpon him to reuenge his death, yet wanted he moderation and loialtie in his dooings, for the which both he himselfe and his lineall race were scourged afterwards, as a due punishment vnto rebellious subiects; so as deserued vengeance seemed not to staie long for his ambitious crueltie, that thought it not inough to driue king Richard to resigne his crowne and regall dignitie ouer vnto him, except he also should take from him his guiltlesse life. What vnnaturalnesse, or rather what tigerlike crueltie was this, not to be content with his principalitie? not to be content with his treasure? not to be content with his depriuation? not to be content with his imprisonment? but being so neerelie knit in consanguinitie, which ought to haue moued them like lambs to haue loued each other, wooluishlie to lie in wait for the distressed creatures life, and rauenouslie to thirst after his bloud, the spilling whereof should haue touched his conscience so, as that death ought rather to haue beene aduentured for his safetie, than so sauagelie to haue sought his life after the losse of his roialtie.
But to let this passe to the consideration of the learned: according to our order, I will shew what writers of our English nation liued in his daies, as we find them in Iohn Bales centuries. First Henrie Bederic, otherwise surnamed of Burie, after the name of the towne where he is thought to haue béene borne, an Augustine frier; Simon Alcocke, Vthred Bolton a moonke of Durham, borne in the borders of Wales beyond Seuerne; William Iordan a blacke frier, Iohn Hilton a frier Minor, Iohn Clipton a Carmelite frier in Notingham, Henrie Daniell a blacke frier and a good physician, Ralfe Marham, Iohn Marcheleie a graie frier or cordelier as some call them, Thomas Broome a Carmelite frier of London, John Bridlington borne in Yorkeshire, William Thorne an Augustine frier of Canturburie, an historiographer, Adam Meremouth a canon of saint Paules church in London, that wrote two tretises of historicall matters, the one intituled Chronicon 40 annorum, and the other Chronicon 60 annorum; Simon Bredon borne in Winchcombe a doctor of physicke and a skilfull astronomer, Iohn Thompson borne in Norfolke in a village of that name, and a Carmelite frier in Blacknie.
More, Thomas Winterton borne in Lincolnshire, an Augustine frier in Stamford; |870| William Packington secretarie sometime to the Blacke prince an excellent historiographer, Geffraie Hingham a civilian, Iohn Botlesham borne in Cambridgeshire a blacke frier, William Badbie a Carmelite frier, bishop of Worcester, and confessor to the duke of Lancaster; William Folleuil a frier Minor borne in Lincolnshire, Iohn Bourgh parson of Collingham in Notinghamshire a doctor of diuinitie, and chancellor of the Vniuersitie of Cambridge; William Sclade a moonke of Buckfast abbie in Deuonshire, Iohn Thoresbie archbishop of Yorke and lord chancellor of England, was admitted by pope Vrbane the fift into the college of cardinals, but he died before K. Richard came to the crowne, about the eight and fourtith yeare of king Edward the third, in the yeare of our Lord 1374. Thomas Ashborne an Augustine frier, Iohn Astone an earnest follower of Wickliffes doctrine, and therefore condemned to perpetuall prison; Casterton a moonke of Norwich and an excellent diuine, Nicholas Radcliffe a moonke of saint Albons, Iohn Ashwarbie a diuine and fauourer of Wickliffes doctrine, Richard Maidstone so called of the towne in Kent where he was borne, a Carmelite frier of Ailesford.
Adunensis episcopus.
Adde to these Iohn Wardbie an Augustine frier, and a great diuine; Robert Waldbie
excellentlie learned as well in diuinitie as other arts, for the which he was first aduanced
to a bishoprike in Gascoigne, and after he was admitted archbishop of Dubline; William
Berton a doctor of diuinitie, & chancellor of the Vniuersitie of Oxford, and aduersarie
to Wickliffe; Philip Repington abbat of Leicester a notable diuine and defender of
Wickliffe, Thomas Lombe a Carmelite frier of Lin, Nicholas Hereford a secular priest,
a doctor of diuinitie, and scholer to Wickliffe; Walter Brit also another of Wickliffes
scholers wrote both of diuinitie & other arguments, Henrie Herklie chancellor of the
Vniuersitie of Oxford, an enimie to Wickliffe, and a great sophister; Robert Iuorie a
Carmelite frier of London, and the twentith prouinciall of his order here in England;
Lankine a Londoner, an Augustine frier, professed in the same citie, a doctor of diuinitie,
an aduersarie to Wickliffe.
More, William Gillingham a moonke of saint Sauiours in Canturburie; Iohn Chilmarke a fellow of Marton colledge in Oxford, a great philosopher and mathematician; Iohn Sharpe a philosopher, and a diuine, wrote manie treatises, a great aduersarie to Wickliffe; Richard Lauingham borne in Suffolke, and a frier of Gipswich, an excellent logician, but a sore enimie to them that fauoured Wickliffes doctrine; Peter Pateshull, of whome ye haue heard before: it is said that he was in the end constreined for doubt of persecution to flie into Boheme; William Woodford a Franciscane frier, a chosen champion against Wickliffe being now dead, procured thereto by the archbishop of Canturburie Thomas Arudnell; Iohn Bromyard a Dominicke frier, both a notable lawyer & a diuine, a sore enimie also to Wickliuists; Marcill Ingelne an excellent philosopher and a diuine, one of the first teachers in the Vniuersitie of Heidelberge, which Robert duke of Bauier and countée palantine of the Rhene had instituted about that season; Richard Northall sonne to a maior of London (as is said) of that name, he became a Carmelite frier in the same citie; Thomas Edwardson prior of the friers Augustines at Clare in Suffolke, Iohn Summer a Franciscane frier at Bridgewater, an enimie to the Wickliuists; Richard Withée a learned priest & an earnest follower of Wickliffe, Iohn Swafham a Carmelite frier of Lin, a student in Cambridge who became bishop of Bangor, a great aduersarie to the Wickliuists.
Finallie, and to conclude, William Egumond a frier heremit of the sect of the Augustins in Stamford; Iohn Tissington a Franciscane frier, a mainteiner of the popes doctrine; William Rimston or Rimington a moonke of Salleie, an enimie also to the Wickliuists; Adam Eston well séene in the toongs, was made a cardinall by pope Gregorie the eleauenth, but by pope Vrban the sixt he was committed to prison in Genoa, and at the contemplation of king Richard he was taken out of prison, but not fullie deliuered till the daies of Boniface the ninth, who restored him to his former dignitie; Iohn Beaufu a Carmelite of Northampton, proceeded doctor of diuinitie in Oxenford, and was made prior |871| of his house; Roger Twiford aliàs Goodlucke, an Augustine frier; Iohn Treuise a Cornishman borne, and a secular préest and vicar of Berklie, he translated the bible; Bartholomew De proprietatibus rerum; Polychronicon of Ranulph Higden, and diuerse other treatises, Rafe Spalding a Carmelite frier of Stamford; Iohn Moone an Englishman borne, but a student in Paris, who compiled in the French toong the Romant of the Rose, translated into English by Geffrie Chaucer, William Shirborne; Richard Wichingham borne in Norffolke, and diuerse other.
Thus farre Richard of Burdeaux, whose depriuation you haue heard; of his lamentable death hereafter, to wit, pag. 516, 517.
Original spelling and grammar are generally retained, with a few exceptions noted below. Original page numbers look like this: |735|. I constructed the cover image, and hereby release it to the wild.
This transcription is based on page images scanned from an edition with publication date 1807. The title page information, together with Part 1 of this Volume II, is located in Project Gutenburg ebook#16738. The page images used herein probably were private, not available on the internet; but Google has made page images from the same edition available―see [Title: Chronicles of England, Scotland and Ireland, Volume 2 Chronicles of England, Scotland and Ireland, Raphael Holinshed; Author: Raphael Holinshed; Publisher: Johnson, 1807; Original from: the Bavarian State Library; Digitized: Nov 25, 2009; ID=4r0_AAAAcAAJ] at books.google.com. This 1807 edition seems to be closely based on the 1587 edition of the Chronicles, printed in blackletter. Page images from the 1587 edition are available from the University of Pennsylvania. Vol. II, part 12 is at http://sceti.library.upenn.edu (textID=holinshed_richII). In a very few instances listed below, corrections have been made, or questions have been answered, by referring to the 1587 edition.
Current ebook software does not lend itself optimally to the original close association of sidenotes with specific lines of text. Therefore sidenotes are now assigned to specific paragraphs rather than to lines. Moreover, the original sidenotes were often printed in a manner which makes it impossible to distinguish one sidenote paragraph from the next. One example of this occurred on page 850, with a sidenote printed like this:
Abr. Fl. out of
Thom. Wals.
pag. 395.
Polydor.
It turns out, proven by comparison with the 1587 edition, that Polydor. is a separate paragraph from the rest. But there are many similar instances, both in this 1807 edition and in the 1587 edition, none of which have been checked.
Page 735. In “the denied to paie for hir” the was changed to she, to agree with the 1587 edition.
Page 739. In “cruell proceedings of those rude & baee people”, change baee to base, to conform with the 1587 edition.
Page 763. The extra the was removed from “heard the the friers information”.
Page 767. From “An other day 72 French ships (as they”, the unmatched left parenthesis mark was removed.
Page 772–773. Two sidenotes appear similar; the first is partially illegible, and is herein made the same as the second. The second is less illegible, and appears to be “Abr. Fl. out of Henrie Knighton canon of Leicester abbeie”.
Page 776. The sidenote attached to the last paragraph was partly illegible, and is herein rendered “The king of Armenia sueth for”.
Page 788. In “to hurt them, or or cause any hurt”, removed the extra or, per the 1587 edition.
Page 790. In “to tarie louger, as one despairing”, changed louger to longer, per the 1587 edition.
Page 798. In “the state of the meanest peason”, changed peason to person, to comform with the 1587 edition.
Page 801. In “one of the heires to to Iohn Scot”, removed the extra to.
Page 803. From “which (according (as I haue seene noted) was”, removed the second left parenthesis, to agree with the 1587 edition.
Page 804. In “deliuered by the mouth of Walter Langhton”, retained, the n should probably be u, making the word Laughton.
Page 807. In “saluo iure alterius cuiuscunq;.”, the text in the 1587 edition shows the “semicolon” as subscript, although it is retained herein as shown unsubscripted in the 1807 edition. Together with the q, this might be a ligature for que. There are several other instances of words ending in "q;", none of which have subscripted semicolons in this 1807 edition.
Page 829. From “more bold to interlace) about”, removed the unmatched right parenthesis.
Page 834. Original “prease on London bridg [*missing*] by reason thereof”, changed to “prease on London bridge, that by reason thereof”, per the 1587 edition.
Page 842. In “foure thousand nobles yéere e paid out of”, changed yéere e to yéerelie, per the 1587 edition.
Page 844. In ‘than well.” “No more said the king,’, removed the unmatched left quotation mark from No.
Page 845. The unmatched right double quotation mark was removed from the phrase ‘it could not be so brought to passe, his honor saued.’
Page 847. A matching right double quotation mark was added to the end of the sentence beginning ‘The proclamation ended, an other herald cried’.
Page 857. In “but the earle rode before, at it were”, changed at to as, per the 1587 edition.
Page 869. In “God thundereth out his reall arguguments”, changed arguguments to arguments, per the 1587 edition.